Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n apostle_n church_n time_n 4,784 5 3.9277 3 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A54576 A compendious history of the Catholick church from the year 600 untill the year 1600 shewing her deformation and reformation : together with the rise, reign, rage, and begin-fall of the Roman AntiChrist : with many other profitable instructions gathered out of divers writers of the several times, and other histories / by Alexander Petrie ... Petrie, Alexander, 1594?-1662.; Church of Scotland. General Assembly. 1657 (1657) Wing P1879; ESTC R4555 1,586,559 1,238

There are 53 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

enemy_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n nation_n etc._n etc._n morn_n in_o myster_n pag._n 451_o &_o 465._o in_o dialog_n par_fw-fr 2._o tract_n 1._o lib._n 3._o cap._n 16._o he_o say_v the_o book_n of_o judith_n tobias_n and_o the_o maccabee_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n be_v not_o for_o confirmation_n of_o any_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o church_n read_v these_o two_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o wisdom_n for_o edification_n of_o the_o people_n in_o manner_n but_o not_o for_o confirmation_n of_o point_n of_o faith_n ibid._n par_fw-fr 1._o lib._n 5._o cap._n 25._o he_o say_v a_o general_a council_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o be_v not_o the_o church_n universal_a therefore_o it_o be_v vain_a to_o say_v that_o a_o general_a council_n can_v oer_o against_o the_o faith_n and_o cap._n 28._o if_o a_o general_a council_n shall_a yet_o some_o catholic_n shall_v remain_v which_o either_o private_o or_o public_o as_o shall_v be_v expedient_a shall_v be_v bold_a to_o defend_v the_o orthodox_n faith_n ....._o for_o god_n be_v able_a of_o stone_n that_o be_v of_o the_o unlearned_a laic_n despise_v poor_a one_o and_o distress_a catholic_n to_o raise_v up_o child_n of_o abraham_n and_o lib._n 6._o cap._n 84._o counsel_n be_v not_o call_v general_a because_o they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o pope_n ....._o if_o prince_n and_o layman_n will_v they_o may_v be_v present_a in_o the_o general_a council_n and_o deal_v of_o matter_n treat_v therein_o in_o prologue_n compend_v error_n he_o say_v alas_o the_o time_n of_o which_o the_o bless_a apostle_n prophesy_v when_o man_n will_v not_o suffer_v wholesome_a doctrine_n ....._o this_o pprophecy_n be_v altogether_o fulfil_v in_o our_o day_n for_o behold_v many_o pervert_n the_o holy_a scripture_n deny_v the_o say_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n reject_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n molest_v persecute_v and_o bring_v into_o bondage_n and_o without_o mercy_n torment_n and_o afflict_v even_o unto_o death_n they_o that_o defend_v the_o truth_n so_o that_o we_o may_v right_o say_v of_o our_o time_n which_o daniel_n long_o since_o pronounce_v iniquity_n have_v go_v from_o babylon_n from_o the_o elder_n and_o judge_n which_o seem_v to_o govern_v and_o rule_v the_o people_n for_o many_o that_o shall_v be_v pillar_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o defend_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n even_o unto_o blood_n cast_v themselves_o headlong_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o heresy_n in_o the_o same_o prologue_n he_o submit_v his_o writing_n unto_o the_o censure_n and_o correction_n of_o the_o church_n but_o he_o add_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o not_o of_o the_o malignant_a church_n 8._o brigida_n or_o brigitta_n be_v descend_v of_o the_o blood_n royal_a of_o scotland_n ph._n morn_n in_o myster_n pa._n 480._o another_o then_o she_o which_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n patrick_n about_o the_o year_n 520._o she_o be_v marry_v unto_o the_o king_n of_o sweden_n a_o most_o devout_a woman_n say_v platin._n and_o canonize_v as_o a_o saint_n and_o prophetess_n be_v persuade_v by_o the_o friar_n with_o the_o same_o of_o rome_n she_o go_v thither_o in_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n urban_n the_o v._o hope_v to_o find_v great_a comfort_n there_o but_o in_o her_o revelation_n she_o call_v the_o pope_n a_o murderer_n of_o soul_n a_o destroyer_n of_o christ_n flock_n more_o abominable_a than_o the_o jew_n more_o odious_a than_o judas_n more_o unjust_a than_o pilate_n worse_o than_o lucifer_n she_o say_v his_o seat_n be_v to_o be_v drown_v like_o a_o heavy_a stone_n and_o his_o assessor_n be_v to_o burn_v in_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n unquenchable_a she_o rebuke_v the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n that_o through_o their_o default_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o preach_v yea_o it_o be_v abolish_v and_o they_o have_v change_v all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n into_o two_o word_n give_v money_n in_o the_o end_n she_o say_v she_o hear_v the_o virgin_n say_v to_o her_o son_n rome_n be_v a_o fertile_a land_n and_o christ_n answer_v it_o be_v so_o but_o of_o tare_n she_o say_v also_o that_o her_o come_n to_o rome_n be_v to_o cast_v away_o rather_o than_o confirm_v the_o opinion_n that_o she_o have_v conceive_v of_o it_o these_o revelation_n have_v be_v often_o print_v 9_o thomas_n bradwardin_n be_v a_o fellow_n in_o merton_n college_n of_o oxford_n and_o afterward_o chancellor_n of_o london_n and_o common_o call_v the_o profound_a doctor_n about_o the_o year_n 1330._o he_o have_v many_o dispute_n with_o the_o schoolman_n against_o the_o error_n of_o pelagius_n and_o reduce_v all_o his_o lesson_n into_o three_o book_n which_o he_o entitle_v de_fw-fr causa_fw-la dei_fw-la he_o begin_v thus_o i_o have_v be_v solicit_v earnest_o by_o the_o petition_n of_o great_a and_o many_o man_n that_o what_o i_o have_v speak_v only_o by_o voice_n in_o dispute_n concern_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n against_o pelagius_n and_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o cause_n i_o will_v tie_v it_o unto_o durable_a writ_n but_o here_o be_v two_o thing_n as_o the_o lover_n of_o god_n do_v provoke_v and_o encourage_v i_o into_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n so_o the_o friend_n of_o pelagius_n be_v far_o more_o in_o number_n do_v hinder_v and_o terrify_v i_o for_o which_o i_o speak_v not_o without_o inward_a sorrow_n of_o heart_n as_o of_o old_a eight_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o prophet_n of_o baal_n be_v against_o the_o one_o prophet_n of_o god_n and_o innumerable_a people_n do_v cleave_v unto_o they_o so_o it_o be_v now_o in_o this_o cause_n how_o many_o o_o lord_n fight_z now_o with_o pelagius_n for_o free_a will_n against_o thy_o free_a grace_n and_o against_o paul_n the_o spiritual_a soldier_n of_o grace_n how_o many_o do_v to_o day_n despise_v free_a grace_n and_o proud_o think_v that_o free_a will_n be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n or_o if_o they_o do_v use_v the_o word_n of_o grace_n they_o do_v but_o perfunctorious_o feign_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a but_o they_o boast_v that_o they_o deserve_v by_o the_o power_n of_o freewill_n to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v salvation_n seem_v unto_o they_o to_o be_v not_o a_o free_a gift_n but_o a_o buy_v good_a because_o o_o god_n almighty_n these_o wild_a man_n presume_v of_o the_o power_n of_o their_o free_a will_n refuse_v the_o aid_n of_o thy_o work_n in_o their_o working_n and_o say_v with_o those_o depart_v thou_o from_o we_o moreover_o lord_n how_o many_o advance_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o own_o will_n and_o will_v not_o serve_v thou_o or_o if_o they_o confess_v with_o their_o lip_n that_o thou_o work_v with_o they_o yet_o with_o these_o thy_o proud_a and_o hateful_a subject_n they_o will_v not_o have_v thou_o to_o reign_v over_o they_o yea_o and_o proud_a than_o lucifer_n they_o be_v not_o content_a to_o be_v equal_a with_o thou_o king_n of_o king_n but_o most_o impudent_o they_o will_v reign_v above_o thou_o for_o they_o fear_v not_o to_o say_v that_o their_o own_o will_n go_v first_o in_o action_n as_o the_o lady_n and_o thou_o follow_v as_o the_o servant_n ......_o o_o lord_n my_o god_n i_o can_v think_v it_o without_o sigh_n how_o many_o and_o great_a judge_n endeavour_v careful_o to_o absolve_v and_o reconcile_v the_o pelagian_a error_n that_o be_v condemn_v in_o ancient_a time_n and_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o bound_n of_o all_o the_o church_n how_o many_o presumptuous_a advocate_n plead_v for_o they_o how_o many_o damnable_a proctor_n they_o procure_v on_o their_o side_n how_o many_o not_o have_v two_o argument_n of_o any_o art_n do_v turn_n to_o kill_a argument_n and_o at_o least_o to_o advance_v the_o cause_n of_o pelagius_n attempt_v to_o cast_v down_o thy_o cause_n with_o their_o cry_n horror_n reproach_n vice_n laughter_n and_o gesture_n how_o many_o and_o how_o innumerable_a people_n favour_v they_o for_o almost_o all_o the_o world_n go_v after_o pelagius_n arise_v lord_n judge_v thy_o own_o cause_n then_o he_o show_v how_o he_o be_v comfort_v in_o a_o vision_n or_o dream_n that_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v prevail_v against_o pelagius_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o add_v with_o how_o many_o martyrdom_n with_o pelagianisin_n the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o pelagianisin_n how_o many_o wound_n do_v the_o holy_a father_n cut_v down_o the_o wood_n of_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n and_o how_o many_o venomous_a branch_n do_v still_o spring_v and_o wax_v out_o of_o these_o old_a root_n as_o it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v yet_o for_o first_o when_o their_o arch-heretick_n lucifer_n will_v not_o be_v under_o and_o with_o god_n michael_n throw_v he_o down_o then_o arise_v cain_n think_v that_o a_o sinner_n be_v not_o justify_v of_o god_n free_o by_o grace_n give_v free_o but_o by_o his_o antecedent_n merit_n when_o he_o in_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n be_v
indulgence_n so_o liberal_o confirm_v the_o people_n in_o their_o superstition_n and_o pharasaical_a opinion_n of_o work_n but_o what_o be_v there_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n or_o promote_a piety_n they_o be_v wont_v to_o object_v several_a pretence_n of_o their_o religion_n which_o may_v be_v reduce_v into_o ten_o 1._o the_o stateliness_n of_o their_o church_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o emptiness_n and_o baseness_n of_o other_o 2._o their_o unnion_n and_o harmony_n when_o other_o fall_v into_o shivers_n 3._o their_o antiquity_n and_o other_o be_v but_o of_o yesterday_n 4._o they_o press_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v once_o true_a and_o then_o they_o infer_v therefore_o they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n as_o yet_o since_o the_o true_a church_n can_v perish_v nor_o be_v change_v in_o the_o essential_o 5._o they_o call_v for_o the_o time_n place_n and_o person_n when_o where_o and_o by_o who_o the_o change_n come_v 6._o where_o do_v our_o church_n lurk_v so_o long_o 7._o the_o author_n of_o the_o reformation_n have_v no_o commission_n to_o attempt_v it_o 8._o they_o vaunt_v of_o their_o succession_n without_o interruption_n 9_o they_o glory_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n which_o can_v be_v deem_v to_o be_v still_o with_o they_o 10._o they_o bewitch_v the_o people_n with_o ambitious_a ostentation_n of_o innumerable_a friar_n who_o among_o they_o have_v renounce_v the_o world_n that_o they_o may_v attain_v eternal_a life_n all_o these_o pretence_n be_v clear_o refute_v by_o io._n calvin_n lib._n de_fw-fr scandalis_n and_o after_o he_o by_o io._n cameron_n lib._n de_fw-fr rom._n ecclesiae_fw-la praejudiciis_fw-la in_o a_o direct_a and_o dogmatical_a way_n but_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v sensible_o demonstrate_v to_o be_v but_o idle_a word_n by_o history_n where_o we_o see_v they_o all_o confute_v not_o only_o by_o such_o as_o do_v separate_v or_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o even_o by_o such_o as_o live_v and_o die_v in_o it_o without_o any_o separation_n except_o in_o judgement_n the_o papist_n can_v deny_v but_o plain_o confess_v that_o their_o church_n be_v corrupt_v both_o in_o the_o pretend_a head_n and_o member_n in_o respect_n of_o manner_n so_o that_o a_o reformation_n be_v necessary_a but_o they_o deny_v the_o corruption_n in_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n and_o they_o say_v though_o the_o pope_n be_v wicked_a man_n yet_o they_o want_v not_o their_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n and_o of_o dispense_n the_o sacred_a mystery_n unto_o the_o first_o part_n the_o apostle_n say_v when_o some_o have_v put_v away_o a_o good_a conscience_n they_o make_v shipwreck_n concern_v the_o faith_n on_o these_o word_n chrysostom_n say_v that_o be_v true_o say_v for_o where_o the_o life_n be_v rebukable_a such_o doctrine_n must_v needs_o follow_v and_o so_o you_o may_v see_v very_o many_o to_o have_v fall_v into_o the_o pit_n of_o misery_n and_o to_o have_v return_v into_o heathenish_a rite_n for_o lest_o they_o be_v torment_v with_o the_o fear_n of_o evil_n to_o come_v they_o endeavour_v every_o way_n to_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v false_a which_o our_o religion_n teach_v and_o so_o they_o turn_v from_o the_o faith_n according_o the_o history_n show_v that_o some_o pope_n have_v deny_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o have_v call_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n a_o fable_n as_o for_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n it_o be_v not_o so_o from_o the_o beginning_n as_o it_o be_v now_o neither_o ecclesiastical_a nor_o civil_a for_o other_o bishop_n have_v power_n within_o their_o own_o diocy_n without_o dependence_n upon_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o milan_n of_o ravenna_n and_o other_o in_o italy_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o other_o nation_n and_o pope_n gregory_n the_o i._o as_o other_o before_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n as_o his_o lord_n and_o himself_o his_o servant_n afterward_o the_o pope_n do_v salute_v the_o emperor_n as_o his_o son_n and_o by_o degree_n they_o make_v the_o emperor_n their_o vassal_n servant_n and_o lackey_n so_o that_o if_o peter_n and_o paul_n be_v alive_a on_o earth_n they_o will_v certain_o deny_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v their_o successor_n because_o they_o differ_v beside_o many_o other_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n so_o far_o in_o the_o point_n of_o subjection_n or_o rather_o exalt_v themselves_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n yea_o certain_o they_o will_v call_v the_o pope_n the_o antichrist_n according_a to_o what_o they_o have_v write_v in_o 2_o thess_n 2._o and_o 2_o pet._n 2._o the_o romanist_n say_v that_o in_o this_o point_n they_o have_v advantage_n against_o we_o because_o the_o ancient_n have_v write_v that_o antichrist_n must_v be_v one_o person_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n sit_v in_o jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n true_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n the_o most_o learned_a be_v mistake_v i_o except_v the_o apostle_n concern_v the_o antichrist_n since_o the_o prophecy_n can_v not_o be_v thorough_o understand_v before_o they_o be_v in_o some_o good_a measure_n accomplish_v but_o if_o we_o inquire_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a and_o prudent_a man_n in_o the_o middle_a time_n concern_v the_o antichrist_n and_o general_o of_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n we_o may_v receive_v more_o sure_a information_n and_o certain_o those_o be_v the_o best_a witness_n of_o what_o be_v do_v in_o their_o day_n a_o good_a number_n of_o their_o testimony_n in_o all_o rank_n i_o have_v compile_v for_o this_o end_n in_o this_o book_n which_o be_v humble_o present_v unto_o your_o highness_n first_o trust_v that_o under_o your_o patronage_n other_o may_v the_o more_o willing_o look_v upon_o it_o and_o be_v inform_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o then_o with_o confidence_n it_o shall_v be_v gracious_o accept_v because_o saepè_fw-la tibi_fw-la deus_fw-la hic_fw-la saepe_fw-la legentur_fw-la avi_fw-la with_o the_o same_o travel_n of_o read_v in_o your_o tender_a year_n your_o highness_n may_v learn_v both_o the_o condition_n of_o god_n church_n in_o former_a time_n and_o the_o life_n of_o your_o glorious_a ancestor_n emperor_n and_o king_n of_o who_o you_o have_v your_o illustrious_a descent_n and_o so_o from_o they_o you_o may_v know_v how_o to_o serve_v god_n and_o how_o to_o deport_v yourself_o in_o all_o the_o day_n of_o your_o pilgrimage_n that_o you_o may_v be_v glorious_a in_o heaven_n and_o the_o follow_a age_n may_v have_v your_o example_n outvy_v and_o outstrip_v if_o possible_a all_o the_o williams_n charlse_n henries_n james_n adolphs_n and_o other_o in_o christian_a prudence_n righteousness_n prowess_n and_o temperance_n so_o pray_v your_o highness_n most_o humble_a and_o obedient_a servant_n alex._n petrie_n the_o first_o table_n show_v some_o text_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v now_o controvert_v and_o how_o they_o be_v expound_v in_o former_a time_n for_o understand_v these_o table_n it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o because_o the_o book_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n in_o respect_n of_o number_v the_o page_n therefore_o in_o the_o table_n the_o letter_n s_n signify_v the_o second_o part_n and_o the_o number_n follow_v direct_v unto_o the_o second_o part_n and_o where_o s_n be_v not_o the_o number_n direct_v unto_o the_o first_o part_n likewise_o as_o if_o every_o page_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n the_o letter_z b_o point_v at_o the_o beginning_n or_o first_o part_n of_o the_o page_n the_o letter_n m_o at_o the_o middle_n or_o second_o part_n or_o thereby_o and_o the_o letter_n e_o at_o the_o end_n or_o three_o part_n in_o this_o first_o table_n the_o letter_n p_o stands_z between_o the_o number_n of_o the_o verse_n and_o of_o the_o page_n psal_n li_n 17._o p._n 100_o lxii_o 12._o p._n 27._o e_fw-la cxx_o 3._o p._n 102._o m_o zach._n xi_o 17._o p._n 473._o e_fw-la matth._n xii_o 46._o p._n 212._o e_o xvi_o 18._o p._n 97._o m_o &_o 157._o m_o &_o 172._o e_o &_o 211._o m_o &_o 212._o e_o &_o 293._o e_o &_o 244._o e_o &_o 317._o e_o &_o 331._o m_o &_o 435._o e_o &_o 488._o b._n &_o 576._o m_o &_o s._n 291._o e_fw-la xvi_o 19_o p._n 213._o b_o &_o 543._o e_fw-la xxiii_o 37._o p._n 370._o m_o xxiv_o 24._o p._n 28._o e_fw-la xxvi_o 39_o p._n 349._o m_o luk._n i._o 28._o 35._o p._n 174._o m_o xvi_o 31._o p._n 213._o m_o xxii_o 19_o p._n 98._o e_fw-la 31._o p._n 475._o b_o 32._o p._n 543._o e_fw-la 38._o p._n 347._o m_o joh._n i._o 16._o p._n 27._o e_fw-la 17._o p._n 213._o m_o iii_o 13._o p._n 213._o e_fw-la &_o 223._o m_o s._n 306._o m_o vi_o 35._o p._n 214._o b_o 53._o p._n 102._o m_o 55_o 56._o p._n 175._o m_o 63._o p._n 214._o m_o x._o 1_o 2_o 3._o p._n 214._o m_o &_o 223._o e_fw-la 10_o &_o 28._o p._n 175._o m_o
who_o be_v most_o holy_a have_v give_v unto_o yourself_o what_o you_o have_v allow_v unto_o i_o for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o holy_a church_n be_v strengthen_v by_o the_o solidity_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n because_o he_o carry_v strength_n of_o mind_n in_o his_o name_n that_o he_o be_v call_v petrus_n à_fw-fr petra_n to_o he_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v say_v unto_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o again_o when_o thou_o be_v convert_v strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n and_o again_o simon_n love_v thou_o i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o so_o though_o the_o apostle_n be_v many_o yet_o only_o the_o see_v of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o see_v be_v but_o one_o in_o three_o place_n and_o have_v prevail_v pro_fw-la ipso_fw-la principatu_fw-la for_o he_o have_v advance_v the_o see_v where_o he_o will_v rest_v and_o finish_v his_o life_n and_o he_o have_v beautify_v the_o see_v whereinto_o he_o send_v the_o evangelist_n a_o disciple_n and_o he_o have_v strengthen_v the_o see_v antiochia_n in_o which_o he_o sit_v 7._o year_n albeit_o he_o be_v to_o leave_v it_o see_v then_o the_o see_v be_v one_o and_o of_o one_o wherein_o now_o by_o divine_a authority_n three_o bishop_n do_v govern_v whatsoever_o good_a i_o do_v hear_v of_o you_o i_o account_v it_o my_o own_o and_o if_o you_o hear_v any_o good_a of_o i_o impute_v it_o unto_o your_o merit_n because_o we_o be_v all_o one_o in_o he_o who_o say_v that_o they_o may_v be_v all_o one_o as_o thou_o father_n art_n in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o so_o far_o he_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o whatsoever_o may_v be_v understand_v by_o the_o title_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n other_o bishop_n do_v oppose_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v proper_a to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o gregory_n be_v content_a to_o share_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o antiochia_n and_o alexandria_n likewise_o basilius_n bishop_n of_o cappadocia_n in_o his_o 55._o epistle_n call_v ambrose_n who_o be_v bishop_n of_o milan_n bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_v of_o the_o apostle_n certain_o not_o because_o any_o apostle_n be_v ever_o bishop_n of_o milan_n but_o because_o as_o ambrose_n hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o at_o that_o time_n milan_n be_v the_o court_n of_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n his_o residence_n as_o basil_n say_v in_o the_o same_o epistle_n unto_o that_o town_n be_v the_o princedom_n of_o the_o whole_a roman_a nation_n concredit_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v ground_v in_o this_o manner_n upon_o so_o sandy_a reason_n have_v be_v usurp_v and_o enlarge_v by_o slight_a and_o might_n through_o many_o age_n and_o at_o that_o time_n give_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o great_a schism_n betwixt_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n and_o among_o the_o latin_n themselves_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o ravenna_n and_o milan_n will_v not_o consent_v to_o the_o supremacy_n as_o follow_v and_o therefore_o ravenna_n in_o contempt_n be_v call_v acephalos_fw-la or_o headless_a and_o the_o bishop_n of_o venice_n and_o istria_n will_v not_o subject_v themselves_o phyl._n mornay_n in_o myster_n iniq_fw-la pag._n 117._o this_o boniface_n denounce_v a_o curse_n to_o all_o they_o who_o climb_v unto_o a_o bishopric_n by_o favour_n of_o man_n or_o bribery_n he_o ordain_v that_o bishop_n the_o election_n of_o a_o bishop_n the_o election_n of_o a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v by_o consent_n both_o of_o people_n and_o clergy_n and_o be_v ratify_v when_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v approve_v of_o it_o and_o the_o pope_n shall_v add_v his_o volumus_fw-la &_o mandamus_fw-la platina_n gregory_n say_v he_o will_v not_o command_v but_o only_o he_o will_v intimate_v or_o show_v such_o thing_n as_o he_o think_v expedient_a lib._n 7._o ep._n 30._o but_o then_o boniface_n and_o all_o his_o successor_n in_o all_o their_o constitution_n grant_n and_o bull_n have_v no_o word_n so_o frequent_a as_o jubemus_fw-la &_o mandamus_fw-la he_o sit_v 9_o month_n 4._o boniface_n four_o succeed_v a_o 608._o say_v onuphrius_n phocas_n give_v church_n paganisin_n creep_v into_o the_o romish_a church_n unto_o he_o the_o temple_n that_o be_v call_v pantheon_n that_o be_v of_o cybele_n and_o all_o other_o god_n and_o he_o dedicate_v it_o unto_o mary_n and_o all_o other_o saint_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v virgo_fw-la ac_fw-la martyr_n platin._n a_o noble_a change_n not_o from_o paganism_n to_o christianity_n but_o from_o one_o sort_n of_o idolatry_n to_o another_o neither_o be_v this_o his_o deed_n only_o but_o of_o many_o other_o pope_n as_o bellarmin_n show_v de_fw-la cultu_fw-la sanctor_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o and_o therefore_o agrippa_n de_fw-fr vanit_fw-la scient_a cap._n 58._o say_v we_o know_v this_o be_v the_o old_a superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n to_o build_v to_o each_o god_n their_o own_o temple_n to_o who_o imitation_n afterward_o christian_n begin_v to_o dedicate_v their_o church_n unto_o their_o divis._n in_o that_o chapter_n agrippa_n tax_v his_o romanist_n 1._o that_o they_o think_v god_n hear_v prayer_n more_o in_o one_o place_n than_o in_o another_o albeit_o christ_n bid_v enter_v into_o our_o chamber_n and_o he_o himself_o go_v unto_o the_o mountain_n to_o pray_v 2._o he_o reprove_v the_o multitude_n of_o their_o church_n chapel_n and_o oratory_n build_v and_o adorn_v so_o sumptuous_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o poor_a and_o live_a member_n of_o christ_n be_v starve_v for_o want_n of_o necessary_n from_o augustin_n contra_fw-la maximin_n lib._n 1._o argum_fw-la 11._o de_fw-fr sp._n san._n we_o may_v learn_v a_o three_o fault_n of_o this_o kind_n if_o we_o build_v say_v he_o a_o church_n of_o stone_n or_o tree_n unto_o any_o most_o excellent_a angel_n be_v we_o not_o accurse_v and_o anathematise_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n because_o than_o we_o give_v unto_o a_o creature_n that_o service_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o god_n only_o hereunto_o do_v bellarmin_n subscribe_v say_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o build_v church_n and_o altar_n be_v a_o service_n due_a to_o god_n alone_o de_fw-fr beatit_fw-fr sanctor_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 12._o but_o in_o lib._n 3._o de_fw-la cultu_fw-la sanctor_n he_o varnish_v this_o practice_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n say_v we_o build_v not_o church_n to_o our_o martyr_n as_o to_o god_n but_o as_o monument_n to_o dead_a man_n who_o spirit_n live_v with_o god_n he_o add_v other_o answer_n but_o such_o as_o he_o trust_v not_o himself_o and_o the_o most_o solid_a as_o he_o say_v be_v holy_a house_n may_v be_v build_v true_o and_o proper_o to_o saint_n yet_o not_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n or_o temple_n but_o basilica_n or_o memoria_fw-la to_o omit_v the_o identity_n of_o the_o word_n agrippa_n say_v before_o they_o build_v church_n unto_o their_o divi_z and_o erasmus_n on_o the_o margin_n above_o the_o forenamed_a word_n of_o augustine_n have_v mark_v this_o be_v do_v now_o to_o each_o one_o of_o the_o divi._n but_o experience_n be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n that_o almost_o all_o the_o church_n under_o the_o obedience_n of_o rome_n have_v their_o name_n from_o saint_n nor_o be_v they_o call_v the_o memory_n or_o monument_n but_o the_o church_n of_o saint_n peter_n or_o some_o other_o saint_n and_o in_o latin_a templa_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la and_o in_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o bellarmin_n witness_v de_fw-la cultu_fw-la sanct._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o werefore_o we_o may_v see_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v turn_v the_o old_a idolatry_n into_o a_o new_a sort_n of_o idolatry_n give_v their_o new_a god_n more_o fine_a and_o superstitious_a worship_n this_o boniface_n do_v first_o day_n all-hallow_a day_n ordain_v the_o feast_n of_o all-saint_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v say_v mass_n that_o day_n catal._n test_n verit_fw-la lib._n 6._o he_o turn_v his_o father_n house_n into_o a_o monastery_n and_o sit_v 7._o year_n then_o the_o seat_n be_v vacant_a 6._o month_n for_o many_o strive_v for_o the_o pre-eminence_n rather_o than_o for_o the_o cure_n of_o soul_n at_o last_o 5._o deusdedit_n or_o theodatus_fw-la the_o son_n of_o a_o marry_a priest_n be_v choose_v and_o sit_v 3._o year_n this_o only_o be_v write_v of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o holy_a man_n and_o that_o he_o heal_v a_o man_n sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n by_o a_o kiss_n only_o and_o that_o he_o ordain_v that_o the_o son_n of_o he_o who_o have_v be_v witness_n of_o the_o baptism_n of_o a_o infant_n shall_v not_o marry_v that_o infant_n be_v a_o woman_n platin._n and_o hereby_o he_o enlarge_v spiritual_a alliance_n as_o they_o call_v it_o which_o be_v begin_v by_o gregory_n who_o alliance_n
shall_v be_v use_v in_o all_o church_n and_o chapel_n but_o many_o do_v expound_v that_o sign_n the_o contrary_a way_n and_o will_v not_o receive_v it_o till_o charles_n do_v command_v all_o bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o use_v it_o through_o his_o dominion_n he_o cause_v the_o mass_n of_o ambrose_n to_o be_v burn_v and_o throw_v many_o priest_n into_o prison_n who_o refuse_v to_o accept_v the_o new_a mass_n the_o church_n of_o milan_n will_v not_o change_v walafrid_n strabo_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 900._o testify_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr exordiis_fw-la rer_n cap._n 25._o that_o in_o his_o time_n the_o roman_a mass_n be_v not_o universal_o in_o all_o church_n but_o almost_o say_v he_o in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o no_o benedictine_n monk_n do_v read_v it_o in_o the_o six_o tom_n of_o biblioth_n patr._n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr bigne_n be_v many_o book_n of_o several_a author_n explain_v at_o that_o time_n the_o signification_n of_o the_o ceremony_n enjoin_v in_o that_o mass_n their_o dedicatory_a epistle_n and_o preface_n show_v that_o they_o be_v put_v upon_o that_o work_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n and_o some_o time-serving_a bishop_n and_o the_o great_a number_n of_o those_o book_n be_v a_o evident_a proof_n of_o great_a opposition_n against_o that_o mass_n and_o the_o rite_n thereof_o although_o the_o book_n of_o the_o adversary_n have_v be_v keep_v down_o by_o the_o prevail_a party_n hereunto_o serve_v what_o antoninus_n the_o voltelina_n a_o dominican_n say_v in_o the_o council_n at_o trent_n as_o be_v write_v hiss_v lib._n 6._o it_o be_v clear_a by_o history_n that_o of_o old_a every_o church_n have_v their_o own_o ritual_n of_o the_o mass_n bring_v in_o day_n by_o day_n rather_o of_o custom_n than_o by_o judgement_n or_o constitution_n and_o that_o the_o lesser_a church_n do_v follow_v their_o metropolitan_a or_o their_o neighbour_n great_a church_n but_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v receive_v in_o many_o province_n for_o gatifi_a the_o pope_n and_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v yet_o many_o church_n who_o rite_n differ_v very_o much_o from_o the_o roman_a even_o in_o italy_n remain_v the_o rite_n of_o milan_n differ_v from_o the_o other_o in_o the_o principal_a part_n thereof_o and_o that_o the_o same_o roman_a have_v suffer_v many_o change_n be_v clear_a unto_o any_o who_o read_v the_o old_a book_n call_v ordo_fw-la romanus_n neither_o in_o ancient_a time_n only_o but_o within_o these_o few_o age_n certain_o before_o 300._o year_n the_o rite_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o same_o which_o the_o priest_n observe_v now_o in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n but_o which_o the_o order_n of_o the_o dominican_n do_v retain_v moreover_o say_v he_o the_o vestment_n vessel_n and_o other_o ornament_n both_o of_o the_o minister_n and_o of_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v now_o in_o use_n be_v so_o new_a and_o transchanged_a as_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v observe_v by_o look_v on_o the_o book_n and_o picture_n that_o if_o the_o old_a thing_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o world_n again_o none_o will_v know_v they_o wherefore_o if_o the_o father_n will_v bind_v themselves_o to_o approve_v the_o only_a rite_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n they_o can_v want_v reproof_n as_o by_o prejudice_n condemn_v antiquity_n and_o the_o rite_n of_o all_o other_o church_n and_o so_o expose_v themselves_o unto_o the_o sinistrous_a interpretation_n of_o man_n wherefore_o it_o be_v better_a to_o set_v upon_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o mass_n without_o any_o mention_n of_o the_o rite_n and_o in_o declare_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o then-present_a custom_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o that_o which_o be_v call_v ordo_fw-la romanus_n he_o name_v especial_o that_o in_o this_o the_o communion_n be_v give_v under_o both_o the_o species_n unto_o the_o people_n some_o be_v offend_v at_o his_o freedom_n of_o speech_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o quinquecclesiensis_fw-la do_v open_o profess_v that_o the_o friar_n have_v speak_v true_o neither_o can_v any_o who_o love_v truth_n be_v offend_v with_o he_o hence_o it_o appear_v clear_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v subject_a to_o novation_n from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o the_o missal_n now_o be_v not_o the_o old_a book_n of_o pope_n gregory_n the_o i._o more_n of_o the_o mass_n follow_v in_o the_o next_o century_n 10._o in_o the_o six_o tom_n of_o the_o forenamed_a biblioth_n patr._n be_v a_o remarkable_a piece_n fortunatus_n amularius_fw-la fortunatus_n of_o amalarius_n fortunatus_n trithemius_n call_v he_o hamularius_n a_o very_a learned_a man_n in_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a language_n a_o monk_n of_o luxovia_n in_o the_o preface_n he_o show_v that_o he_o have_v write_v another_o book_n of_o divine_a service_n and_o thereafter_o he_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o inquire_v of_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o rite_n different_a there_o from_o other_o church_n and_o so_o he_o do_v write_v four_o other_o book_n wherein_o he_o describe_v what_o he_o have_v hear_v and_o what_o he_o think_v himself_o on_o the_o contrary_a yet_o in_o a_o mild_a and_o moderate_a way_n whether_o for_o fear_n to_o offend_v or_o in_o hope_n to_o prevail_v with_o fair_a information_n it_o be_v uncertain_a he_o say_v in_o all_o that_o i_o write_v i_o hang_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o godly_a man_n and_o holy_a father_n and_o withal_o i_o say_v what_o i_o think_v what_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v do_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n passion_n as_o he_o command_v say_v how_o oft_o you_o do_v this_o do_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o therefore_o the_o priest_n in_o offer_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o water_n in_o the_o sacrament_n represent_v christ_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n do_v represent_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n sacrament_n shall_v have_v a_o similitude_n of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v a_o sacrament_n wherefore_o let_v the_o priest_n be_v like_a unto_o christ_n so_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o priest_n upon_o the_o altar_n be_v like_a unto_o that_o of_o christ_n on_o the_o cross_n that_o which_o be_v offer_v in_o resemblance_n of_o christ_n the_o priest_n commend_v it_o unto_o god_n the_o father_n let_v the_o judicious_a hearer_n consider_v for_o who_o be_v the_o prayer_n that_o the_o priest_n say_v after_o the_o communion_n and_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o sound_v for_o they_o who_o be_v refresh_v with_o the_o heavenly_a bread_n no_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a lib._n 3._o in_o prof_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o the_o bishop_n or_o priest_n do_v only_o bless_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n whereby_o people_n may_v be_v refresh_v as_o in_o ancient_a time_n it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o apostle_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 14._o he_o say_v no_o creature_n do_v i_o by_o reverence_v adore_v but_o god_n all_o substance_n which_o be_v not_o god_n be_v a_o creature_n and_o a_o creature_n be_v not_o god_n the_o cross_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v set_v before_o i_o but_o in_o my_o mind_n i_o hold_v christ_n as_o hang_v on_o it_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o prayer_n declare_v who_o we_o adore_v we_o say_v we_o adore_v thy_o cross_n o_o lord_n and_o we_o commend_v and_o glorify_v thy_o holy_a resurrection_n here_o be_v no_o word_n of_o pray_v but_o of_o show_v the_o adorable_a cross_n and_o the_o commendable_a resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o in_o another_o place_n we_o say_v god_n who_o by_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o thy_o only_o beget_v son_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v be_v please_v to_o redeem_v we_o grant_v gracious_o that_o who_o come_v to_o adore_v the_o life-giving_a cross_n may_v be_v free_v from_o the_o bond_n of_o their_o sin_n to_o who_o i_o pray_v he_o i_o adore_v i_o be_o cast_v down_o in_o body_n before_o the_o cross_n but_o in_o my_o soul_n before_o god_n i_o reverence_v the_o cross_n by_o which_o i_o be_v redeem_v but_o i_o pray_v unto_o he_o who_o have_v redeem_v i_o then_o he_o have_v a_o story_n of_o oswald_n king_n of_o england_n who_o he_o call_v faithful_a and_o most_o christian_a how_o he_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o his_o enemy_n cause_v a_o cross_n to_o be_v set_v up_o on_o a_o tree_n that_o come_v first_o unto_o his_o hand_n in_o the_o field_n and_o say_v unto_o his_o army_n let_v we_o all_o bow_n our_o knee_n and_o all_o pray_v together_o unto_o the_o almighty_a live_v and_o true_a god_n that_o he_o of_o his_o mercy_n will_v defend_v we_o from_o our_o proud_a and_o fierce_a enemy_n for_o he_o know_v that_o we_o have_v undertake_v war_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o our_o nation_n they_o all_o do_v as_o he_o command_v and_o in_o the_o dawn_n they_o obtain_v victory_n according_a to_o their_o faith_n here_o amular_a gather_v no_o conclusion_n
canon_n that_o each_o presbyter_n dwell_v in_o a_o parish_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o bishop_n in_o who_o parish_n he_o dwell_v and_o always_o in_o lent_n that_o he_o show_v and_o give_v account_n of_o their_o ministry_n whether_o of_o baptism_n or_o catholic_n faith_n and_o prayer_n and_o order_n of_o mass_n then_o he_o forbid_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o dead_a and_o other_o profane_a rite_n of_o heathen_n he_o appoint_v punishment_n against_o the_o fornication_n and_o adultery_n of_o monk_n in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o monk_n and_o nun_n shall_v live_v within_o their_o abbey_n and_o almshouse_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o father_n benedict_n council_n tom_fw-mi 2._o edit_n crab._n behold_v how_o little_a mention_n be_v here_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 2._o in_o the_o year_n 747._o at_o clonesho_n in_o england_n be_v a_o frequent_a synod_n where_o clonesho_n at_o clonesho_n it_o be_v decree_v 1._o that_o bishop_n shall_v be_v more_o diligent_a in_o take_v heed_n to_o their_o charge_n and_o admonish_a people_n of_o their_o fault_n 2._o they_o shall_v maintain_v the_o devotion_n of_o true_a peace_n and_o love_n and_o serve_v god_n in_o the_o same_o faith_n hope_n and_o love_n pray_v for_o one_o another_o mutual_o 3._o that_o once_o in_o the_o year_n each_o bishop_n shall_v visit_v all_o the_o parish_n of_o his_o diocy_n and_o restrain_v the_o heathenish_a observation_n which_o as_o yet_o be_v among_o the_o people_n 4._o that_o none_o shall_v be_v admit_v into_o order_n till_o his_o life_n and_o conversation_n and_o literature_n be_v examine_v 7._o that_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n shall_v diligent_o take_v heed_n that_o all_o under_o they_o be_v diligent_a in_o read_v for_o instruction_n of_o soul_n for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v lament_v say_v they_o that_o so_o few_o be_v find_v to_o be_v ravish_v with_o the_o love_n of_o holy_a knowiedge_n but_o be_v rather_o miscarried_n with_o vanity_n and_o love_n of_o idle_a glory_n and_o trace_v not_o the_o study_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 10._o that_o presbyter_n shall_v learn_v to_o know_v all_o the_o duty_n of_o their_o office_n especial_o they_o shall_v learn_v to_o interpret_v in_o their_o own_o language_n the_o creed_n the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o word_n that_o be_v say_v in_o the_o mass_n and_o in_o baptism_n and_o they_o shall_v study_v to_o know_v what_o the_o word_n signify_v spiritual_o ●8_o that_o the_o fast_a of_o the_o four_o seven_o and_o the_o ten_o month_n shall_v be_v observe_v king_n aelfwald_n and_o offa_n be_v present_a and_o they_o two_o with_o many_o duke_n and_o count_n confirm_v the_o decree_n with_o their_o subscription_n spelman_n ad_fw-la an._n 747._o 3._o constantine_n copronymus_n assemble_v a_o council_n at_o constantinople_n of_o constantinople_n at_o constantinople_n 338._o bishop_n out_o of_o asia_n and_o europe_n an._n 755._o this_o they_o call_v the_o seven_o general_n council_n here_o be_v theodore_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n basil_n bishop_n of_o pisidia_n pastiles_n bishop_n of_o pergamenum_fw-la john_n of_o nicomedia_n cosmas_n of_o epiphania_fw-la in_o apamea_n etc._n etc._n the_o controversy_n of_o image_n be_v discuss_v germanus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n gregory_n bishop_n of_o cyprus_n and_o john_n damascene_fw-la patron_n of_o image_n be_v accurse_v and_o constantine_n bishop_n of_o salaeum_n be_v make_v patriarch_n image_n of_o christ_n of_o mary_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v condemn_v as_o have_v no_o warrant_n from_o christ_n nor_o the_o apostle_n nor_o the_o father_n and_o if_o any_o will_v say_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n only_o be_v condemn_v because_o they_o can_v represent_v his_o two_o nature_n but_o the_o apostle_n have_v two_o nature_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v be_v tolerate_v the_o synod_n answer_v it_o be_v the_o subtlety_n of_o devilish_a man_n follow_v the_o error_n of_o the_o gentile_n but_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o scripture_n god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o will_v be_v worship_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n but_o you_o hear_v his_o voice_n and_o bless_a be_v they_o who_o have_v not_o see_v and_o believe_v etc._n etc._n then_o they_o allege_v many_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n against_o image_n they_o conclude_v let_v none_o of_o whatsoever_o estate_n henceforth_o follow_v so_o wicked_a and_o impure_a institution_n who_o dare_v from_o henceforth_o make_v any_o image_n or_o worship_n or_o set_v up_o any_o image_n in_o a_o church_n or_o private_a house_n or_o have_v it_o privy_o if_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n or_o deacon_n let_v he_o be_v depose_v if_o he_o be_v a_o laic_a let_v he_o be_v accurse_v and_o subject_a to_o the_o emperor_n censure_n because_o he_o fight_v against_o the_o scripture_n nor_o observe_v the_o tradition_n etc._n etc._n last_o follow_v the_o canon_n accurse_v particular_o all_o they_o who_o have_v image_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v god_n or_o as_o he_o be_v man_n or_o as_o he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n in_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n or_o as_o if_o he_o be_v two_o person_n to_o paint_v on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o on_o the_o other_o the_o son_n of_o mary_n and_o they_o accurse_v all_o who_o have_v a_o image_n of_o any_o saint_n 4._o in_o the_o year_n 787._o by_o persuasion_n of_o tharasius_n patriarch_n irene_n call_v a_o council_n at_o constantinople_n here_o be_v pe._n vicedon_n a_o priest_n and_o pe._n hegumen_n a_o monk_n legate_n of_o pope_n adrian_n john_n patriarch_n of_o antiochia_n thomas_n of_o alexandria_n etc._n etc._n augustus_n make_v disputation_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n it_o be_v scan_v on_o both_o side_n tharasius_n and_o other_o bishop_n and_o monk_n be_v for_o they_o against_o they_o be_v basilius_n bishop_n of_o ancyra_n theodore_n bishop_n of_o myri_n theodosius_n bishop_n of_o amorio_n with_o many_o more_o bishop_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o teacher_n and_o layman_n the_o patriarch_n can_v not_o prevail_v by_o number_n and_o go_v about_o to_o exclude_v the_o better_a part_n from_o the_o synod_n or_o disputation_n whereupon_o a_o tumult_n be_v like_a to_o arise_v for_o the_o people_n can_v not_o be_v content_a that_o so_o great_a a_o part_n shall_v be_v debar_v when_o the_o patriarch_n see_v that_o he_o can_v not_o prevail_v the_o synod_n be_v dissolve_v the_o image-worshipper_n report_v this_o story_n as_o if_o their_o adversary_n have_v deal_v only_o by_o faction_n and_o not_o by_o reason_n but_o thus_o write_v pa._n diacon_n lib._n 23._o rer_n roman_n irene_n retain_v the_o legate_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o their_o advice_n banish_v a_o great_a number_n of_o they_o who_o they_o call_v iconomachi_n or_o fighter_n against_o image_n then_o she_o assemble_v another_o synod_n at_o nice_a in_o septemb_n an._n 788._o where_o the_o matter_n be_v quick_o dispatch_v as_o adrian_n and_o tharasius_n will_v when_o there_o be_v no_o great_a opposition_n to_o wit_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o act._n 3._o they_o decree_v that_o image_n shall_v be_v have_v embrace_v salute_v kiss_v and_o adore_v but_o that_o which_o be_v call_v latria_n they_o reserve_v unto_o the_o trinity_n only_o their_o chief_a pretence_n be_v because_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v to_o embrace_v and_o to_o love_v and_o the_o preposition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d add_v unto_o the_o signification_n as_o in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o what_o a_o man_n love_v or_o embrace_v that_o do_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o david_n do_v jonathan_n and_o christ_n say_v the_o pharisee_n love_v the_o first_o place_n at_o banquet_n and_o salutation_n in_o the_o market-place_n also_o the_o forenamed_a basil_n theodore_n and_o theodosius_n with_o the_o bishop_n hippatius_n of_o niece_n leo_n of_o rhodos_n gregory_n of_o pisidia_n gregory_n of_o pessinus_n leo_n of_o iconium_n nicolaus_n of_o hierapolis_n and_o leo_n of_o carpathe_n be_v persuade_v to_o profess_v repentance_n and_o confess_v a_o error_n in_o the_o former_a synod_n so_o image_n be_v set_v up_o and_o worship_v both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n say_v pa._n diacon_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la and_o zonar_n lib._n 3._o not_o long_o after_o constantine_n do_v annul_v the_o act_n of_o this_o convent_n platin._n which_o they_o call_v the_o seven_o general_n council_n baronius_n in_o annal_n ad_fw-la an._n 794._o show_v that_o many_o learned_a man_n and_o of_o great_a esteem_n in_o those_o day_n as_o ionas_n aurelianen_n walfrid_n hincmarus_n and_o other_o write_v against_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o direct_o do_v contradict_v that_o council_n although_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n yea_o and_o 5._o in_o the_o year_n 792._o charles_n the_o great_a summon_v a_o council_n at_o frankford_n frankford_n at_o frankford_n which_o he_o do_v moderate_a
the_o person_n of_o a_o highpriest_n but_o plaie_v the_o tyrant_n under_o the_o coat_n of_o a_o shepherd_n we_o find_v thou_o to_o be_v a_o wolf_n thou_o be_v call_v a_o father_n but_o false_o and_o thou_o show_v thyself_o a_o judas_n by_o thy_o deed_n when_o thou_o call_v thyself_o the_o servant_n of_o servant_n thou_o contend_v to_o be_v lord_n of_o lord_n and_o according_a to_o the_o discipline_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n thou_o be_v the_o low_a of_o all_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n church_n but_o in_o ambition_n thou_o run_v headlong_a whatsoever_o please_v thou_o be_v lawful_a and_o thou_o be_v become_v a_o drone_n to_o christian_n what_o remain_v but_o to_o call_v he_o the_o antichrist_n who_o the_o romanist_n call_v the_o three_o elias_n they_o conclude_v for_o these_o cause_n we_o with_o our_o brethren_n and_o colleague_n will_v neither_o stand_v at_o thy_o command_n nor_o acknowledge_v thy_o voice_n neither_o do_v we_o fear_v thy_o bull_n and_o thunder_n etc._n etc._n of_o his_o primacy_n they_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o church_n how_o far_o soever_o they_o be_v separate_v through_o the_o world_n the_o city_n of_o our_o god_n who_o citizen_n we_o be_v belong_v to_o the_o four_o airth_n or_o corner_n of_o heaven_n it_o be_v large_a than_o the_o city_n which_o the_o holy_a prophet_n have_v call_v babylon_n because_o she_o make_v her_o godhead_n equal_a unto_o the_o heaven_n and_o brag_v that_o she_o be_v eternal_a as_o if_o she_o be_v god_n have_v all_o wisdom_n and_o glori_v that_o she_o neither_o err_v nor_o can_v err_v ph._n morn_n in_o myster_n pag._n 175._o where_o also_o be_v another_o epistle_n write_v unto_o the_o same_o pope_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o french_a annal_n it_o conclude_v thus_o we_o will_v in_o no_o way_n receive_v thy_o wicked_a sentence_n which_o be_v far_o from_o the_o zeal_n of_o uprightness_n unjust_a unreasonable_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o canonical_a law_n yea_o with_o all_o the_o synod_n of_o our_o brethren_n we_o despise_v and_o contemn_v it_o as_o unlawful_a accurse_a and_o fond_o pronounce_v and_o true_o we_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o thou_o who_o be_v a_o favourer_n and_o partaker_n with_o accurse_a person_n and_o despiser_n of_o holy_a religion_n we_o be_v content_a with_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o society_n of_o brethren_n above_o who_o thou_o exalt_a thyself_o who_o thou_o despise_v and_o from_o who_o thou_o separate_v thyself_o by_o thy_o swell_a pride_n now_o we_o who_o have_v experience_n of_o thy_o craft_n and_o deceit_n and_o also_o know_v thy_o disdain_n and_o swell_a dominion_n we_o yield_v nothing_o nothing_o at_o all_o unto_o thou_o nor_o thy_o pride_n whereby_o thou_o indeavoure_v to_o overwhelm_v we_o all_o at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o our_o enemy_n who_o thou_o favour_v and_o thou_o shall_v know_v that_o we_o be_v not_o thy_o clark_n as_o thou_o vaunt_v of_o thyself_o but_o if_o thy_o pride_n will_v suffer_v thou_o thou_o shall_v acknowledge_v we_o thy_o brethren_n and_o fellow_n bishop_n hence_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o begin_v by_o experience_n to_o smell_v out_o where_o the_o antichrist_n or_o the_o man_n of_o pride_n be_v 15._o when_o the_o controversy_n be_v between_o charles_n the_o bald_a and_o the_o two_o king_n a_o lamentation_n for_o the_o church_n in_o her_o pretend_a head_n and_o remedy_n petition_v from_o king_n king_n of_o germany_n for_o the_o division_n of_o lorain_n or_o as_o ph._n morn_n speak_v for_o march_n luithpert_a bishop_n of_o mentz_n be_v so_o respect_v for_o his_o gift_n of_o prudence_n and_o holiness_n that_o the_o king_n do_v refer_v the_o decide_n of_o the_o controversy_n unto_o he_o when_o the_o pope_n do_v begin_v to_o usurp_v more_o and_o more_o upon_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n luithpert_n write_v unto_o king_n lewis_n thus_o the_o present_a cause_n permit_v i_o not_o to_o be_v silent_a any_o long_o which_o if_o i_o forsake_v i_o can_v be_v excusable_a before_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n unto_o who_o it_o appertain_v and_o i_o shall_v be_v conyict_a of_o my_o promise_n make_v unto_o your_o majesty_n if_o i_o sit_v in_o the_o watch_n wherein_o i_o be_o set_v do_v see_v danger_n come_v on_o you_o and_o with_o idle_a and_o unfaithful_a silence_n i_o dissemble_v and_o become_v slothful_a i_o will_v seem_v a_o hireling_n rather_o than_o a_o shepherd_n of_o the_o church_n the_o pastoral_a care_n of_o which_o unworthy_a i_o have_v take_v upon_o i_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v grievous_o shake_v and_o deface_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o saint_n peter_n even_o so_o that_o by_o a_o hide_a persecution_n the_o like_a have_v not_o be_v hear_v not_o by_o infidel_n or_o they_o who_o know_v not_o the_o lord_n but_o by_o they_o o_o how_o to_o be_v bewail_v who_o shall_v be_v guide_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n they_o endeavour_v to_o advance_v the_o doctrine_n of_o man_n above_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o malady_n of_o the_o head_n if_o it_o be_v not_o prevent_v by_o timely_a and_o wholesome_a medicine_n must_v needs_o spread_v through_o the_o member_n you_o know_v the_o danger_n of_o god_n people_n which_o be_v fearful_o approach_v neither_o can_v you_o be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o pastor_n at_o which_o the_o element_n do_v tremble_v who_o shall_v provide_v for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o weak_a have_v leave_v the_o pathway_n and_o themselves_o run_v into_o perdition_n and_o they_o open_v a_o ditch_n to_o so_o many_o as_o follow_v they_o wherefore_o i_o exhort_v your_o wisdom_n who_o love_v truth_n and_o righteousness_n that_o according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n give_v unto_o you_o from_o above_o you_o will_v deal_v with_o they_o which_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o love_n righteousness_n what_o way_n the_o scandal_n of_o dissension_n may_v be_v remove_v which_o the_o sour_a of_o tare_n by_o his_o craft_n cease_v not_o to_o spread_v and_o that_o peace_n and_o long_o wish_v for_o unity_n may_v be_v restore_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o the_o help_n of_o watchfulness_n may_v be_v have_v in_o time_n lest_o foolish_a negligence_n give_v way_n unto_o the_o wound_n for_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o yet_o wound_v although_o the_o head_n be_v smite_v with_o sore_n and_o several_a member_n seem_v to_o be_v disease_v and_o therefore_o the_o infirm_a must_v be_v help_v if_o they_o will_v accept_v of_o cure_n by_o those_o which_o be_v know_v to_o be_v whole_a and_o sound_a or_o they_o must_v be_v cut_n off_o according_a to_o the_o command_n of_o our_o physician_n lest_o the_o whole_a body_n perish_v wherefore_o it_o seem_v unto_o i_o both_o necessary_a and_o expedient_a that_o the_o religious_a prince_n charles_n your_o brother_n be_v in_o time_n request_v unto_o this_o purpose_n that_o as_o well_o he_o as_o the_o priest_n of_o his_o kingdom_n may_v meet_v with_o you_o and_o your_o bishop_n and_o may_v be_v partner_n of_o the_o same_o work_n with_o you_o that_o when_o you_o shall_v by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n return_v peaceable_o from_o your_o intend_a journey_n with_o one_o consent_n and_o common_a endeavour_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n you_o may_v restore_v peace_n and_o concord_n unto_o the_o catholic_n and_o apostolical_a church_n according_a to_o orthodox_n doctrine_n ph._n morn_n in_o myster_n pag._n 162._o observe_v here_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n and_o that_o when_o the_o head_n be_v disease_v the_o body_n can_v be_v ready_o cure_v but_o by_o common_a authority_n of_o prince_n and_o synod_n 16._o hincmar_n of_o who_o i_o have_v make_v mention_n in_o pope_n nicolaus_n be_v many_o year_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n upon_o several_a occasion_n he_o do_v solicit_v and_o flatter_v the_o pope_n and_o at_o other_o time_n do_v practice_n and_o write_v against_o they_o as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o baron_n annal._n tom_n 9_o and_o the_o cardinal_n do_v according_o allow_v bishop_n the_o power_n of_o provincial_a bishop_n and_o disallow_v he_o in_o one_o of_o his_o epistle_n he_o profess_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v a_o palle_v from_o pope_n leo_fw-la the_o iv_o not_o as_o a_o badge_n of_o subjection_n and_o he_o avow_v plain_o that_o in_o doubtful_a cause_n the_o provincial_a bishop_n shall_v ask_v counsel_n from_o the_o archbishop_n neither_o shall_v a_o bishop_n go_v unto_o the_o pope_n until_o he_o advertise_v and_o confer_v with_o the_o archbishop_n neither_o need_v the_o archbishop_n await_v for_o judgement_n from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n so_o far_o as_o he_o have_v certain_a decree_n of_o canon_n law_n and_o counsel_n and_o he_o do_v forbid_v his_o nephew_n hincmar_n to_o obey_v the_o pope_n citation_n when_o he_o summon_v he_o to_o rome_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o pope_n hadrian_n the_o two_o he_o quote_v a_o testimony_n of_o pope_n leo_n
scripture_n so_o many_o as_o be_v predestinate_v unto_o life_n be_v they_o not_o call_v king_n and_o priest_n therefore_o what_o god_n have_v conjoin_v let_v no_o man_n put_v asunder_o but_o rather_o what_o divine_a authority_n have_v ordain_v man_n will_n shall_v endeavour_v to_o fulfil_v and_o they_o shall_v join_v in_o heart_n who_o be_v conjoin_v in_o ordinance_n let_v they_o cherish_v one_o another_o defend_v other_o mutual_o and_o bear_v one_o another_o burden_n the_o wise_a man_n say_v a_o brother_n aid_v a_o brother_n both_o shall_v be_v comfort_v but_o if_o they_o bite_v one_o another_o which_o god_n forbid_v both_o shall_v come_v into_o desolation_n let_v not_o my_o soul_n come_v into_o their_o counsel_n which_o say_v that_o either_o the_o peace_n and_o freedom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v hurtful_a unto_o the_o crown_n or_o the_o prosperity_n and_o exaltation_n of_o the_o crown_n be_v hurtful_a unto_o the_o church_n for_o god_n the_o author_n of_o they_o both_o have_v conjoin_v they_o not_o to_o destruction_n but_o to_o edification_n if_o you_o know_v this_o how_o long_o will_v you_o dissemble_v the_o common_a contumely_n and_o common_a injury_n be_v not_o rome_n as_o the_o apostolical_a seat_n so_o also_o the_o head_n of_o the_o empire_n therefore_o though_o i_o will_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n be_v it_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o king_n to_o have_v a_o headless_a empire_n i_o know_v not_o what_o the_o wise_a man_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v advise_v you_o herein_o but_o though_o i_o speak_v imprudent_o i_o will_v not_o be_v silent_a in_o what_o i_o do_v judge_n the_o church_n of_o god_n from_o the_o beginning_n even_o till_o these_o time_n have_v be_v oft_o afflict_v and_o oft_o deliver_v it_o be_v her_o voice_n they_o have_v often_o afflict_v i_o from_o my_o youth_n but_o they_o can_v not_o prevail_v against_o i_o be_v sure_a o_o king_n that_o neither_o now_o will_v the_o lord_n leave_v the_o rod_n of_o the_o wicked_a upon_o the_o back_n of_o the_o righteous_a the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o shorten_v nor_o become_v unable_a to_o help_v at_o this_o time_n he_o will_v deliver_v his_o spouse_n which_o he_o have_v redeem_v by_o his_o blood_n endow_v with_o his_o spirit_n furnish_v with_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o nevertheless_o enrich_v with_o earthly_a thing_n he_o will_v deliver_v i_o say_v again_o he_o will_v deliver_v but_o if_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o another_o let_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o kingdom_n consider_v whether_o this_o be_v to_o the_o honour_n and_o advantage_n of_o the_o king_n certain_o not_o wherefore_o gird_v thy_o sword_n o_o most_o mighty_a and_o let_v caesar_n recover_v unto_o himself_o what_o be_v caesar_n and_o unto_o god_n what_o be_v god_n utrumque_fw-la interest_n caesaris_fw-la constat_fw-la undoubted_o both_o these_o appertain_v to_o caesar_n to_o maintain_v his_o own_o crown_n and_o to_o defend_v the_o church_n the_o one_o become_v the_o king_n and_o the_o other_o the_o advocate_n of_o the_o church_n the_o victory_n as_o we_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n be_v at_o hand_n the_o roman_n be_v more_o arrogant_a then_o potent_a for_o what_o do_v ever_o any_o great_a or_o mighty_a emperor_n or_o king_n presume_v so_o vile_a a_o thing_n both_o against_o crown_n and_o priesthood_n but_o this_o curse_a and_o tumultuous_a people_n which_o can_v measure_v their_o strength_n nor_o think_v on_o the_o end_n nor_o consider_v the_o event_n in_o their_o foolishness_n and_o fury_n dare_v attempt_v so_o great_a sacrilege_n the_o temerity_n of_o the_o multitude_n can_v stand_v for_o a_o moment_n before_o the_o king_n face_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v not_o here_o add_v observation_n bellarmin_n de_fw-fr ro._n pont._n l._n 2._o c._n 31._o christ_n the_o original_n of_o the_o title_n ●icar_n of_o christ_n allege_v that_o bernard_n do_v first_o give_v unto_o the_o pope_n the_o title_n vicar_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o begin_n so_o but_o the_o cardinal_n mistake_v it_o bernard_n be_v not_o the_o first_o if_o platina_n do_v true_o report_v the_o word_n of_o gregory_n vii_o he_o use_v this_o title_n before_o he_o and_o according_a to_o the_o language_n of_o the_o court_n at_o that_o time_n bernard_n give_v this_o title_n unto_o all_o priest_n even_o from_o who_o all_o iniquity_n procee_v as_o he_o speak_v in_o festo_fw-la convers_n pauli_n ser_n 1._o and_o give_v unto_o eusebius_n both_o this_o and_o lofty_a title_n for_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr consider_n he_o call_v he_o the_o great_a priest_n the_o prince_n of_o bishop_n the_o heir_n of_o the_o apostle_n abel_n in_o primacy_n in_o government_n noah_n in_o patriarchship_n abraham_n in_o order_n melchisedek_n in_o dignity_n aaron_n in_o authority_n moses_n in_o judge_v samuel_n in_o power_n peter_n in_o vaction_n christ_n here_o be_v a_o rhapsody_n of_o glorious_a title_n and_o he_o add_v these_o passage_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v wrest_v to_o maintain_v the_o ambition_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n but_o whether_o he_o speak_v so_o in_o derision_n or_o according_a to_o his_o own_o mind_n it_o may_v be_v judge_v by_o his_o word_n follow_v immediate_o but_o first_o see_v what_o he_o large_a and_o confute_v by_o bernard_n at_o large_a say_v a_o little_a before_o what_o have_v the_o holy_a apostle_n leave_v in_o legacy_n unto_o thou_o he_o say_v what_o i_o have_v i_o give_v thou_o what_o be_v it_o one_o thing_n i_o know_v it_o be_v not_o silver_n nor_o gold_n see_v he_o say_v silver_n and_o gold_n have_v i_o not_o if_o thou_o happen_v to_o have_v it_o use_v it_o according_a to_o the_o time_n and_o not_o at_o thy_o pleasure_n so_o use_v they_o as_o not_o abuse_v they_o see_v these_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o soul_n good_a be_v neither_o good_a nor_o ill_a but_o the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v good_a the_o abuse_n ill_o the_o care_n of_o they_o be_v worse_a and_o seek_v be_v filthy_a by_o whatsoever_o way_n thou_o may_v have_v they_o certain_o thou_o have_v they_o not_o by_o title_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o he_o can_v not_o give_v what_o he_o have_v not_o what_o he_o have_v that_o he_o give_v the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n give_v he_o lordly_a power_n hear_v himself_o not_o domineer_a over_o the_o people_n but_o be_v a_o example_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o lest_o you_o think_v he_o say_v so_o in_o humility_n only_o and_o not_o in_o truth_n the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o gospel_n the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v dominion_n but_o not_o you_o so_o it_o be_v clear_a dominion_n be_v forbid_v unto_o the_o apostle_n go_v then_o and_o take_v if_o thou_o dare_v either_o apostleship_n if_o thou_o be_v a_o lord_n or_o dominion_n if_o thou_o be_v apostolical_a thou_o be_v clear_o forbid_v to_o do_v either_o of_o the_o two_o if_o thou_o will_v have_v they_o together_o thou_o shall_v lose_v they_o both_o or_o else_o think_v not_o thyself_o to_o be_v except_v from_o those_o of_o who_o god_n complain_v say_v they_o have_v reign_v but_o not_o by_o i_o they_o be_v prince_n and_o i_o know_v they_o not_o and_o if_o thou_o will_v reign_v without_o god_n thou_o have_v glory_n but_o not_o with_o god_n we_o see_v what_o be_v forbid_v now_o hear_v what_o be_v command_v who_o be_v the_o great_a among_o you_o let_v he_o be_v as_o the_o young_a and_o he_o that_o be_v chief_a as_o he_o that_o serve_v there_o be_v the_o model_n of_o a_o apostle_n dominion_n be_v forbid_v and_o serve_v be_v command_v which_o be_v commend_v also_o by_o example_n of_o the_o lawgiver_n for_o it_o follow_v i_o be_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o you_o as_o he_o who_o serve_v bernard_n there_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o this_o purpose_n and_o after_o he_o have_v mention_v these_o former_a title_n and_o prerogative_n he_o say_v i_o have_v speak_v of_o who_o thou_o be_v but_o forget_v not_o what_o consider_v what_o thou_o be_v and_o now_o be_v why_o will_v thou_o not_o behold_v what_o thou_o can_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v indeed_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n what_o thou_o be_v and_o art_n and_o another_o who_o thou_o be_v become_v the_o one_o must_v not_o be_v forget_v in_o search_v thyself_o for_o thou_o be_v what_o thou_o be_v and_o thou_o be_v not_o less_o after_o thou_o be_v become_v such_o and_o perhaps_o more_o thou_o be_v bear_v that_o and_o change_v this_o but_o not_o change_v into_o this_o the_o former_a be_v not_o cast_v off_o but_o this_o be_v add_v if_o thou_o consider_v what_o remember_v thy_o nature_n thou_o be_v bear_v a_o man_n if_o thou_o ask_v who_o thou_o be_v a_o bishop_n this_o thou_o be_v make_v and_o not_o bear_v which_o of_o these_o think_v thou_o near_o or_o chief_a unto_o that_o thou_o be_v make_v or_o that_o thou_o be_v bear_v be_v not_o that_o thou_o be_v bear_v therefore_o i_o advise_v thou_o to_o
and_o also_o in_o other_o science_n do_v lament_v that_o simony_n be_v so_o frequent_a and_o manifest_a in_o the_o court_n and_o many_o jurist_n do_v dispute_v in_o the_o contrary_a and_o have_v write_v although_o with_o fear_n sundry_a treatise_n that_o the_o pope_n by_o sell_v church-benefice_n be_v a_o simoniack_a a_o successor_n of_o simon_n magus_n and_o not_o of_o peter_n 24._o about_o that_o time_n be_v write_v another_o book_n de_fw-fr aetatibus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la therein_o time_n aparallel_n of_o time_n the_o author_n show_v what_o have_v be_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n in_o former_a age_n namely_o that_o bishop_n be_v not_o ambitious_a of_o superiority_n or_o earthly_a authority_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o supremacy_n above_o other_o bishop_n the_o name_n papae_fw-la be_v common_a to_o other_o bishop_n by_o divers_a step_n the_o pope_n have_v usurp_v this_o tyranny_n he_o call_v himself_o the_o servant_n of_o servant_n and_o strive_v to_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o lord_n he_o take_v divine_a honour_n and_o praise_n and_o he_o make_v or_o suffer_v man_n to_o be_v idolater_n catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 18._o 25._o in_o the_o end_n of_o that_o century_n or_o beginning_n of_o the_o next_o live_v nilus_n latin_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o schism_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n who_o write_v two_o book_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o schism_n between_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o lib._n 1._o he_o say_v the_o cause_n be_v not_o the_o sublimity_n of_o doctrine_n surpass_v man_n capacity_n and_o far_o less_o be_v it_o any_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o if_o it_o do_v not_o declare_v what_o concern_v this_o controversy_n for_o to_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o man_n will_v accuse_v god_n ....._o what_o then_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o difference_n the_o question_n be_v not_o confirm_v by_o a_o decree_n of_o a_o oecunomical_a synod_n and_o the_o roman_n will_v be_v master_n and_o make_v all_o other_o their_o disciple_n ......_o it_o be_v very_o absurd_a that_o whereas_o the_o father_n have_v no_o precedent_n yet_o by_o themselves_o rhey_a see_v the_o right_a we_o have_v their_o example_n can_v discern_v it_o and_o indeed_o the_o ignorance_n of_o those_o at_o the_o first_o contention_n may_v be_v pardon_v ......_o but_o when_o so_o many_o age_n have_v pass_v and_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o know_v who_o can_v think_v but_o it_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o they_o who_o will_v not_o have_v peace_n but_o they_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o priest_n and_o the_o father_n who_o have_v power_n to_o call_v universal_a synod_n and_o by_o himself_o or_o without_o other_o may_v discern_v in_o church-affair_n but_o julius_n be_v pope_n and_o damasus_n and_o leo_n and_o agatho_n and_o none_o of_o these_o ever_o say_v so_o but_o conveen_v with_o their_o brethren_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o good_a spirit_n they_o establish_v act_n and_o peace_n in_o the_o church_n and_o if_o this_o be_v the_o only_a way_n and_o it_o be_v not_o now_o observe_v who_o can_v doubt_v but_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o variance_n stand_v herein_o and_o certain_o the_o blame_n lie_v not_o upon_o our_o side_n and_o if_o the_o power_n of_o discern_v belong_v unto_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v superfluous_a to_o call_v assembliet_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o for_o we_o know_v that_o agatho_n celestin_n and_o other_o have_v their_o particular_a synod_n for_o decide_v question_n and_o nevertheless_o they_o refer_v those_o unto_o the_o universal_a synod_n and_o crave_v the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n by_o common_a decree_n which_o have_v be_v needless_a if_o when_o the_o pope_n have_v discern_v all_o other_o must_v assent_v unto_o he_o now_o if_o this_o question_n be_v concern_v a_o private_a man_n it_o may_v seem_v needless_a to_o call_v all_o the_o world_n unto_o a_o assembly_n but_o see_v the_o chief_a head_n of_o the_o world_n be_v at_o variance_n it_o be_v absurd_a to_o determine_v the_o cause_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o world_n since_o the_o father_n by_o their_o writing_n and_o example_n have_v show_v the_o way_n but_o if_o they_o will_v still_o object_v unto_o we_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n we_o say_v that_o in_o so_o do_v he_o overthrow_v his_o primacy_n but_o by_o hold_v the_o ancient_a way_n he_o do_v what_o become_v a_o good_a man_n and_o maintain_v his_o place_n for_o he_o may_v consider_v what_o shall_v be_v the_o ●ssue_n if_o the_o controversy_n be_v decide_v after_o common_a suffrage_n and_o what_o have_v happen_v unto_o the_o latin_n arrogate_a unto_o themselves_o the_o power_n of_o prescribe_v law_n for_o in_o that_o way_n the_o church_n may_v be_v free_a from_o all_o tumult_n and_o live_v in_o peace_n since_o none_o can_v ready_o contradict_v that_o which_o be_v establish_v by_o common_a sentence_n for_o though_o some_o in_o former_a time_n have_v be_v so_o mad_a yet_o they_o be_v but_o few_o and_o vanish_v soon_o but_o when_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n be_v disturb_v he_o lose_v what_o he_o may_v have_v for_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o four_o patriarch_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o peace_n many_o have_v think_v upon_o remedy_n there_o have_v be_v many_o conference_n and_o ambassay_n but_o the_o malady_n continue_v and_o shall_v continue_v so_o long_o as_o the_o latin_n hold_v their_o tenet_n the_o pope_n say_v they_o have_v power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n so_o say_v i_o let_v he_o not_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o father_n they_o establish_v thing_n by_o universal_a council_n and_o each_o have_v need_n of_o another_o aid_n be_v conscious_a of_o humane_a frailty_n let_v the_o pope_n therefore_o follow_v their_o statute_n and_o discern_v not_o any_o point_n before_o it_o be_v debate_v by_o other_o or_o if_o he_o have_v his_o power_n not_o from_o the_o father_n but_o from_o the_o apostle_n let_v he_o hearken_v unto_o the_o apostle_n who_o say_v i_o have_v not_o use_v my_o power_n lest_o i_o lay_v a_o stumbling-block_n unto_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o power_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o to_o edification_n and_o not_o to_o destruction_n and_o therefore_o if_o he_o have_v any_o power_n let_v he_o not_o use_v it_o but_o for_o advance_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o follow_v paul_n example_n he_o may_v show_v himself_o a_o apostolical_a man_n bet_v now_o none_o can_v be_v ignorant_a whether_o he_o use_v it_o for_o edification_n or_o destruction_n ......_o and_o that_o precedent_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n st._n peter_n be_v rebuke_v by_o paul_n and_o when_o he_o be_v rebuke_v he_o be_v silent_a and_o although_o he_o may_v have_v say_v more_o reasonable_o than_o the_o pope_n what_o i_o the_o precedent_n have_v do_v shall_v be_v a_o law_n unto_o other_o yet_o he_o say_v not_o so_o but_o accept_v the_o admonition_n and_o contradict_v not_o what_o paul_n have_v say_v ....._o and_o when_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n come_v to_o jerusalem_n for_o that_o question_n of_o the_o circumcision_n peter_n usurp_v not_o primacy_n nor_o say_v he_o it_o belong_v unto_o i_o to_o discern_v in_o such_o thing_n but_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n be_v assemble_v neither_o do_v peter_n debar_v the_o apostle_n usurp_v power_n nor_o do_v the_o apostle_n exclude_v the_o elder_n that_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n for_o they_o have_v learn_v from_o christ_n to_o usurp_v no_o primacy_n peter_n indeed_o begin_v to_o speak_v and_o after_o he_o st._n james_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n even_o peter_n himself_o consent_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o james_n so_o do_v these_o bless_a man_n love_n christ_n and_o so_o studious_a be_v they_o of_o peace_n and_o truth_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o apostle_n seek_v truth_n this_o way_n have_v give_v we_o a_o law_n in_o such_o case_n but_o see_v you_o take_v a_o contrary_a course_n can_v you_o blame_v any_o but_o yourselves_o for_o this_o variance_n this_o be_v a_o touch_n of_o more_o whence_o we_o see_v that_o the_o roman_n want_v not_o admonition_n 26._o with_o the_o book_n of_o this_o nilus_n be_v usual_o print_v another_o of_o barlaam_n a_o greek_a monk_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o cap._n 16._o he_o recapitulate_v all_o the_o particular_n that_o he_o have_v handle_v say_v i_o have_v show_v that_o each_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v immediate_o appoint_v by_o our_o lord_n christ_n to_o be_v a_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n 2._o that_o bless_a clemens_n be_v create_v by_o peter_n not_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o of_o rome_n especial_o and_o proper_o and_o that_o the_o roman_a see_v
and_o propound_v unto_o the_o king_n the_o inconstancy_n of_o promise_n from_o a_o hostile_a king_n he_o need_v not_o go_v into_o england_n for_o any_o benefit_n see_v he_o have_v enough_o at_o home_n they_o promise_v to_o give_v he_o yearly_a 30000_o crown_n from_o the_o church_n and_o of_o they_o which_o be_v rebellious_a against_o the_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o law_n he_o may_v make_v unto_o the_o crown_n yearly_o above_o 100000_o croun_n if_o he_o will_v authorise_v such_o a_o judge_n as_o they_o will_v name_v to_o proceed_v against_o they_o nor_o can_v there_o be_v any_o danger_n in_o arraign_v they_o see_v it_o be_v know_v that_o they_o do_v use_v the_o bible_n in_o english_a they_o talk_v common_o of_o the_o pope_n power_n they_o despise_v the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n they_o deny_v obedience_n unto_o sacred_a person_n and_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o live_v under_o a_o king_n by_o these_o persuasion_n the_o king_n gives-ove_a his_o journey_n to_o york_n wherefore_o king_n henry_n be_v offend_v and_o prepare_v a_o army_n against_o scotland_n and_o james_n prepare_v another_o to_o invade_v england_n in_o time_n of_o these_o levy_n the_o cardinal_z gives_z unto_o the_o king_n a_o catalogue_n of_o above_o 300_o person_n who_o in_o his_o inquisition_n he_o have_v appoint_v unto_o death_n but_o this_o bloody_a design_n be_v stay_v by_o that_o preparation_n and_o take_v away_o by_o the_o death_n of_o the_o king_n for_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o war_n be_v when_o the_o scot_n be_v past_o solvay_n a_o gentle_a man_n oliver_n sinclare_v show_v his_o commission_n to_o be_v commander_n in_o chieff_a the_o noble_a man_n refuse_v to_o fight_v under_o his_o command_n and_o be_v take_v captive_n the_o water_z flow_v they_o can_v not_o return_v and_o king_n james_n hear_v of_o their_o overthrow_n die_v in_o sorrow_n within_o 3._o day_n on_o december_n 13._o year_n 1542_o leave_v a_o daughter_n mary_n five_o day_n old_a to_o be_v his_o heir_n then_o be_v various_a discourse_n what_o may_v be_v the_o issue_n of_o those_o war_n every_o one_o talk_v as_o he_o wish_v or_o fear_v henry_n call_v for_o the_o captive_n unto_o whitehall_n and_o show_v they_o how_o god_n have_v offer_v they_o a_o most_o fit_a occasion_n of_o firm_a concord_n if_o their_o queen_n be_v contract_v with_o his_o son_n they_o do_v promise_v to_o use_v their_o diligence_n so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v without_o prejudice_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o their_o own_o infamy_n and_o so_o be_v dismiss_v in_o january_n buchan_n histor_n libr._n 14._o &_o 15._o then_o the_o cardinal_n have_v more_o than_o hope_v to_o be_v regent_n he_o cause_v a_o priest_n hen._n balfour_n to_o write_v as_o the_o king_n last_o will_n that_o he_o and_o some_o other_o shall_v be_v governor_n and_o the_o queen_n dowager_n favour_v he_o but_o these_o who_o love_v not_o his_o inquisition_n and_o other_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o former_a difficulty_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o like_a case_n choose_v and_o declare_v february_n 10._o james_n hamilton_fw-mi earl_n of_o arran_n who_o be_v one_o of_o these_o who_o the_o cardinal_n have_v appoint_v unto_o death_n and_o next_o heir_n of_o the_o ●rown_n to_o be_v regent_n during_o the_o minority_n of_o the_o infant_n queen_n he_o have_v two_o preacher_n thomas_n guilliam_n and_o john_n rough_a sound_n in_o religion_n according_a to_o these_o time_n the_o card._n be_v not_o content_a with_o the_o regent_n nor_o his_o preacher_n he_o endeavour_v to_o molest_v he_o and_o to_o stay_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n in_o march_v a_o parliament_n be_v assemble_v thither_o ralph_n sadler_n ambassador_n from_o england_n come_v for_o common_a peace_n and_o by_o the_o way_n to_o put_v in_o mind_n the_o former_a captive_n of_o their_o promise_n the_o contract_n of_o promise_n be_v once_o conclude_v but_o the_o qu._n dowager_n the_o card._n and_o the_o prelate_n do_v so_o wilful_o oppose_v it_o that_o with_o common_a voice_n of_o the_o most_o part_n the_o cardinal_n be_v remove_v and_o shut_v up_o straight_o in_o a_o chamber_n until_o the_o vote_n be_v ask_v then_o the_o marriage_n be_v conclude_v other_o condition_n of_o peace_n be_v pen_v and_o pledge_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v send_v into_o england_n the_o cardinal_n be_v convoy_v to_o palkeith_n and_o there_o keep_v as_o in_o firm_a ward_n by_o intercession_n of_o the_o queen_n he_o obtain_v liberty_n to_o go_v unto_o seton_n and_o afterward_o be_v set_v at_o full_a liberty_n in_o the_o same_o reformation_n the_o first_o public_a step_n of_o reformation_n parliament_n the_o rigour_n of_o act_n against_o they_o who_o have_v english_a bibles_n be_v take_v off_o the_o prelate_n do_v object_n that_o the_o church_n have_v forbid_v all_o language_n in_o religion_n but_o three_o hebrew_a greek_a and_o latin_a the_o lord_n demand_n when_o be_v that_o inhibition_n make_v see_v chrysostom_n complain_v that_o man_n will_v not_o use_v the_o sacred_a book_n in_o their_o own_o language_n the_o bishop_n answer_n these_o be_v greek_o the_o lord_n reply_v christ_n command_v that_o his_o word_n be_v preach_v unto_o all_o nation_n and_o therefore_o it_o shall_v be_v preach_v in_o every_o language_n which_o the_o nation_n understand_v best_a and_o if_o it_o shall_v he_o preach_v in_o all_o tongue_n why_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v read_v in_o all_o tongue_n in_o the_o end_n the_o best_a part_n prevail_v and_o liberty_n be_v grant_v to_o read_v the_o bible_n and_o to_o say_v prayer_n in_o the_o vulgar_a language_n this_o be_v not_o a_o small_a victory_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o thereby_o many_o simple_a one_o receive_v information_n sundry_a treatise_n go_v abroad_o against_o the_o tyranny_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o many_o in_o foreign_a nation_n praise_v god_n for_o the_o regent_n at_o that_o time_n the_o new_a testament_n be_v so_o unknowen_a unto_o the_o multitude_n of_o priest_n that_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v in_o their_o preach_n that_o book_n be_v write_v by_o luther_n not_o long_o after_o the_o abbot_n of_o pasley_n come_v out_o of_o france_n and_o prevail_v so_o with_o his_o brother_n the_o regent_n that_o friar_n guilliam_n again_o and_o hinder_v again_o be_v put_v from_o preach_v and_o go_v into_o england_n and_o john_n rogh_o go_v to_o kyle_n and_o all_o godly_a man_n be_v terrify_v from_o court_n likewise_o the_o card._n hinder_v the_o send_n of_o the_o pledge_n into_o england_n and_o by_o his_o mean_n and_o of_o his_o complice_n the_o regent_n be_v persuade_v to_o alliance_n with_o france_n yea_o the_o crafty_o insinuation_n of_o the_o card._n and_o abbot_n move_v the_o regent_n to_z ren_fw-it ounce_n the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o submit_v himself_o unto_o the_o pope_n then_o every_o thing_n be_v do_v at_o the_o nod_n of_o the_o cardinal_n many_o be_v persecute_v of_o who_o some_o flee_v and_o some_o be_v burn_v as_o an._n 1546._o in_o february_n ja._n huncer_n will._n lamb_n witanderson_n and_o ja._n rannelt_v burgess_n of_o sant_n john_n stoun_n because_o they_o have_v eat_v a_o goose_n on_o a_o friday_n and_o a_o woman_n because_o in_o she_o travel_v she_o will_v not_o call_v upon_o mary_n john_n roger_n a_o black_a ●rier_n who_o have_v faithful_o preach_v the_o gospel_n unto_o many_o in_fw-la anguise_n and_o merns_n be_v murder_v in_o the_o sea-tower_n of_o santandrews_n and_o then_o be_v throw_v over_o the_o wall_n and_o a_o report_n be_v spread_v that_o he_o have_v break_v his_o own_o wishart_n george_n wishart_n neck_n in_o the_o year_n 1544._o come_v home_n that_o bless_a servant_n of_o christ_n george_n wishart_o one_o of_o great_a learning_n zeal_n and_o modesty_n as_o i_o be_v young_a have_v hear_v of_o very_o ancient_a man_n he_o have_v be_v schoolmaster_n of_o montros_n and_o there_o do_v teach_v his_o disciple_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o greek_a for_o this_o fault_n he_o be_v delate_a unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o brechen_fw-ge in_fw-ge time_n of_o the_o persecution_n an._n 1538._o when_o he_o be_v summon_v to_o appear_v he_o flee_v and_o after_o six_o year_n return_n with_o more_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o with_o more_o zeal_n he_o preach_v first_o in_o montros_n within_o a_o private_a house_n next_o unto_o the_o church_n except_o one_o then_o in_o dundie_n where_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o card._n he_o be_v prohibit_v to_o preach_v because_o the_o town_n be_v so_o ready_a to_o forsake_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o boast_v of_o a_o man_n he_o foretell_v that_o a_o scourge_n be_v come_v short_o upon_o they_o from_o thence_o he_o go_v to_o air_n and_o preach_v in_o the_o open_a field_n at_o the_o church_n of_o gastoun_n for_o he_o be_v hinder_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o glasgow_n to_o preach_v in_o a_o church_n there_o he_o be_v inform_v that_o within_o
command_v from_o the_o king_n and_o his_o counsellor_n to_o entertain_v mongomery_n and_o until_o he_o be_v countermand_v by_o his_o majesty_n he_o will_v not_o remove_v he_o the_o church_n have_v consider_v his_o answer_n ordain_v the_o brethren_n of_o the_o ministry_n who_o shall_v go_v in_o commission_n to_o perth_n as_o they_o see_v occasion_n there_o and_o the_o grief_n not_o remedy_v concern_v his_o entertain_v the_o say_a robert_n to_o proceed_v and_o appoint_v special_a man_n that_o shall_v proceed_v further_o against_o he_o with_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o act_n of_o the_o gen._n assembly_n to_o who_o the_o church_n give_v their_o full_a power_n to_o that_o effect_n as_o also_o the_o assembly_n give_v their_o commission_n to_o john_n erskin_n of_o dun_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o king_n house_n ro._n pont_n ja._n lowson_n tho._n smeton_n an._n hay_o da._n lindsay_n an._n polvart_n peter_n blackburn_n pa._n galloway_n wi._n crysteson_n da._n ferguson_n ja._n meluin_n th._n buchanan_n io._n brand_n pa._n gilespy_n io._n porterfield_n minister_n and_o and._n melvin_n to_o repair_v towards_o the_o king_n and_o counsel_n to_o be_v convene_v at_o perth_n july_n 6._o and_o there_o with_o all_o reverence_n due_a obedience_n and_o submission_n to_o present_v unto_o his_o majesty_n and_o nobility_n the_o special_a grievance_n of_o the_o church_n conceive_v and_o give_v to_o they_o in_o write_v and_o in_o their_o name_n to_o lament_v and_o regrate_a the_o same_o crave_v in_o the_o name_n and_o fear_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n they_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o to_o be_v repair_v and_o redress_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o welfare_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o comfort_n of_o his_o church_n and_o if_o need_v be_v with_o humility_n to_o confer_v thereupon_o inform_v and_o reason_n and_o what_o herein_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o report_v unto_o the_o next_o assembly_n promise_v to_o hold_v firm_a and_o stable_a what_o soever_o their_o brethren_n in_o the_o premise_n shall_v judge_v righteous_o to_o be_v do_v in_o sess_n 7._o power_n a_o supplication_n unto_o the_o k._n against_o his_o absolute_a power_n be_v the_o tenor_n of_o the_o grievance_n thus_o unto_o your_o majesty_n humble_o mean_a and_o show_v your_o gr_n s_o faitfull_a &_o obedient_a subject_n the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n within_o your_o majesty_n s_o realm_n convene_v in_o the_o general_n assembly_n at_o edinburgh_n juny_n 17._o that_o where_n as_o upon_o diverse_a &_o great_a &_o evident_a danger_n appear_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n and_o professor_n of_o his_o true_a religion_n in_o this_o country_n find_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n abrogate_v her_o censure_n contemn_v and_o violence_n use_v against_o some_o of_o our_o brethren_n without_o punishment_n thereof_o the_o like_a have_v never_o be_v see_v in_o this_o realm_n nor_o in_o any_o place_n where_o the_o truth_n have_v be_v teach_v and_o receive_v and_o fear_v lest_o your_o majesty_n for_o want_v of_o information_n neglect_v in_o time_n to_o provide_v remedy_n for_o the_o inconvenient_n likely_a to_o ensue_v thereupon_o we_o have_v convene_v ourselves_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o your_o majesty_n s_o obedience_n and_o after_o diligent_a consideration_n of_o this_o present_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n and_o enormity_n fall_v forth_o in_o the_o same_o with_o common_a consent_n think_v necessary_a by_o our_o commissioner_n to_o present_v and_o open_a unto_o your_o gr._n certain_a our_o chief_a &_o weighty_a grief_n without_o hasty_a redress_n whereof_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o true_a religion_n can_v no_o way_n stand_v &_o continue_v in_o this_o your_o country_n 1._o that_o your_o majesty_n by_o advice_n of_o some_o counsellor_n be_v cause_v to_o take_v upon_o your_o gr._n the_o spiritual_a power_n and_o authority_n which_o proper_o belong_v unto_o christ_n as_o the_o only_a king_n and_o head_n of_o his_o church_n the_o ministry_n and_o execution_n thereof_o unto_o such_o as_o bear_v office_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n so_o that_o in_o your_o gr_n s_o person_n some_o man_n press_v to_o erect_v a_o new_a popedom_n as_o if_o your_o majesty_n can_v not_o be_v full_a king_n and_o head_n of_o this_o common_a wealth_n unless_o the_o spiritual_a alswell_o as_o the_o temporal_a power_n shall_v be_v put_v in_o your_o hand_n unless_o christ_n be_v bere●t_v of_o his_o authority_n and_o the_o two_o jurisdiction_n confound_v which_o god_n have_v divide_v which_o tend_v direct_o to_o the_o wreck_n of_o all_o true_a religion_n as_o by_o the_o special_a head_n follow_v be_v manifest_a for_o 1._o benefice_n be_v give_v by_o absolute_a power_n to_o unworthy_a person_n intrude_v into_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n without_o the_o church_n admission_n direct_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o act_n of_o parliament_n whereby_o church-living_n come_v into_o profane_a man_n hand_n and_o other_o that_o sell_v their_o soul_n and_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o conscience_n for_o pleasure_n of_o man_n and_o obtain_v some_o worldly_a commodity_n 2._o eldership_n synod_n and_o general_n assembly_n be_v discharge_v by_o letter_n of_o horn_v to_o proceed_v against_o manifest_a offender_n and_o to_o use_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n &_o censure_n according_a to_o god_n word_n 3._o jo._n dury_n by_o act_n of_o counsel_n be_v suspend_v from_o preach_v and_o banish_v from_o his_o flock_n 4._o excommunicate_a personsin_n contempt_n of_o god_n and_o his_o church_n be_v entertain_v in_o chief_a lord_n house_n namely_o r._n among_o be_v authorize_v and_o cause_v to_o preach_v and_o bring_v to_o your_o majesty_n s_o presence_n which_o be_v a_o sore_a wound_n to_o the_o conscience_n of_o they_o that_o love_v your_o majesty_n and_o know_v your_o upbr_n and_o a_o heavy_a scandal_n to_o all_o nation_n profess_v the_o true_a religion_n 5._o a_o act_n or_o deliverance_n of_o the_o counsel_n be_v make_v against_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o ministry_n with_o a_o slanderous_a narrative_a suspending_a simpliciter_fw-la and_o disannul_v the_o excommunication_n just_o and_o orderly_o pronounce_v against_o robert_n mongomery_n a_o rebellious_a and_o obstinate_a offender_n and_o troubler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o open_a proclamation_n make_v according_a thereunto_o 6._o contempt_n of_o minister_n and_o beat_v john_n howeson_n out_o of_o the_o judgement-seat_n where_o he_o be_v place_v moderator_n of_o the_o presbytery_n the_o cruel_a and_o outrageous_a handle_n of_o he_o carry_v he_o to_o prison_n like_o a_o thief_n by_o the_o prove_v and_o bailive_v of_o glasgow_n and_o their_o complice_n and_o after_o complaint_n make_v no_o order_n be_v take_v therein_o but_o they_o be_v entertain_v as_o if_o that_o have_v be_v good_a service_n 7._o displace_v the_o m._n of_o glasg_n out_o of_o his_o room_n which_o without_o reproach_n he_o have_v occupy_v these_o many_o year_n and_o convocation_n of_o the_o gentle_a man_n of_o the_o country_n that_o to_o effect_v 8._o violence_n use_v by_o one_o of_o your_o own_o guard_n to_o pull_v he_o out_o of_o the_o pulpit_n the_o day_n of_o the_o communion_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n and_o in_o time_n of_o sermon_n nor_o fault_n find_v therewith_o 9_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n be_v cast_v into_o prison_n in_o your_o gr_n s_o presence_n and_o there_o be_v keep_v a_o long_a time_n for_o execution_n of_o letter_n against_o a_o particular_a scandalon_n man_n 10._o minister_n master_n of_o college_n and_o scholar_n of_o glasgow_n in_o time_n of_o public_a fast_n be_v by_o letter_n of_o horn_v compel_v to_o leave_v their_o flock_n &_o school_n destitute_a and_o afterward_o from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o place_n to_o place_n have_v be_v delay_v and_o continue_v thereby_o to_o consume_v they_o by_o exorbitant_a expense_n and_o to_o wreck_v the_o church_n &_o school_n where_o they_o shall_v bear_v rule_n and_o charge_n 11._o the_o scholar_n of_o glasgow_n be_v invade_v and_o their_o blood_n cruel_o shed_v by_o the_o bailive_a and_o community_n gather_v by_o sound_n of_o the_o common_a bell_n and_o stroke_n of_o drum_n and_o by_o certain_a seditious_a man_n enflam_v to_o have_v slay_v they_o all_o and_o to_o have_v burn_v the_o college_n and_o yet_o nothing_o do_v nor_o say_v to_o the_o author_n of_o that_o sedition_n 12._o hand_n shake_v with_o the_o bloody_a murderer_n and_o persecuter_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n by_o gift_n receive_v and_o give_v 13._o the_o duke_n be_v gr._n often_o promise_v to_o reform_v his_o house_n and_o nothing_o be_v do_v there_o 4._o the_o law_n make_v for_o maintain_v true_a religion_n and_o punish_v the_o enemy_n thereof_o be_v not_o put_v to_o execution_n so_o that_o all_o thing_n go_v loose_a and_o worse_o like_v to_o ensue_v many_o other_o thing_n there_o be_v that_o crave_v present_a reformation_n where_o with_o we_o think_v
use_n without_o favour_n and_o no_o part_n thereof_o be_v dispone_v to_o their_o friend_n or_o any_o other_o person_n for_o their_o commodity_n precede_v commodity_n great_a reason_n their_o forsciture_n always_o precede_v that_o all_o person_n be_v inhibit_v under_o the_o pain_n of_o treason_n and_o loss_n of_o life_n land_n and_o good_n to_o receipt_n supply_n rise-with_a or_o concur_v or_o have_v intelligence_n with_o the_o foresay_a excommunicat_o under_o whatsoever_o pretence_n of_o vasall_n or_o depend_v clause_n depend_v to_o be_v ready_a at_o my_o charge_n it_o be_v very_o meet_v but_o i_o understand_v not_o the_o last_o clause_n that_o all_o the_o subject_n be_v charge_v to_o put_v themselves_o in_o arm_n by_o all_o good_a mean_n they_o can_v remane_v in_o full_a readiness_n to_o pursue_v and_o defend_v as_o they_o shall_v be_v certify_v by_o his_o majesty_n or_o otherwise_o find_v occasion_n urgent_a god_n urgent_a i_o shall_v omit_v no_o diligence_n in_o that_o which_o can_v be_v require_v at_o my_o hand_n as_o i_o shall_v answer_v to_o god_n that_o the_o ship_n arrive_v at_o montros_n be_v apprehend_v and_o the_o person_n which_o be_v within_o she_o together_o with_o other_o which_o have_v have_v any_o deal_n with_o they_o according_a as_o they_o shall_v be_v give_v up_o in_o writ_n be_v call_v and_o diligent_o examine_v for_o discovery_n of_o the_o practice_n and_o purpose_n which_o they_o have_v present_o in_o hand_n you_o hand_n distingue_n tempora_fw-la &_o conciliabis_fw-la scripturas_fw-la the_o meaning_n of_o this_o the_o bearer_n will_v expound_v unto_o you_o forsomuch_o as_o the_o lord_n hume_n have_v controveen_v sundry_a point_n wherein_o he_o be_v oblige_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o edinb_n by_o his_o promise_n at_o the_o receive_n of_o his_o subscription_n as_o in_o not_o satisfy_v the_o synod_n of_o fife_n in_o not_o receive_v a_o minister_n into_o his_o house_n in_o not_o remove_v out_o of_o his_o bound_n captain_n andrew_n grace_n and_o thomas_n tyry_a whereby_o as_o also_o by_o his_o scandalous_a life_n since_o his_o subscription_n he_o have_v give_v just_a cause_n of_o suspicion_n unto_o the_o church_n and_o all_o good_a man_n that_o as_o yet_o in_o his_o heart_n he_o be_v not_o sanctify_v true_o or_o convert_v to_o the_o true_a religion_n therefore_o that_o his_o majesty_n will_v take_v earnest_a trial_n of_o the_o premise_n and_o thereby_o judge_v if_o there_o appear_v in_o he_o such_o sincerity_n of_o religion_n &_o life_n as_o his_o majesty_n may_v trust_v he_o and_o the_o church_n may_v expect_v true_a friendship_n in_o so_o dangerous_a a_o time_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n and_o if_o that_o be_v not_o find_v that_o his_o majesty_n will_v remove_v he_o from_o his_o company_n and_o discharge_v he_o of_o all_o public_a office_n and_o command_n always_o command_n the_o complaint_n belong_v not_o unto_o your_o office_n always_o that_o the_o guard_n present_o take_v up_o be_v try_v together_o with_o the_o captain_n because_o many_o complaint_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o assembly_n against_o they_o iv_o r._n i_o have_v satisfy_v the_o bearer_n subscribitur_fw-la james_n r._n whereas_o a_o horrible_a superstition_n be_v use_v in_o garioch_n and_o in_o other_o part_n of_o the_o country_n in_o not_o labour_v a_o parcel_n of_o ground_n dedicate_v to_o the_o devil_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o good_a man_n croft_a the_o church_n for_o remedy_n hereof_o have_v find_v meet_a that_o a_o article_n be_v propound_v unto_o the_o parliament_n that_o a_o act_n may_v proceed_v for_o ordain_v all_o person_n possessor_n of_o such_o land_n to_o cause_v tille_a and_o labour_v they_o before_o a_o certain_a day_n to_o be_v appoint_v thereunto_o or_o in_o case_n of_o disobedience_n the_o same_o land_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o king_n hand_n to_o be_v dispone_v unto_o sueh_a person_n as_o shall_v please_v his_o majesty_n who_o will_v labour_v they_o v._o alexander_n lord_n hume_n compeare_v and_o be_v ask_v by_o the_o moderator_n whither_o he_o confess_v with_o his_o heart_n and_o mouth_n as_o before_o the_o lord_n that_o he_o be_v just_o casten_z out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommuniation_n pronounce_v against_o he_o by_o the_o synod_n of_o fife_n and_o as_o he_o will_v answer_v upon_o pain_n of_o salvation_n &_o excommunication_n the_o from_o of_o absolution_n of_o excommunication_n damnation_n to_o speak_v the_o truth_n simple_o he_o protest_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v just_o excommunicate_a and_o confess_v his_o fault_n in_o deserve_v it_o then_o he_o be_v ask_v why_o he_o seek_v not_o to_o be_v relax_v from_o that_o sentence_n according_a to_o the_o direction_n to_o the_o presbytery_n of_o edinburgh_n he_o excuse_v himselve_v by_o ignorance_n of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o act._n and_o be_v accuse_v why_o he_o detain_v the_o stipend_n of_o some_o minister_n namely_o of_o chirnside_n he_o answer_v he_o be_v ready_a to_o pay_v whatsoever_o he_o owe_v by_o law_n why_o he_o have_v not_o observe_v the_o condition_n name_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o presbytery_n of_o edinburg_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v a_o minister_n in_o his_o family_n and_o remove_v tho._n tyry_a out_o of_o his_o company_n he_o remember_v not_o that_o he_o be_v require_v to_o have_v a_o minister_n in_o his_o family_n but_o now_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o accept_v any_o who_o the_o church_n shall_v appoint_v as_o for_o tho._n tyry_n he_o be_v in_o be_v in_o his_o service_n after_o that_o time_n but_o understand_v not_o that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o remove_v he_o until_o the_o church_n do_v excommunicate_v he_o and_o since_o that_o time_n he_o have_v discharge_v &_o remove_v he_o he_o be_v ask_v whither_o he_o know_v a_o priest_n name_v cowy_a or_o any_o that_o be_v set_v on_o land_n out_o of_o that_o ship_n come_v late_o from_o flanders_n he_o deni_v both_o he_o be_v ask_v whether_o the_o jesuit_n mackwherry_n be_v in_o his_o house_n late_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v in_o this_o house_n within_o these_o five_o day_n and_o come_v without_o out_o his_o knowledge_n nor_o have_v he_o any_o missive_n or_o commission_n unto_o he_o and_o he_o stay_v not_o above_o a_o halfhour_n last_o the_o say_a lord_n confess_v and_o protest_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n who_o he_o take_v to_o witness_v and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o will_v judge_v the_o quick_a &_o the_o dead_a that_o he_o profess_v from_o his_o heart_n the_o religion_n present_o profess_v by_o the_o church_n here_o present_a whereof_o he_o have_v already_o subscribe_v the_o article_n before_o the_o presbytery_n of_o edinburgh_n and_o now_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a &_o infallible_a religion_n which_o lead_v unto_o salvation_n and_o wherein_o he_o intend_v to_o live_v and_o die_v and_o which_o he_o shall_v to_o his_o uttermost_a defend_v against_o all_o the_o enemy_n thereof_o and_o as_o he_o shall_v answer_v to_o the_o dreadful_a god_n he_o forsake_v the_o roman_a religion_n as_o antichristian_a and_o direct_o opposite_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o his_o true_a service_n and_o these_o thing_n he_o testify_v by_o lift_v up_o his_o hand_n and_o declare_v before_o god_n that_o he_o have_v no_o dispensation_n nor_o indulgence_n to_o subscribe_v or_o swear_v certain_a brethren_n be_v appoint_v to_o confer_v with_o he_o at_o his_o own_o lodging_n for_o the_o full_a trial_n of_o his_o resolution_n on_o the_o second_o day_n thereafter_o alex._n l._n hume_n compeare_v and_o humble_o crave_v to_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n protest_v that_o in_o time_n come_v he_o will_v give_v proof_n of_o obedience_n and_o service_n unto_o god_n and_o maintain_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o religion_n present_o profess_v by_o the_o church_n here_o present_a unto_o his_o life_n end_n and_o howbeit_o some_o time_n he_o have_v be_v of_o a_o different_a religion_n now_o he_o avow_v since_o he_o have_v be_v better_o inform_v in_o the_o head_n wherein_o he_o differ_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n present_o profess_v by_o the_o assembly_n and_o if_o hereafter_o he_o shall_v decline_v from_o it_o he_o submit_v himself_o unto_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n hope_v by_o god_n grace_n that_o he_o shall_v never_o make_v defection_n because_o all_o these_o answer_n and_o profession_n have_v be_v pass_v by_o word_n only_o the_o assembly_n judge_v it_o meet_v that_o some_o article_n be_v write_v and_o then_o subscribe_v by_o he_o and_o three_o to_o consider_v of_o his_o absolution_n the_o next_o day_n these_o article_n be_v propound_v in_o write_v unto_o he_o 1._o that_o alexander_n l._n hume_n ratify_v &_o approve_v the_o subscription_n and_o oath_n give_v by_o he_o unto_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n at_o edinburgh_n december_n 22._o last_o or_o subscribe_v again_o in_o face_n of_o the_o assembly_n 2._o that_o he_o
history_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o the_o year_n 600_o until_o the_o year_n 1600._o show_v her_o deformation_n and_o reformation_n together_o with_o the_o rise_n reign_v rage_n and_o begin-fall_a of_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n with_o many_o other_o profitable_a instruction_n gather_v out_o of_o divers_a writer_n of_o the_o several_a time_n and_o other_o history_n by_o alexander_n petrie_n minister_n of_o the_o scot_n congregation_n at_o rotterdam_n psalm_n iii_o what_o we_o have_v hear_v and_o know_v and_o our_o father_n have_v tell_v we_o we_o will_v not_o hide_v they_o from_o their_o child_n show_v unto_o the_o generation_n to_o come_v the_o praise_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o strength_n and_o his_o wonderful_a work_n that_o he_o have_v do_v cyprian_n de_fw-fr zelo_fw-la &_o livore_fw-la evil_a shall_v be_v eschew_v the_o more_o ready_o if_o the_o beginning_n and_o greatness_n of_o it_o be_v know_v origen_n contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la lib._n 3._o as_o he_o be_v deem_v to_o have_v make_v progress_n in_o philosophy_n who_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o dispute_v of_o different_a opinion_n have_v choose_v the_o best_a reason_n among_o they_o so_o i_o be_o bold_a to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o wise_a among_o christian_n who_o have_v most_o diligent_o consider_v the_o several_a sect_n of_o jew_n and_o christian_n hague_n print_v by_o adrian_z vlack_a m._n dc_o lxii_o honi_fw-fr soit_fw-fr qvi_fw-fr mal_fw-fr y_fw-fr pense_fw-fr to_o his_o highness_n william_n the_o iii_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n prince_z of_o orange_n count_n of_o nassaw_n catzenelbogen_n vianden_fw-mi dietz_n lingen_n moeurs_fw-fr bueren_n leerdam_n etc._n etc._n marquis_n of_o ter_z vere_n and_o vlissingen_n lord_n and_o baron_n of_o breda_n of_o the_o city_n of_o the_o grave_a and_o land_n of_o kuyck_n die_v grimbergen_n herstall_n kranendonck_n warneston_n arlay_n noseroy_n s._n vijt_fw-la doesbourg_n polanen_n willemstadt_n niewart_n ysselstein_n s._n martensdijck_n geertruydenberg_n chasteau-regnard_a the_o high_a and_o lower_n swaluw_n naeldwijck_n etc._n etc._n viscount_n hereditary_a of_o antwerp_n and_o besançon_n etc._n etc._n marshal_n hereditary_n of_o holland_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v honour_v they_o that_o honour_n i_o say_v the_o lord_z but_o who_o can_v tell_v what_o shall_v be_v do_v unto_o they_o who_o the_o lord_n will_v honour_v certain_o those_o do_v honour_n he_o who_o serve_v he_o religious_o they_o who_o be_v careless_a of_o religion_n do_v pretend_v that_o they_o can_v serve_v god_n because_o there_o be_v so_o many_o religion_n and_o they_o can_v know_v which_o be_v the_o right_n but_o if_o they_o be_v unfeigned_o desirous_a to_o know_v they_o may_v be_v resolve_v since_o our_o lord_n who_o be_v gracious_a merciful_a and_o abundant_a in_o goodness_n and_o truth_n leave_v we_o not_o in_o the_o mist_n or_o unto_o uncertainty_n but_o at_o several_a time_n and_o in_o divers_a way_n have_v speak_v unto_o the_o father_n by_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o the_o last_o day_n have_v speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n and_o have_v command_v all_o man_n to_o hear_v he_o he_o be_v the_o way_n the_o verity_n and_o the_o life_n none_o come_v unto_o the_o father_n but_o by_o he_o on_o which_o word_n chrysostom_n write_v thus_o it_o be_v as_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v i_o be_o the_o way_n that_o be_v by_o i_o you_o shall_v come_v the_o verity_n because_o assure_o those_o thing_n shall_v be_v which_o i_o have_v promise_v neither_o be_v any_o lie_n in_o i_o and_o the_o life_n because_o death_n can_v hinder_v you_o from_o i_o and_o since_o i_o be_o the_o way_n you_o need_v not_o another_o guide_n since_o i_o be_o truth_n i_o speak_v no_o false_a thing_n since_o i_o be_o life_n although_o you_o shall_v die_v you_o shall_v enjoy_v what_o i_o have_v promise_v and_o cyrill_n alexandr_n on_o the_o same_o word_n say_v by_o three_o thing_n we_o shall_v come_v into_o these_o heavenly_a mansion_n by_o the_o action_n of_o true_a verity_n by_o right_a faith_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n of_o all_o which_o none_o be_v the_o giver_n none_o be_v the_o fountain_n nor_o be_v any_o the_o cause_n but_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n for_o he_o have_v give_v commandment_n above_o the_o law_n he_o have_v show_v we_o the_o way_n and_o he_o be_v also_o the_o truth_n that_o be_v the_o true_a straightness_n and_o determination_n the_o upright_a rule_n and_o the_o best_a square_n of_o faith_n and_o he_o be_v also_o the_o life_n for_o none_o but_o he_o can_v restore_v unto_o we_o that_o life_n which_o we_o hope_v shall_v be_v in_o holiness_n and_o blessedness_n without_o perish_v he_o certain_o shall_v raise_v we_o up_o though_o we_o die_v from_o that_o curse_n for_o sin_n and_o bring_v we_o into_o heaven_n therefore_o all_o excellent_a thing_n come_v and_o shall_v be_v unto_o we_o through_o he_o but_o those_o worldling_n say_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v large_a and_o so_o many_o thing_n be_v in_o it_o that_o we_o can_v search_v they_o nevertheless_o he_o direct_v all_o man_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o evangelist_n teach_v that_o those_o be_v write_v that_o we_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o believe_a we_o may_v have_v life_n through_o his_o name_n yea_o in_o that_o write_a word_n he_o have_v certain_a rule_n and_o note_n whereby_o the_o true_a religion_n may_v be_v know_v certain_o that_o be_v the_o most_o true_a religion_n which_o ascribe_v most_o glory_n unto_o god_n and_o most_o transcend_v the_o natural_a reason_n of_o man_n and_o most_o elevate_v the_o heart_n and_o affection_n of_o man_n towards_o god_n and_o heaven_n by_o application_n of_o those_o undoubted_a and_o unquestionable_a principle_n each_o one_o may_v understand_v that_o among_o all_o religion_n the_o reform_a be_v the_o only_a true_a religion_n for_o not_o only_o our_o profession_n in_o the_o general_n but_o all_o the_o branch_n of_o our_o doctrine_n be_v ground_v on_o god_n write_a word_n and_o tend_v unto_o god_n glory_n transcend_v our_o natural_a reason_n and_o lead_v man_n to_o think_v continual_o of_o god_n and_o to_o hope_v for_o blessedness_n in_o heaven_n by_o christ_n alone_o and_o among_o those_o who_o profess_v this_o religion_n they_o be_v most_o devote_v unto_o god_n and_o most_o constant_a in_o their_o profession_n who_o aim_v most_o at_o god_n glory_n who_o be_v most_o act_v by_o supernatural_a principle_n who_o do_v most_o think_v of_o god_n and_o who_o hope_n of_o felicity_n in_o heaven_n be_v most_o active_a and_o such_o as_o seek_v but_o their_o own_o or_o other_o man_n interest_n or_o be_v lead_v by_o political_a or_o human_a reason_n main_o be_v the_o waver_a professor_n on_o the_o other_o side_n all_o other_o religion_n though_o they_o pretend_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n they_o be_v not_o true_o ground_v on_o god_n word_n but_o be_v underprop_v with_o natural_a reason_n and_o tend_v to_o earthly_a mindedness_n as_o appear_v by_o induction_n of_o the_o particular_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o we_o some_o aim_v at_o the_o advancement_n of_o man_n ability_n and_o other_o at_o worldly_a honour_n and_o gain_v this_o be_v clear_a in_o the_o romish_a religion_n for_o what_o else_o be_v the_o advance_n of_o man_n ability_n without_o or_o with_o a_o little_a help_n of_o god_n their_o justification_n by_o work_n their_o deify_n of_o the_o pope_n above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n their_o equal_v of_o man_n tradition_n and_o decree_n with_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n what_o else_o be_v their_o mass_n their_o fancy_n of_o purgatory_n &_o c_o here_o it_o be_v remarkable_a what_o be_v write_v by_o their_o jesuit_n cardinal_n bellarmin_n de_fw-fr indulg_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 12._o sect._n rationes_fw-la we_o see_v say_v he_o that_o the_o ample_a indulgence_n be_v give_v for_o a_o very_a slight_a cause_n as_o when_o plenary_a indulgence_n be_v give_v unto_o all_o who_o stand_v before_o the_o door_n of_o st._n peter_n church_n and_o the_o pope_n bless_v all_o the_o people_n solemn_o and_o sect._n observandum_fw-la he_o say_v that_o stand_v before_o st._n peter_n porch_n be_v a_o very_a light_n and_o slight_a cause_n if_o it_o be_v consider_v absolute_o in_o itself_o and_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v a_o weighty_a and_o just_a cause_n because_o that_o frequency_n of_o the_o people_n at_o that_o time_n be_v a_o fit_a and_o useful_a mean_n of_o protest_v their_o faith_n concern_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o it_o serve_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v which_o honour_n be_v the_o end_n of_o that_o indulgence_n so_o he_o the_o pope_n then_o and_o the_o people_n do_v aid_v one_o another_o mutual_o for_o the_o people_n confirm_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o their_o presence_n and_o receive_v that_o indulgence_n and_o he_o by_o dispense_n his_o
one_o nation_n and_o then_o another_o yet_o so_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v like_a to_o a_o lump_n of_o sundry_a mettle_n wherein_o be_v some_o piece_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n but_o more_o of_o brass_n and_o base_a mettle_n all_o mingle_a in_o one_o cake_n as_o there_o every_o one_o can_v point_v out_o where_o the_o good_a mettle_n be_v yet_o a_o cunning_a mineralist_n know_v there_o be_v gold_n in_o that_o lump_n and_o can_v sever_v the_o rich_a mettle_n from_o the_o base_a and_o then_o purify_v every_o mettle_n from_o their_o own_o dross_n and_o put_v another_o form_n upon_o they_o that_o every_o one_o who_o be_v not_o altogether_o ignorant_a may_v know_v they_o so_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n though_o potentate_n and_o nation_n for_o ignorance_n or_o fear_n of_o enmity_n and_o sometime_o for_o hope_v of_o advantage_n against_o their_o enemy_n do_v cleave_v unto_o rome_n and_o seem_v to_o make_v one_o visible_a church_n yet_o in_o all_o country_n even_o in_o italy_n under_o the_o face_n of_o antichrist_n many_o both_o of_o the_o teacher_n and_o teach_v do_v detest_v the_o tyranny_n and_o avaricious_a error_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o their_o heart_n wish_v a_o reformation_n and_o by_o writ_n have_v publish_v to_o the_o world_n all_o the_o truth_n for_o beside_o they_o who_o do_v open_o contest_v with_o she_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o article_n of_o controversy_n but_o we_o shall_v find_v some_o of_o their_o schoolman_n and_o monk_n dispute_v with_o we_o against_o the_o now-romish_a error_n at_o last_o it_o please_v god_n to_o put_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o refine_n preacher_n and_o prince_n to_o break_v the_o faction_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o purify_v themselves_o with_o their_o adherent_n from_o the_o dross_n that_o their_o ancestor_n have_v contract_v and_o to_o unite_v themselves_o into_o another_o form_n of_o government_n and_o as_o the_o refiner_n can_v be_v say_v to_o make_v new_a gold_n but_o only_o refine_v the_o preaexistent_a mettle_n and_o give_v it_o the_o face_n it_o have_v before_o the_o commixtion_n so_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v not_o a_o new_a church_n for_o that_o suppose_v a_o new_a church_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o but_o they_o have_v take_v themselves_o unto_o the_o old_a truth_n which_o be_v obscure_v for_o a_o space_n in_o the_o west_n with_o corruption_n in_o the_o domineer_a part_n and_o they_o have_v return_v into_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o be_v interrupt_v and_o they_o be_v become_v like_o unto_o they_o who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o both_o these_o have_v join_v hand_n and_o heart_n against_o the_o common_a error_n herein_o wholesome_a be_v the_o direction_n of_o cyprian_a to_o pompey_n contrà_fw-la epistolam_fw-la steph._n pap_n say_n devote_v and_o ingenious_a mind_n will_v ready_o lay_v aside_o error_n and_o search_v and_o find_v the_o truth_n for_o if_o we_o return_v to_o the_o head_n and_o fountain_n of_o divine_a tradition_n human_a error_n cease_v and_o the_o way_n of_o heavenly_a mystery_n be_v perceive_v whatsoever_o be_v dark_o lurk_v under_o a_o cloud_n be_v discover_v by_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n if_o a_o pipe_n of_o a_o conduit_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o flow_v abundant_o shall_v fail_v at_o any_o time_n will_v not_o man_n go_v unto_o the_o fountain_n that_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o fail_a may_v be_v know_v whether_o it_o have_v dry_v in_o the_o head_n or_o whether_o that_o be_v whole_a and_o full_a the_o fault_n be_v in_o the_o midway_n but_o if_o it_o have_v fail_v by_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o break_a and_o sink_a pipe_n that_o the_o water_n can_v not_o flow_v constant_o they_o amend_v and_o make_v strong_a the_o pipe_n that_o the_o water_n may_v be_v bring_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o city_n with_o the_o same_o abundance_n and_o integrity_n as_o it_o come_v from_o the_o fountain_n this_o shall_v the_o priest_n of_o god_n do_v which_o will_v keep_v his_o command_n that_o if_o truth_n shall_v be_v in_o doubt_n or_o change_v we_o shall_v return_v unto_o the_o divine_a fountain_n the_o evangelical_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o from_o thence_o let_v the_o reason_n of_o our_o act_n arise_v whence_o be_v the_o order_n and_o original_n it_o have_v be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o christ_n and_o one_o hope_n and_o one_o faith_n one_o church_n and_o but_o one_o baptism_n ordain_v in_o that_o one_o church_n from_o which_o whosoever_o depart_v he_o must_v be_v find_v among_o heretic_n and_o if_o he_o will_v maintain_v they_o against_o the_o church_n he_o fight_v against_o the_o mystery_n of_o divine_a tradition_n so_o far_o cyprian_n the_o three_o age_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n fade_v and_o of_o antichrist_n rising_n contain_v the_o space_n of_o 400._o year_n from_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 600._o until_o the_o year_n 1000_o century_n vii_o chap._n i._o of_o emperor_n phocas_n a_o mean_a captain_n in_o thracia_n in_o a_o sedition_n infortunate_o a_o usurper_n reign_v crafty_o wicked_o infortunate_o of_o the_o people_n do_v kill_v his_o sovereign_n maurice_n usurp_v the_o crown_n and_o hold_v the_o empire_n 7._o year_n he_o begin_v to_o establish_v himself_o by_o favour_n cyriachus_fw-la patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n have_v crown_v he_o and_o then_o do_v hate_v he_o for_o his_o cruelty_n against_o the_o house_n and_o friend_n of_o maurice_n the_o western_a part_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v aim_v at_o liberty_n and_o like_a to_o forsake_v he_o wherefore_o he_o deal_v gentle_o with_o pope_n gregory_n i._n and_o after_o he_o he_o set_v up_o another_o of_o his_o own_o mind_n and_o then_o another_o in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n they_o play_v to_o other_o hand_n the_o emperor_n give_v unto_o boniface_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o the_o pope_n promise_v fidelity_n unto_o phocas_n he_o be_v give_v unto_o covetousness_n in_o oppress_v the_o province_n with_o tribute_n to_o lust_n in_o defile_v other_o man_n wife_n as_o for_o intemperancy_n carouse_v be_v his_o glory_n zonar_n annal_n li._n 3._o in_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v great_a disorder_n and_o little_a justice_n the_o persian_n subdue_v mesopotamia_n assyria_n syria_n and_o take_v jerusalem_n for_o cosroes_n pretend_v to_o revenge_v the_o death_n of_o his_o father-in-law_n maurice_n kill_v the_o most_o part_n of_o that_o army_n which_o have_v advance_v phocas_n or_o assist_v he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o be_v send_v captive_a into_o persia_n pe._n mexia_n france_n have_v late_o go_v away_o and_o now_o germany_n a_o great_a part_n of_o italy_n pannonia_n misia_n and_o other_o part_n make_v a_o full_a defection_n wherefore_o the_o senate_n of_o constantinople_n see_v miserable_o and_o die_v miserable_o that_o either_o the_o empire_n or_o tyrant_n must_v perish_v especial_o priscus_n one_o of_o the_o chief_a captain_n under_o maurice_n and_o now_o the_o son-in-law_n of_o phocas_n and_o heracleon_n the_o governor_n of_o africa_n who_o wife_n phocas_n have_v defile_v consult_v together_o and_o send_v army_n from_o africa_n and_o thracia_n they_o take_v phocas_n in_o constantinople_n and_o give_v he_o just_a reward_n they_o cut_v off_o his_o hand_n and_o foot_n than_o his_o privy_a member_n at_o last_o his_o head_n some_o write_v they_o burn_v his_o body_n in_o a_o brazen_a cow_n and_o other_o say_v they_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o sea_n an._n 609._o zonar_n annal_n to_o 3._o 2._o heraclius_n son_n of_o heracleon_n governor_n of_o africa_n be_v make_v glory_n hard_a beginning_n bring_v glory_n emperor_n with_o general_a consent_n of_o people_n army_n and_o senator_n and_o be_v crown_v by_o sergius_n the_o patriarch_n he_o find_v the_o empire_n in_o a_o troublous_a time_n but_o his_o glory_n be_v the_o great_a his_o deputy_n campsinus_n usurp_v the_o kingdom_n of_o italy_n and_o be_v quick_o subdue_v and_o slay_v by_o eleutherius_fw-la who_o the_o emperor_n send_v against_o he_o bajanus_fw-la made_n himself_o king_n of_o bavaria_n and_o molest_v the_o empire_n in_o the_o west_n that_o cosroes_n have_v the_o less_o opposition_n in_o subdue_a egypt_n and_o africa_n unto_o carthage_n in_o the_o end_n heraclius_n bring_v the_o bavarian_n under_o command_n he_o crown_v his_o son_n emperor_n and_o go_v in_o person_n against_o the_o persian_n pe._n mexia_n first_o he_o deal_v for_o peace_n by_o ambassador_n confidence_n a_o good_a cause_n give_v confidence_n cosros_n say_v he_o will_v not_o lay_v down_o arm_n until_o he_o have_v abolish_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o crucify_a god_n and_o the_o persian_a god_n be_v worship_v every_o where_n then_o heraclius_n be_v the_o more_o confident_a that_o the_o war_n be_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o empire_n as_o for_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n
the_o moon_n in_o the_o first_o month_n hence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o then_o they_o do_v reckon_v march_n to_o be_v the_o first_o month_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v the_o custom_n in_o scotland_n till_o the_o year_n 1603._o and_o be_v still_o the_o custom_n of_o england_n whereupon_o arise_v difference_n in_o computation_n of_o year_n 2._o no_o bishop_n shall_v meddle_v with_o the_o diocy_n of_o another_o 3._o no_o clerk_n shall_v forsake_v his_o own_o bishop_n and_o go_v into_o another_o diocy_n without_o letter_n of_o commendation_n from_o his_o own_o bishop_n 4._o provincial_n synod_n shall_v be_v observe_v at_o least_o once_o a_o year_n 5._o let_v no_o bishop_n prefer_v himself_o before_o another_o but_o by_o priority_n of_o their_o consecration_n 6._o let_v no_o man_n put_v away_o his_o wife_n except_o as_o the_o gospel_n teach_v it_o be_v for_o sornication_n and_o if_o he_o put_v she_o away_o let_v he_o remain_v unmarried_a beda_n hist_o angl._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 5._o 9_o in_o the_o year_n 682._o be_v the_o general_a council_n of_o 150._o bishop_n or_o as_o some_o constantinople_n the_o vi_o general_a council_n at_o constantinople_n write_v 171._o at_o constantinople_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o monothelite_n of_o this_o council_n somewhat_o be_v speak_v before_o here_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n be_v present_a and_o precedent_n propound_v question_v command_a silence_n upon_o occasion_n rule_v and_o dismiss_v in_o every_o session_n or_o in_o his_o absence_n a_o nobleman_n who_o he_o ordain_v the_o nobleman_n sit_v on_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o on_o his_o left_a be_v the_o legate_n of_o pope_n agatho_n george_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n macarius_n bishop_n of_o antiochia_n some_o presbyter_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o jerusalem_n for_o then_o these_o two_o city_n be_v under_o the_o saracen_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n there_o they_o be_v accurse_v who_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o will_n in_o christ_n and_o a_o confession_n be_v publish_v against_o this_o error_n and_o they_o make_v no_o other_o canon_n george_n do_v confess_v his_o error_n and_o do_v receive_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o council_n but_o macarius_n and_o his_o predecessor_n cyrus_n sergius_n pyrrhus_n paul_n and_o peter_n be_v accurse_v and_o theophanius_n a_o abbot_n in_o sicily_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n beda_n de_fw-fr 6._o aetat_fw-la in_o the_o 12._o session_n the_o epistle_n of_o honorius_n bishop_n of_o old_a rome_n unto_o sergius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v examine_v he_o be_v anathematise_v and_o his_o epistle_n be_v condemn_v to_o the_o fire_n this_o council_n sit_v 2._o year_n within_o 4._o or_o 5._o year_n by_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n the_o same_o bishop_n be_v assemble_v and_o about_o 100_o more_o they_o sit_v in_o the_o palace_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v trullano_n from_o trullo_n the_o name_n of_o the_o palace_n also_o it_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o it_o be_v neither_o five_o nor_o six_o yet_o they_o set_v in_o form_n the_o constitution_n of_o both_o bellarm._n de_fw-fr conc_fw-fr lib._n 1._o cap._n 7._o in_o gratian._n decr_n do_v cap._n 16._o habeo_fw-la librum_fw-la peter_n bishop_n of_o nicomedia_n testify_v that_o they_o make_v 102._o canon_n which_o be_v not_o extant_a but_o some_o be_v preserve_v mart._n kemnitius_n in_o examine_v conc._n triden_n pag._n 3._o cit_v from_o nilus_n bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n and_o the_o greek_a nomocanon_n the_o thirteen_o canon_n in_o these_o word_n because_o we_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o a_o canon_n that_o they_o who_o be_v think_v worthy_a of_o the_o order_n of_o a_o deacon_n or_o presbyter_n shall_v profess_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o bed_v with_o their_o own_o wife_n thereafter_o we_o follow_v the_o ancient_a canon_n of_o apostolical_a genuine_a and_o orderly_a constitution_n ordain_v that_o the_o lawful_a cohabitation_n of_o holy_a man_n with_o their_o own_o wife_n from_o this_o day_n in_o time_n come_v shall_v be_v valid_a ratify_v and_o firm_a no_o way_n dissolve_v their_o conjunction_n with_o their_o own_o wife_n or_o deprive_v they_o of_o conjugal_a society_n which_o be_v in_o due_a time_n and_o therefore_o he_o who_o be_v think_v worthy_a the_o honour_n of_o a_o sub-deacon_n or_o deacon_n or_o a_o presbyter_n shall_v not_o be_v hinder_v from_o that_o degree_n because_o he_o dwell_v with_o his_o lawful_a wife_n neither_o shall_v it_o be_v require_v of_o he_o at_o his_o ordination_n or_o shall_v he_o be_v compel_v to_o profess_v that_o he_o shall_v or_o shall_v abstain_v from_o lawful_a copulation_n with_o his_o own_o wife_n and_o yet_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v copulation_n with_o their_o own_o wife_n indifferent_o but_o shall_v abstain_v in_o time_n of_o their_o course_n and_o therefore_o if_o any_o shall_v presume_v contrary_a to_o the_o apostolical_a canon_n to_o deprive_v deacon_n and_o priest_n after_o ordination_n of_o society_n with_o their_o lawful_a wife_n let_v he_o be_v depose_v and_o also_o they_o who_o be_v ordain_v if_o they_o put_v away_o their_o wife_n under_o pretext_n of_o piety_n let_v they_o be_v excommunicate_v hence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o council_n do_v defend_v the_o marriage_n of_o churchman_n to_o be_v apostolical_a and_o orderly_a and_o therefore_o the_o contrary_a constitution_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o ancient_a apostolical_a nor_o orderly_a and_o nevertheless_o the_o same_o council_n say_v ca._n 3._o because_o the_o roman_a see_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n have_v observe_v the_o high_a rigour_n and_o the_o constantinopolitan_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d meekness_n or_o gentleness_n let_v we_o set_v a_o middle_n between_o the_o two_o etc._n etc._n and_o so_o they_o ordain_v that_o who_o be_v twice_o marry_v or_o who_o have_v marry_v a_o widow_n or_o a_o divorce_v or_o a_o servant_n or_o a_o whore_n shall_v not_o henceforth_o be_v admit_v and_o the_o liberty_n of_o priest_n which_o in_o ca._n 13._o be_v call_v apostolical_a be_v deny_v unto_o bishop_n in_o ca._n 12._o and_o the_o wife_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v to_o go_v into_o a_o monastery_n ca._n 48._o and_o priest_n deacon_n and_o subdeacon_n be_v forbid_v to_o marry_v from_o thenceforth_o when_o they_o say_v from_o thenceforth_o they_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a before_o these_o canon_n be_v also_o in_o gratian_n decree_n with_o great_a alteration_n but_o the_o know_a practice_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n show_v the_o reality_n of_o these_o canon_n likewise_o in_o ca._n 55._o they_o say_v because_o we_o have_v find_v that_o some_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o time_n of_o lent_n do_v fast_o on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n contrary_a to_o the_o receive_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n it_o seem_v good_a unto_o this_o sacred_a synod_n that_o the_o canon_n shall_v also_o bind_v every_o way_n the_o roman_a church_n which_o canon_n say_v if_o any_o clerk_n shall_v be_v find_v to_o fast_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n or_o sabbath_n except_o one_o sabbath_n only_o let_v he_o be_v depose_v and_o if_o he_o be_v a_o laic_a let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_v the_o papish_n in_o these_o day_n do_v glory_n say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o mother-church_n judge_n of_o all_o church_n and_o can_v be_v judge_v of_o none_o but_o behold_v in_o this_o synod_n a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v condemn_v in_o two_o particular_n and_o in_o ca._n 36._o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n have_v and_o shall_v have_v equal_a privilege_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n be_v equal_o magnify_v gratian._n decr_n do_v 23._o edit_fw-la paris_n a_o 1585._o where_o the_o gloss_n say_v that_o the_o canon_n be_v amend_v from_o a_o manuscript_n in_o greek_a 10._o in_o the_o year_n 684._o be_v the_o xi_o council_n at_o toledo_n there_o first_o quiricus_n toledo_n the_o xi_o synod_n at_o toledo_n the_o metropolitan_a lament_v the_o long_a omission_n of_o national_a counsel_n and_o the_o x._o be_v hold_v a_o 674._o ca._n 2._o so_o far_o as_o one_o excel_v another_o in_o honour_n of_o preferment_n so_o far_o ought_v he_o to_o excel_v in_o godliness_n by_o have_v continual_o in_o his_o mouth_n the_o sword_n of_o truth_n and_o in_o his_o hand_n the_o work_n of_o light_n for_o we_o shall_v at_o all_o time_n be_v mindful_a of_o the_o degree_n of_o order_n and_o manner_n of_o conversation_n see_v we_o have_v take_v upon_o we_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v and_o no_o care_n ought_v to_o distract_v we_o from_o read_v the_o scripture_n therefore_o who_o be_v advance_v to_o eminent_a place_n aught_o to_o take_v care_n that_o they_o who_o be_v within_o their_o charge_n perish_v not_o by_o famine_n of_o the_o word_n also_o metropolitan_n shall_v
all_o sin_n so_o the_o regenerate_a in_o christ_n may_v live_v in_o this_o world_n without_o sin_n which_o sure_o belong_v not_o unto_o the_o estate_n of_o this_o present_a life_n but_o unto_o the_o blessedness_n of_o eternal_a life_n but_o if_o it_o be_v say_v only_o that_o for_o the_o begin_n of_o grace_n which_o we_o attain_v by_o regeneration_n we_o may_v seem_v to_o receive_v the_o liberty_n of_o will_n which_o we_o lose_v in_o adam_n although_o nevertheless_o the_o fullness_n and_o perfection_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v expect_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v why_o be_v the_o most_o clear_a truth_n darken_v with_o so_o great_a ambiguity_n and_o confusion_n of_o word_n now_o how_o great_a absurdity_n be_v in_o that_o which_o follow_v and_o we_o have_v free-well_a unto_o good_a be_v prevent_v and_o help_v ........_o as_o if_o after_o we_o be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n than_o we_o begin_v to_o have_v as_o freewill_n unto_o good_a so_o freewill_n unto_o evil_n as_o if_o by_o that_o regeneration_n when_o we_o be_v preven_v and_o help_v by_o grace_n we_o have_v freewill_n unto_o good_a and_o when_o we_o be_v desert_v of_o the_o same_o grace_n we_o have_v freewill_n unto_o evil_n what_o reason_n or_o consequence_n of_o meaning_n can_v be_v here_o do_v the_o grace_n of_o that_o regeneration_n work_v this_o in_o we_o that_o from_o thence_o we_o get_v freewill_n as_o unto_o good_a so_o unto_o evil_a further_o if_o when_o we_o be_v renew_v in_o baptism_n we_o receive_v in_o christ_n the_o liberty_n of_o will_n that_o be_v so_o lose_v in_o adam_n do_v then_o only_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n prevence_n and_o help_v we_o or_o do_v the_o same_o grace_n as_o once_o it_o help_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v free_a unto_o good_a so_o leave_v we_o once_o that_o we_o be_v make_v free_a unto_o evil_n what_o be_v this_o so_o obscure_a and_o almost_o not_o preach_v of_o grace_n have_v it_o not_o be_v better_a to_o have_v make_v use_n of_o those_o sentence_n of_o the_o forenamed_a father_n which_o define_v this_o matter_n full_o and_o clear_o or_o that_o this_o definition_n have_v be_v frame_v in_o their_o word_n and_o plain_o be_v declare_v how_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n preven_v and_o help_v we_o that_o be_v whether_o once_o so_o great_a grace_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o in_o baptism_n which_o may_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o our_o life_n or_o whether_o it_o shall_v be_v implore_v and_o get_v daily_o and_o whether_o we_o have_v need_n of_o it_o for_o some_o good_a thing_n or_o for_o all_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n appear_v here_o and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v better_a to_o have_v be_v silent_a then_o to_o speak_v so_o fond_o of_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n for_o we_o have_v need_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n not_o only_o for_o a_o good_a work_n as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o this_o chapter_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o faith_n without_o which_o grace_n we_o can_v come_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n of_o regeneration_n we_o have_v need_n of_o grace_n for_o all_o and_o every_o good_a thing_n through_o every_o day_n we_o have_v need_n of_o it_o to_o stir_v up_o in_o we_o a_o good_a will_n we_o have_v need_n of_o grace_n to_o speak_v good_a and_o wholesome_a thing_n we_o have_v need_n of_o grace_n for_o all_o good_a way_n of_o good_a work_n concern_v can._n iii_o first_n they_o exhort_v iii_o can._n iii_o to_o keep_v peace_n and_o unity_n and_o to_o shun_v contention_n then_o they_o say_v behold_v one_o may_v think_v and_o say_v as_o former_o it_o have_v be_v think_v and_o say_v the_o apostle_n say_v not_o general_o and_o as_o they_o have_v add_v without_o exception_n who_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v but_o especial_o concern_v they_o of_o who_o he_o have_v say_v before_o for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n and_o for_o they_o which_o be_v in_o authority_n that_o when_o he_o say_v all_o he_o understand_v all_o sort_n of_o man_n even_o of_o all_o condition_n sex_n order_n what_o unconsequent_a or_o contrariety_n unto_o the_o truth_n be_v in_o this_o exposition_n likewise_o one_o may_v say_v as_o it_o be_v find_v to_o be_v say_v by_o some_o ancient_n that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o whole_a mankind_n what_o ill_a or_o danger_n have_v this_o exposition_n for_o he_o who_o think_v so_o do_v not_o think_v that_o any_o man_n do_v resist_v and_o go_v against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o will_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v that_o god_n can_v do_v what_o he_o will_v and_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o speak_v diverse_o yet_o do_v agree_v faithful_o and_o unanimous_o that_o whether_o the_o apostle_n speak_v so_o or_o so_o yet_o no_o man_n be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o gracious_a mercy_n of_o god_n and_o none_o be_v suffer_v to_o perish_v but_o in_o his_o just_a judgement_n certain_o this_o be_v manifest_a in_o that_o question_n that_o although_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n general_o and_o indefinite_o to_o be_v save_v yet_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o some_o through_o the_o bountifulness_n of_o mercy_n he_o work_v the_o same_o in_o his_o will_n that_o both_o they_o have_v a_o will_n to_o be_v save_v and_o they_o be_v save_v to_o who_o the_o apostle_n say_v with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a work_n forth_o your_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o you_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n but_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o other_o through_o the_o severity_n of_o his_o hide_a and_o just_a judgement_n he_o work_v not_o this_o save_a will_n but_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o own_o will_n that_o because_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o shall_v be_v damn_v in_o just_a punishment_n and_o this_o may_v be_v say_v indeed_o of_o they_o which_o have_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o through_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o own_o unbelief_n will_v not_o receive_v it_o but_o what_o shall_v be_v say_v of_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n of_o the_o wicked_a who_o have_v be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o they_o who_o can_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v as_o yet_o in_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n unto_o who_o never_o a_o preacher_n be_v come_v who_o can_v no_o way_n believe_v in_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v nor_o receive_v a_o preacher_n see_v none_o have_v be_v send_v unto_o they_o shall_v such_o therefore_o be_v damn_v because_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v who_o never_o can_v hear_v and_o nevertheless_o they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v for_o their_o other_o sin_n and_o especial_o for_o original_a sin_n wherein_o all_o have_v sin_v for_o it_o be_v not_o write_v in_o vain_a pour_v out_o thy_o wrath_n upon_o the_o nation_n which_o know_v thou_o not_o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v render_v vengeance_n in_o flame_a fire_n on_o they_o who_o know_v not_o god_n if_o one_o shall_v ask_v of_o those_o what_o have_v the_o will_n of_o god_n do_v in_o they_o who_o will_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n what_o shall_v we_o answer_v will_v not_o a_o godly_a and_o prudent_a man_n choose_v rather_o to_o be_v silent_a or_o certain_o say_v with_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n thy_o judgement_n be_v a_o great_a deep_a and_o o_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n how_o incomprehensible_a be_v his_o way_n concern_v can._n iu._n can._n iu._n iu._n they_o say_v in_o this_o new_a question_n three_o question_n be_v propound_v first_o that_o it_o be_v say_v no_o man_n be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v who_o nature_n be_v not_o assume_v in_o christ_n of_o this_o question_n we_o hold_v thus_o that_o the_o assume_v of_o man_n nature_n by_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o necessity_n of_o beginning_n ex_fw-la necessitate_v incipiendi_fw-la but_o be_v only_o of_o his_o power_n and_o grace_n so_o his_o flesh_n descend_v through_o all_o generation_n so_o he_o be_v true_o bear_v very_a man_n of_o they_o that_o what_o he_o please_v by_o show_v mercy_n and_o heal_v and_o redeem_v he_o may_v thereof_o assume_v and_o reject_v what_o he_o please_v or_o not_o so_o in_o that_o unspeakable_a mystery_n of_o his_o incarnation_n he_o merciful_o do_v assume_v his_o elect_a who_o he_o come_v to_o redeem_v justify_v and_o save_v and_o who_o he_o do_v judge_v unworthy_a of_o that_o mercy_n and_o redemption_n he_o leave_v they_o out_o of_o that_o marvellou_fw-mi susception_n let_v we_o therefore_o acknowledge_v true_o that_o the_o susception_n of_o human_a nature_n in_o christ_n have_v leave_v unbeliever_n void_a of_o this_o mercy_n and_o that_o he_o have_v bestow_v it_o only_o on_o they_o that_o they_o have_v common_a
they_o which_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o he_o nor_o will_v ever_o believe_v as_o the_o lord_n himself_o say_v matth._n 20_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v ..._o to_o give_v his_o soul_n in_o redemption_n for_o many_o 4._o that_o he_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o the_o almighty_a god_n save_v who_o he_o will_v and_o that_o none_o at_o all_o can_v be_v save_v but_o who_o he_o will_v save_v and_o that_o all_o be_v save_v who_o he_o will_v save_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o his_o will_n those_o be_v save_v whosoever_o be_v not_o save_v as_o the_o prophet_n say_v whatsoever_o the_o lord_n will_v he_o do_v that_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n and_o say_v prudent_a although_o there_o be_v some_o other_o thing_n wherein_o he_o have_v satisfy_v and_o subscribe_v in_o which_o be_v condemn_v in_o pelagius_n the_o church_n have_v universal_o consent_v yet_o these_o be_v against_o he_o and_o his_o follower_n clear_v from_o his_o froward_a exposition_n by_o the_o apostolical_a see_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o bless_a aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o of_o augustine_n with_o other_o 214_o bishop_n and_o be_v publish_v unto_o all_o the_o world_n by_o many_o both_o epistle_n and_o book_n all_o the_o church_n to_o day_n rejoice_v in_o confess_v preach_v hold_v and_o shall_v hold_v this_o epistle_n of_o prudentius_n be_v in_o the_o 2_o tome_fw-mi of_o the_o french_a counsel_n and_o by_o it_o we_o may_v see_v not_o only_o his_o mind_n but_o the_o universal_a doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o all_o the_o world_n as_o he_o affirm_v although_o history_n do_v not_o express_v whether_o aeneas_n do_v subscribe_v these_o article_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o 99_o epistle_n of_o lupus_n ferarien_n where_o he_o commend_v this_o aeneas_n and_o say_v that_o prudentius_n with_o the_o other_o bishop_n do_v confirm_v his_o ordination_n by_o authority_n of_o lotharius_n a_o synod_n be_v hold_v an._n 855._o at_o valentia_n the_o canon_n thereof_o follow_v hereafter_o for_o the_o present_a i_o add_v the_o word_n of_o baronius_n concern_v it_o general_o say_v the_o bishop_n think_v good_a to_o bring_v no_o other_o thing_n into_o the_o church_n than_o what_o the_o most_o holy_a father_n and_o faithful_a teacher_n of_o the_o church_n have_v in_o all_o sincerity_n teach_v former_o in_o africa_n in_o the_o council_n at_o carthage_n and_o in_o france_n in_o the_o council_n at_o arausicane_n whereunto_o we_o shall_v cleave_v in_o all_o point_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o godly_a be_v save_v no_o other_o way_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o wicked_a be_v condemn_v for_o their_o own_o iniquity_n and_o that_o the_o wicked_a do_v not_o perish_v because_o as_o some_o say_v they_o can_v not_o be_v good_a but_o because_o they_o will_v not_o then_o he_o show_v that_o the_o act_n of_o this_o synod_n be_v send_v unto_o hincmar_n and_o that_o he_o do_v by_o writing_n condemn_v these_o error_n but_o vsser_n tax_v baronius_n that_o he_o have_v write_v of_o this_o matter_n slender_o and_o from_o the_o writing_n of_o hincmar_n and_o from_o act_n of_o synod_n convince_v he_o especial_o he_o declare_v from_o a_o book_n of_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n that_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o they_o of_o lion_n concern_v the_o five_o canon_n of_o this_o synod_n which_o in_o the_o end_n of_o that_o book_n think_v the_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o elect_a and_o the_o reprobate_n to_o be_v that_o in_o the_o reprobate_n remain_v the_o guiltiness_n of_o the_o first_o transgression_n which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o elect_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n also_o he_o show_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 856_o in_o the_o month_n of_o august_n charles_n the_o bald_n do_v call_v a_o synod_n at_o bonoile_n by_o paris_n and_o another_o in_o september_n at_o nielph_n where_o he_o give_v unto_o hincmar_n the_o article_n of_o the_o synod_n at_o valentia_n and_o what_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o other_o in_o favour_n of_o gotteschalk_n that_o hincmar_n shall_v answer_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o after_o three_o year_n hincmar_n do_v return_v a_o great_a book_n of_o god_n predestination_n and_o of_o man_n freewill_n as_o flodoard_v show_v hist_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 13_o and_o that_o the_o adverse_a party_n be_v not_o satisfy_v by_o that_o great_a volumn_n neither_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o valentian_n synod_n lessen_v and_o therefore_o an._n 859_o charles_n call_v another_o synod_n in_o audemantunno_n lingonum_fw-la where_o for_o the_o instruction_n of_o god_n people_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o valentian_n synod_n be_v voice_v and_o confirm_v again_o and_o proclaim_v only_o in_o the_o five_o canon_n they_o express_v not_o the_o four_o article_n because_o they_o perceive_v hincmar_n be_v offend_v by_o so_o express_v condemn_v they_o as_o if_o they_o thereby_o have_v neglect_v the_o limit_n and_o law_n of_o charity_n and_o they_o do_v add_v the_o name_n of_o john_n scot_n unto_o the_o nineteen_o article_n this_o synod_n be_v call_v lingonensis_n in_o council_n gall._n tom_n 3._o after_o 14_o day_n be_v a_o more_o frequent_a synod_n of_o twelve_o province_n at_o saponaria_n a_o village_n of_o the_o city_n of_o tullen_a where_o be_v king_n charles_n and_o his_o nephew_n lotharius_n and_o charles_n son_n of_o the_o emperor_n lotharius_n there_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o former_a synod_n and_o the_o carisiac_a article_n be_v read_v again_o and_o again_o great_a contention_n be_v between_o remigius_n and_o hincmar_n with_o their_o follower_n the_o one_o plead_v for_o and_o the_o other_o against_o the_o article_n of_o gotteschalk_n but_o as_o hincmar_n write_v in_o a_o epistle_n dedicatory_a unto_o charles_n the_o bald_a the_o stir_n be_v calm_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o archbishop_n remigius_n exhort_v they_o all_o to_o bring_v unto_o the_o next_o synod_n the_o book_n of_o the_o catholic_n doctor_n and_o as_o they_o shall_v find_v they_o agree_v unto_o the_o apostolical_a and_o catholic_n doctrine_n all_o shall_v hold_v together_o unanimous_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o act_n of_o this_o synod_n that_o it_o be_v so_o soon_o close_v because_o of_o the_o murmur_n in_o the_o country_n all_o this_o time_n gotteschalk_n be_v still_o in_o prison_n in_o the_o monastery_n of_o haultvillier_n whence_o he_o send_v forth_o first_o a_o short_a confession_n and_o then_o a_o large_a one_o confirm_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o latter_a he_o crave_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o free_a synod_n wherein_o truth_n may_v be_v make_v know_v unto_o all_o and_o error_n altogether_o take_v away_o and_o he_o lament_v that_o for_o baseness_n of_o his_o person_n truth_n be_v despise_v and_o his_o adversary_n follow_v not_o charity_n and_o refuse_v verity_n only_o that_o they_o may_v seem_v victorious_a now_o of_o all_o that_o i_o have_v read_v concern_v his_o confession_n and_o the_o writing_n of_o both_o party_n i_o gather_v that_o at_o that_o time_n the_o great_a controversy_n be_v concern_v the_o predestination_n of_o the_o wicked_a unto_o punishment_n howbeit_o there_o be_v also_o some_o difference_n concern_v freewill_n and_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o conversion_n or_o of_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n and_o because_o hincmar_n in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o pr●destinatians_n whence_o be_v the_o word_n pr●destinatians_n pope_n nicolaus_n and_o semipelagian_o make_v mention_n of_o heretic_n who_o they_o call_v praedestinati_fw-la or_o praedestinatiani_n here_o i_o add_v concern_v that_o name_n that_o the_o first_o who_o mention_v it_o be_v he_o who_o write_v the_o continuation_n of_o ierom_n chronicle_n for_o he_o about_o the_o 24_o year_n of_o arcadius_n and_o honorius_n write_v say_v at_o this_o time_n begin_v the_o heresy_n of_o praedestinati_fw-la which_o have_v the_o beginning_n from_o augustine_n so_o it_o be_v express_o say_v vsser_n in_o histor_n gotte_n cap._n 2._o in_o two_o old_a manuscript_n one_o in_o the_o king_n bibliotheke_n and_o another_o in_o the_o benedictines_n at_o cambridge_n although_o in_o the_o print_a book_n it_o be_v not_o say_v from_o augustine_n but_o from_o the_o book_n of_o augustine_n be_v ill_o understand_v and_o certain_o these_o word_n of_o hincmar_n be_v frivolous_a since_o pope_n celestine_n do_v not_o write_v against_o such_o a_o heresy_n but_o against_o the_o pelagian_o as_o be_v clear_a in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o augustine_n and_o he_o do_v approve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o augustine_n and_o prosper_v in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o augustine_n which_o and_o the_o epistle_n of_o celestine_n be_v among_o the_o epistle_n of_o augustine_n write_v say_v many_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o the_o city_n massily_n think_v that_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o your_o holiness_n against_o the_o pelagian_a heretic_n whatsoever_o you_o
necessity_n that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o but_o that_o he_o in_o his_o almighty_a and_o unchangeable_a majesty_n as_o he_o know_v all_o thing_n ere_o they_o be_v do_v foreknow_v that_o the_o wicked_a be_v to_o be_v such_o of_o their_o own_o will_n nor_o do_v we_o believe_v that_o any_o be_v condemn_v in_o his_o prejudice_n but_o according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o own_o iniquity_n nor_o that_o the_o wicked_a do_v perish_v because_o they_o can_v not_o be_v good_a but_o because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v good_a and_o through_o their_o own_o fault_n continue_v in_o the_o mass_n of_o perdition_n or_o original_n and_o actual_a sin_n ca._n 3._o but_o concern_v the_o predestination_n of_o god_n it_o please_v and_o faithful_o do_v please_v according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v have_v not_o the_o potter_n power_n over_o the_o clay_n to_o make_v of_o the_o same_o mass_n one_o vessel_n unto_o honour_n and_o another_o unto_o dis-honour_n we_o confident_o confess_v the_o predestination_n of_o the_o elect_a unto_o life_n and_o predestination_n of_o the_o wicked_a unto_o death_n and_o in_o the_o election_n of_o they_o who_o be_v to_o be_v save_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n precede_v the_o good_a merit_n but_o in_o the_o damnation_n of_o they_o who_o perish_v their_o wicked_a merit_n precede_v the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o in_o that_o predestination_n god_n have_v only_o appoint_v what_o he_o be_v to_o do_v either_o in_o his_o gracious_a mercy_n or_o just_a judgement_n as_o the_o scripture_n say_v which_o have_v do_v what_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v but_o in_o the_o wicked_a he_o foreknow_v their_o wickedness_n because_o it_o be_v of_o they_o and_o he_o do_v not_o predestine_v it_o because_o it_o be_v not_o of_o he_o but_o because_o he_o know_v all_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v foreknow_v and_o because_o he_o be_v just_a he_o do_v predestine_v the_o punishment_n that_o follow_v their_o merit_n for_o with_o he_o as_o augustine_n say_v be_v as_o well_o a_o fix_a decree_n as_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o every_o thing_n and_o hither_o belong_v that_o say_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n judgement_n be_v prepare_v for_o the_o scorner_n prov._n 19_o of_o this_o unchangeableness_n of_o the_o foreknowledge_n and_o predestination_n of_o god_n by_o which_o the_o future_a thing_n be_v already_o do_v may_v that_o well_o be_v understand_v eccles_n 3_o i_o know_v whatsoever_o god_n do_v it_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o nothing_o can_v be_v put_v to_o it_o and_o nothing_o take_v from_o it_o and_o god_n do_v it_o that_o man_n shall_v fear_v before_o he_o but_o that_o any_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n predestinate_v unto_o evil_n as_o if_o they_o can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o we_o not_o only_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o but_o even_o if_o there_o be_v any_o which_o will_v believe_v such_o evil_a with_o all_o detestation_n as_o do_v the_o arausicane_a synod_n we_o say_v anathema_n unto_o they_o ca._n 4._o item_n of_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n because_o of_o so_o great_a a_o error_n which_o have_v begin_v in_o this_o point_n so_o that_o some_o as_o their_o writing_n declare_v define_v that_o it_o be_v shed_v even_o for_o the_o wicked_a which_o from_o the_o beginning_n unto_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v dead_a in_o their_o wickedness_n be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a damnation_n contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n o_o death_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o death_n and_o o_o grave_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o destruction_n it_o please_v we_o to_o hold_v and_o teach_v simple_o and_o faithful_o according_a to_o evangelical_n and_o apostolical_a truth_n that_o this_o price_n be_v give_v for_o they_o of_o who_o our_o lord_n say_v so_o must_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v lift_v up_o that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o ...._o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v christ_n be_v once_o offer_v to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o many_o and_o moreover_o the_o four_o article_n that_o be_v define_v unadvised_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o our_o brethren_n at_v carisiac_n for_o their_o inutility_n be_v also_o error_n contrary_a unto_o truth_n and_o likewise_o other_o thing_n conclude_v foolish_o in_o the_o 19_o syllogism_n of_o john_n scot_n and_o glorious_a with_o no_o secular_a literature_n although_o it_o be_v boast_v otherwise_o in_o which_o rather_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o devil_n than_o any_o argument_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v find_v we_o discharge_v they_o altogether_o from_o the_o hear_n of_o believer_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o inhibit_v they_o that_o those_o and_o such_o thing_n be_v altogether_o shun_v and_o we_o do_v judge_n that_o introducer_n of_o new_a thing_n shall_v be_v correct_v lest_o they_o be_v smite_v more_o severe_o ca._n 5._o we_o believe_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v hold_v firm_o that_o all_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o thereby_o true_o incorporate_v into_o the_o church_n and_o according_a to_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v baptize_v into_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o wash_v in_o his_o blood_n because_o neither_o can_v be_v true_a regeneration_n in_o they_o unless_o there_o be_v also_o true_a redemption_n see_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n nothing_o be_v in_o vain_a and_o nothing_o in_o mockage_n but_o altogether_o all_o thing_n be_v true_a and_o rely_v upon_o its_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n and_o yet_o of_o that_o multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o redeem_v some_o be_v save_v by_o eternal_a salvation_n because_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n they_o continue_v faithful_o in_o their_o redemption_n hear_v in_o their_o heart_n the_o voice_n of_o their_o lord_n matth._n 10._o &_o 24_o who_o continue_v unto_o the_o end_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o other_o because_o they_o will_v not_o continue_v in_o the_o salvation_n of_o faith_n which_o before_o they_o have_v receive_v and_o do_v choose_v rather_o to_o make_v the_o grace_n of_o redemption_n in_o vain_a through_o their_o wicked_a doctrine_n and_o life_n then_o to_o keep_v it_o attain_v no_o way_n to_o the_o fullness_n of_o salvation_n and_o possession_n of_o eternal_a blessedness_n see_v in_o both_o we_o have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o godly_a doctor_n whosoever_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n be_v baptize_v into_o his_o death_n and_o all_o which_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n have_v put_v on_o christ_n and_o let_v we_o draw_v near_o with_o a_o true_a heart_n in_o fullness_n of_o faith_n have_v our_o heart_n sprinkle_v from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n and_o be_v wash_v in_o the_o body_n with_o clean_a water_n let_v we_o hold_v fast_o the_o profession_n of_o our_o hope_n without_o change_n and_o again_o for_o they_o which_o sin_n willing_o after_o the_o receive_a knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n there_o remain_v no_o other_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n and_z he_o that_o despise_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n ....._o ca._n 6._o item_n of_o grace_n by_o which_o the_o believer_n be_v save_v and_o without_o which_o never_o any_o reasonable_a creature_n have_v live_v bless_o and_o of_o freewill_n which_o be_v weaken_v by_o sin_n in_o the_o first_o man_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v renew_v and_o heal_v in_o his_o believer_n we_o believe_v constant_o and_o with_o full_a faith_n the_o same_o that_o the_o most_o holy_a father_n have_v leave_v to_o be_v keep_v according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n what_o the_o arausican_n and_o african_a synod_n have_v profess_v what_o the_o bless_a high-priest_n of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v have_v hold_v in_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o presume_v to_o decline_v no_o way_n into_o another_o side_n concern_v nature_n and_o grace_n but_o we_o reject_v altogether_o the_o foolish_a question_n and_o almost_o the_o fable_n of_o old_a woman_n and_o scot_n pottage_n which_o the_o purity_n of_o faith_n can_v digest_v and_o which_o have_v miserable_o and_o lamentable_o arisen_a in_o these_o most_o dangerous_a and_o grievous_a time_n unto_o a_o heap_n of_o our_o labour_n and_o breach_n of_o charity_n lest_o christian_n mind_n be_v corrupt_v and_o fall_v from_o the_o simplicity_n and_o purity_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n so_o far_o they_o what_o they_o say_v here_o of_o scot_n pottage_n they_o understand_v that_o treatise_n of_o john_n scot_n and_o have_v borrow_v the_o phrase_n from_o jerom_n prologue_n on_o jerem._n lib._n 1._o speak_v of_o celestius_fw-la a_o disciple_n of_o pelagius_n a_o briton_n and_o not_o a_o scot._n and_o from_o this_o word_n baronius_n ad_fw-la an._n 855._o §_o 1._o write_v that_o this_o synod_n be_v convene_v against_o some_o vagr_a scot_n of_o who_o gotteschalk_n be_v the_o prime_a man_n and_o thereby_o have_v bring_v not_o only_o his_o binius_fw-la &_o
his_o kingdom_n and_o execute_v justice_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o noble_n all_o these_o thing_n shall_v the_o king_n swear_v in_o his_o own_o person_n before_o he_o be_v crown_v mat._n parisien_n describe_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o country_n at_o his_o come_n thus_o the_o noble_n be_v give_v to_o gluttony_n and_o lechery_n they_o go_v not_o to_o church_n in_o the_o christian_a manner_n in_o the_o morning_n but_o only_o have_v a_o priest_n which_o make_v haste_n with_o the_o matin_n and_o mass_n in_o their_o chamber_n and_o they_o hear_v a_o little_a with_o their_o ear_n the_o clergy_n be_v so_o ignorant_a that_o if_o any_o know_v the_o grammar_n he_o be_v admire_v by_o they_o all_o man_n be_v so_o give_v to_o carouse_v that_o both_o night_n and_o day_n be_v spend_v in_o that_o exercise_n etc._n etc._n this_o king_n have_v no_o child_n and_o send_v for_o edward_n the_o outlaw_n he_o come_v and_o die_v within_o a_o year_n at_o london_n leave_v one_o son_n edgar_z and_o two_o daughter_n margaret_n and_o christiana_n after_o edward_n harold_n earl_n of_o oxford_n be_v crown_v then_o william_n duke_n of_o normandy_n come_v into_o england_n with_o a_o army_n pretend_v a_o right_a by_o covenant_n with_o king_n edward_n and_o do_v so_o prevail_v ann_n 1067._o that_o harold_n be_v slay_v and_o he_o be_v call_v william_n the_o conqueror_n within_o a_o few_o year_n he_o make_v a_o great_a alteration_n in_o the_o kingdom_n the_o most_o part_n of_o his_o knight_n and_o bishop_n be_v norman_n and_o many_o english_a with_o edgar_z flee_v into_o scotland_n where_o king_n malcolm_n have_v marry_v margaret_n edgar_n sister_n and_o they_o incite_v malcolm_n to_o invade_v england_n and_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o north_n part_n ann_n 1071._o at_o last_o a_o peace_n be_v conclude_v upon_o condition_n that_o a_o mark-stone_n be_v set_v up_o in_o stanmoor_n as_o the_o mark_n of_o both_o kingdom_n with_o the_o portrait_n of_o both_o king_n on_o the_o side_n of_o the_o stone_n ja._n vsser_n de_fw-fr eccles_n statu_fw-la c._n 6._o show_n out_o of_o sundry_a author_n that_o when_o the_o war_n be_v betwixt_o william_n and_o harold_n william_n seek_v the_o pope_n advice_n and_o harold_n despise_v the_o pope_n so_o alexander_n ii_o then_o pope_n send_v unto_o william_n a_o standart_n in_o good_a luck_n or_o hope_v of_o his_o victory_n and_o when_o william_n have_v obtain_v the_o victory_n he_o send_v harold_n standart_n unto_o alexander_n thereafter_o the_o pope_n write_v unto_o he_o thus_o thy_o wisdom_n know_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n since_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v know_v there_o have_v be_v under_o the_o power_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n until_o some_o become_v member_n of_o that_o wicked_a head_n and_o follow_v the_o pride_n of_o their_o father_n satan_n have_v forsake_v god_n covenant_n and_o turn_v away_o the_o english_a people_n from_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n for_o as_o thou_o know_v well_o while_o the_o english_a be_v faithful_a upon_o account_n of_o their_o pious_a devotion_n they_o give_v a_o yearly_a pension_n unto_o the_o apostolical_a see_v of_o which_o a_o part_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o roman_a high_a priest_n and_o a_o part_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o s._n mary_n which_o be_v call_v the_o school_n of_o the_o english_a for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o brethren_n etc._n etc._n king_n william_n confirm_v the_o gift_n and_o as_o it_o follow_v thereafter_o some_o page_n until_o he_o be_v establish_v hildebrand_n be_v so_o affect_v towards_o he_o that_o he_o be_v evil_o report_v by_o the_o brethren_n grumble_a that_o he_o have_v so_o affect_v and_o help_v the_o commit_n of_o so_o many_o homicide_n and_o that_o william_n be_v devote_v unto_o the_o apostolical_a see_v above_o all_o other_o of_o his_o condition_n but_o when_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o content_a with_o the_o king_n liberality_n and_o seek_v a_o oath_n of_o loyalty_n william_n write_v unto_o he_o say_v religious_a father_n hubert_n thy_o legate_n admonish_v i_o in_o your_o name_n that_o i_o shall_v give_v loyalty_n unto_o thou_o and_o thy_o successor_n and_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v more_o mindful_a of_o the_o money_n which_o my_o ancestor_n be_v wont_a to_o send_v unto_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o one_o i_o have_v accept_v and_o not_o the_o other_o loyalty_n i_o will_v not_o give_v nor_o will_v i_o because_o neither_o have_v i_o promise_v it_o nor_o do_v i_o find_v that_o my_o ancestor_n have_v do_v it_o unto_o thy_o ancestor_n while_o i_o be_v three_o year_n in_o france_n the_o money_n be_v gather_v careless_o but_o since_o my_o return_v by_o the_o divine_a mercy_n what_o be_v gather_v be_v send_v by_o thy_o foresay_a legate_n pray_v for_o i_o and_o for_o the_o stand_n of_o our_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n hildebrand_n be_v not_o please_v with_o this_o letter_n and_o therefore_o in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o hubert_n he_o say_v thou_o know_v very_o well_o what_o account_n i_o make_v of_o money_n without_o honor._n and_o then_o speak_v of_o king_n william_n he_o say_v the_o roman_a church_n may_v lay_v many_o thing_n unto_o his_o charge_n none_o of_o all_o the_o king_n even_o of_o the_o heathenish_a have_v presume_v to_o attempt_v against_o the_o apostolic_a see_v what_o he_o have_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o do_v to_o wit_n that_o any_o have_v be_v so_o irreverent_a and_o shameless_a as_o to_o discharge_v his_o bishop_n and_o arch-bishop_n from_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o we_o will_v that_o thou_o in_o our_o name_n study_v to_o admonish_v he_o that_o as_o he_o will_v take_v it_o ill_o if_o his_o subject_n give_v he_o not_o due_a honour_n so_o he_o will_v not_o empair_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n and_o by_o give_v due_a thanks_o he_o may_v procure_v the_o favour_n of_o bless_a peter_n for_o we_o be_v mindful_a of_o our_o former_a love_n towards_o he_o and_o follow_v the_o meekness_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o god_n help_n so_o far_o as_o we_o can_v have_v spare_v his_o fault_n hitherto_o but_o if_o he_o will_v not_o put_v a_o end_n unto_o this_o and_o other_o his_o fault_n that_o thou_o know_v let_v he_o sure_o know_v that_o he_o will_v grievous_o provoke_v the_o wrath_n of_o bless_a peter_n etc._n etc._n among_o his_o other_o fault_n that_o be_v offensive_a unto_o hildebrand_n william_n have_v imprison_v his_o own_o brother_n odo_n bishop_n baiocen_n without_o regard_n of_o his_o episcopal_a order_n as_o he_o write_v unto_o the_o king_n say_v one_o thing_n touch_v we_o near_o and_o by_o touch_v vex_v we_o and_o among_o the_o excellent_a monument_n of_o thy_o royal_a virtue_n do_v violent_o overcloud_v the_o joy_n of_o our_o friendly_a heart_n that_o in_o take_v a_o bishop_n thy_o own_o brother_n not_o provide_v for_o thy_o honour_n as_o it_o become_v thou_o but_o prefer_v thy_o earthly_a wariness_n and_o reason_n unto_o god_n law_n thou_o have_v not_o take_v notice_n of_o priestly_a dignity_n the_o honour_n of_o a_o brother_n and_o episcopal_a dignity_n be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v match_v in_o comparison_n if_o you_o will_v compare_v it_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o a_o king_n or_o to_o the_o crown_n of_o prince_n these_o be_v more_o inferior_a then_o if_o you_o will_v compare_v lead_v unto_o gold_n so_o hildebrand_n and_o nevertheless_o baronius_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o king_n make_v no_o account_n of_o his_o intercession_n nor_o argument_n 4._o before_o this_o time_n be_v ●o_o diocy_n or_o bishopric_n in_o scotland_n and_o sure_o scotland_n alteration_n of_o the_o church_n discipline_n ●n_n scotland_n it_o be_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n at_o scone_n under_o constantine_n the_o ii_o all_o churchman_n be_v forbid_v to_o meddle_v with_o secular_a business_n therefore_o at_o that_o time_n a_o churchman_n can_v not_o be_v a_o parliamentary_a lord_n but_o king_n malcolm_n cammore_n bring_v in_o new_a title_n of_o honour_n into_o the_o civil_a estate_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o nation_n and_o so_o he_o change_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o erect_v six_o bishopric_n at_o that_o time_n as_o all_o our_o historian_n write_v many_o stranger_n from_o hungary_n and_o england_n which_o both_o be_v tributary_n unto_o rome_n and_o in_o great_a trouble_n come_v into_o this_o land_n with_o queen_n margaret_n and_o by_o she_o and_o their_o information_n the_o king_n be_v persuade_v unto_o such_o change_n both_o in_o the_o civil_a estate_n and_o church_n here_o then_o be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o discipline_n in_o the_o church_n of_o this_o land_n and_o we_o see_v by_o what_o mean_v it_o come_v even_o from_o rome_n where_o thing_n be_v very_o corrupt_a at_o that_o time_n but_o let_v we_o look_v back_o into_o former_a time_n and_o compare_v all_o together_o bishop_n potswood_n in_o his_o history_n will_v have_v
and_o to_o teach_v the_o people_n but_o let_v he_o teach_v these_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v learn_v from_o god_n and_o not_o of_o his_o own_o heart_n or_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n but_o what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v dist_n 9_o cap._n 6._o as_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o old_a book_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o hebrew_n book_n so_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o new_a crave_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o greek_a language_n dist_n 99_o cap._n 3._o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_v shall_v not_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o priest_n nor_o the_o high_a priest_n or_o any_o such_o way_n but_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_v but_o let_v not_o even_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v universal_a dist_n 95._o c._n olim_fw-la in_o old_a time_n he_o be_v a_o bishop_n that_o be_v a_o presbyter_n and_o ere_o that_o by_o instinct_n of_o the_o devil_n faction_n and_o schism_n be_v in_o religion_n and_o it_o be_v say_v among_o the_o people_n i_o be_o apollo_n and_o i_o be_o cepha_n the_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o common_a counsel_n of_o the_o presbyter_n so_o let_v bishop_n know_v that_o by_o custom_n more_o than_o by_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n dispensation_n they_o be_v great_a than_o the_o presbyter_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v govern_v the_o church_n in_o common_a caus_n 1._o qu._n 1._o c._n augustinus_n take_v the_o word_n from_o the_o water_n and_o what_o be_v it_o but_o water_n the_o word_n be_v add_v unto_o the_o element_n and_o then_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n whence_o be_v this_o virtue_n unto_o the_o water_n that_o it_o touch_v the_o body_n and_o wash_v the_o heart_n the_o word_n do_v it_o not_o because_o it_o be_v speak_v but_o because_o it_o be_v believe_v for_o in_o the_o word_n itself_o the_o pass_a sound_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o abide_a virtue_n be_v another_o de_fw-fr consecra_fw-la dist_n 2._o c._n comperimus_fw-la we_o have_v find_v that_o some_o when_o they_o have_v take_v only_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o holy_a body_n do_v abstain_v from_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o holy_a blood_n who_o without_o doubt_n because_o i_o know_v not_o by_o what_o superstition_n they_o be_v teach_v to_o be_v restrain_v shall_v either_o take_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n or_o be_v debar_v from_o all_o because_o the_o division_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sacrament_n can_v be_v without_o great_a sacrilege_n ca._n prima_fw-la quidem_fw-la till_o this_o world_n be_v finish_v the_o lord_n be_v above_o and_o yet_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v also_o here_o with_o we_o for_o the_o body_n in_o which_o he_o arise_v must_v be_v in_o one_o place_n but_o his_o truth_n be_v diffuse_v every_o where_n c._n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la the_o bread_n be_v after_o a_o manner_n call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereas_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o the_o offering_n which_o be_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v call_v christ_n passion_n death_n and_o crucify_a not_o in_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o in_o a_o signify_v mystery_n where_o the_o gloss_n say_v the_o bread_n i._n e._n the_o sacrament_n which_o true_o represent_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v his_o body_n but_o improper_o that_o be_v it_o signify_v ca._n in_o christo_n what_o do_v we_o then_o do_v we_o not_o offer_v every_o day_n yea_o but_o in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n it_o be_v do_v in_o remembrance_n thereof_o what_o be_v do_v ca._n quia_fw-la corpus_fw-la because_o he_o be_v to_o remove_v his_o body_n from_o our_o eye_n and_o carry_v it_o above_o the_o star_n it_o be_v needful_a that_o on_o the_o day_n of_o the_o supper_n he_o shall_v consecrate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o the_o end_n it_o shall_v be_v always_o reverence_v in_o a_o mystery_n which_o be_v once_o offer_v in_o payment_n many_o such_o passage_n be_v in_o these_o decree_n which_o differ_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o do_v prove_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n now_o be_v not_o such_o as_o it_o be_v then_o pope_n eugenius_n do_v approve_v all_o these_o decree_n and_o ordain_v that_o these_o shall_v be_v read_v in_o school_n and_o university_n instead_o of_o all_o canon_n and_o decree_n that_o so_o he_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o draw_v they_o all_o under_o one_o yoke_n 30._o peter_n lombard_n bishop_n of_o paris_n at_o the_o same_o time_n follow_v the_o footstep_n sentence_n some_o note_n of_o lombard_n sentence_n of_o gratian_n and_o gather_v the_o sum_n of_o divinity_n into_o four_o book_n of_o sentence_n out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n but_o as_o i_o say_v of_o gratian'ss_n decree_n with_o add_v mince_a and_o change_v of_o word_n and_o letter_n and_o suitable_o unto_o his_o time_n and_o these_o sentence_n be_v authorise_v as_o the_o text_n in_o all_o school_n to_o the_o end_n none_o from_o thenceforth_o shall_v search_v antiquity_n and_o truth_n any_o more_o from_o father_n or_o counsel_n under_o no_o less_o danger_n than_o guiltiness_n of_o heresy_n hear_v what_o cor._n agrippa_n de_fw-fr vanit_fw-la scient_a cap._n 97._o say_v of_o this_o scholastic_a theology_n it_o be_v say_v he_o of_o the_o kind_n of_o centaur_n a_o twofold_a discipline_n blow_v up_o by_o the_o sorbon_n of_o paris_n with_o a_o sort_n of_o mixtion_n of_o divine_a oracle_n and_o philosophical_a reason_n write_v after_o a_o new_a form_n and_o far_o different_a from_o the_o ancient_a custom_n by_o question_n and_o sly_a syllogism_n without_o all_o ornament_n of_o language_n but_o otherwise_o full_a of_o judgement_n and_o understanding_n and_o profitable_a to_o convince_v heretic_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o faculty_n of_o scholastic_a theology_n be_v not_o free_a from_o error_n and_o wickedness_n these_o curse_a hypocrite_n and_o bold_a sophist_n have_v bring_v in_o so_o many_o heresy_n which_o preach_v christ_n not_o of_o good_a will_n as_o paul_n say_v but_o of_o contention_n so_o that_o there_o be_v more_o agreement_n among_o philosopher_n then_o among_o these_o divine_n who_o have_v extinguish_v ancient_a divinity_n with_o opinion_n of_o man_n and_o new_a error_n etc._n etc._n here_o barth_n gravius_n a_o printer_n at_o lovane_n about_o the_o year_n 1565._o give_v we_o some_o light_n in_o his_o epistle_n before_o his_o edition_n of_o these_o sentence_n he_o tell_v that_o he_o have_v a_o purpose_n to_o reduce_v all_o the_o testimony_n unto_o the_o first_o fountain_n in_o sincerity_n but_o to_o his_o great_a admiration_n he_o be_v inform_v by_o the_o master_n there_o it_o can_v not_o be_v so_o because_o albeit_o in_o other_o edition_n innumerable_a place_n be_v correct_v yet_o many_o error_n as_o yet_o be_v remain_v and_o these_o not_o little_a one_o and_o not_o a_o few_o thing_n as_o in_o the_o edition_n at_o paris_n be_v change_v not_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o old_a book_n but_o in_o conjecture_n yea_o and_o the_o old_a word_n be_v corrupt_v oft_o time_n through_o a_o immoderate_a desire_n of_o amend_v and_o in_o not_o a_o few_o place_n the_o worse_a be_v put_v for_o the_o better_a and_o say_v he_o this_o may_v not_o be_v dissemble_v that_o the_o genuine_a read_n of_o the_o master_n in_o quote_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n be_v very_o oft_o change_v into_o the_o truth_n of_o its_o original_n especial_o not_o old_a copy_n witness_v that_o he_o have_v leave_v it_o so_o write_v for_o the_o master_n be_v not_o so_o solicitous_a to_o repeat_v all_o their_o place_n whole_o but_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o propound_v the_o matter_n brief_o and_o leave_v out_o many_o line_n in_o the_o middle_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o according_a to_o his_o mind_n to_o fill_v up_o what_o he_o have_v omit_v yea_o they_o have_v find_v by_o sure_a argument_n that_o he_o have_v transcribe_v many_o thing_n not_o from_o the_o very_a fountain_n but_o from_o hugo_n victorian_n and_o especial_o out_o of_o the_o glossa_fw-la ordinaria_fw-la where_o these_o passage_n be_v not_o find_v in_o a_o continue_v context_n as_o in_o their_o own_o author_n but_o maimedly_n and_o sometime_o but_o in_o break_a piece_n as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o sundry_a book_n and_o chapter_n and_o mix_v together_o as_o in_o a_o hotchpotch_n and_o so_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v corrupt_a in_o the_o master_n it_o must_v not_o be_v reduce_v unto_o the_o first_o fountain_n but_o rather_o unto_o the_o book_n of_o the_o glossa_fw-la because_o it_o be_v last_o take_v thence_o and_o also_o he_o be_v sometime_o deceive_v in_o read_v it_o wrong_v possible_o and_o lead_v into_o error_n in_o which_o case_n to_o amend_v he_o according_a to_o the_o square_n of_o his_o author_n be_v most_o absurd_a and_o madness_n they_o say_v also_o that_o in_o quote_v the_o author_n he_o
neck_n unto_o the_o sword_n nor_o do_v i_o think_v it_o expedient_a to_o advise_v any_o more_o with_o my_o lord_n the_o prelate_n nor_o if_o they_o will_v do_v otherwise_o do_v i_o consent_v unto_o they_o for_o it_o be_v more_o honest_a to_o deny_v quick_o what_o be_v demand_v unjust_o then_o to_o drive_v off_o time_n by_o delay_n see_v he_o be_v the_o less_o deceive_v who_o be_v refuse_v betimes_o when_o gilbert_n have_v so_o make_v a_o end_n some_o english_a both_o prelate_n and_o noble_n commend_v the_o young_a clerk_n that_o he_o have_v speak_v so_o bold_o for_o his_o nation_n without_o flatter_v and_o not_o abash_v at_o the_o gravity_n of_o such_o authority_n but_o other_o because_o he_o speak_v contrary_a unto_o their_o mind_n say_v a_o scot_n be_v natural_o violent_a and_o in_o naso_fw-la scoti_n piper_n but_o roger_n archbishop_n of_o york_n which_o principal_o have_v move_v this_o business_n to_o bring_v the_o church_n of_o scotland_n unto_o his_o see_n utter_v a_o groan_n and_o then_o with_o a_o merry_a countenance_n lay_v his_o hand_n on_o gilbert_n head_n say_v exit_fw-la tua_fw-la phareta_fw-la non_fw-la exiit_fw-la illae_fw-la sagitta_fw-la as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v when_o you_o stand_v in_o a_o good_a cause_n do_v not_o forethink_v what_o you_o shall_v say_v for_o in_o that_o hour_n it_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o you_o this_o gilbert_n be_v much_o respect_v at_o home_n after_o that_o and_o pope_n celestin_n put_v a_o end_n unto_o this_o debate_n for_o he_o send_v his_o bull_n unto_o king_n william_n grant_v that_o neither_o in_o ecclesiastical_a nor_o civil_a affair_n the_o nation_n shall_v answer_v unto_o any_o foreign_a judge_n whatsoever_o except_o only_o unto_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o legate_n special_o constitute_v so_o far_o in_o that_o register_n of_o dunkel_n 5._o the_o above_z named_z henry_n ii_o be_v so_o admire_v thourgh_n the_o world_n for_o his_o unfortunate_a henry_n ii_o prudent_a and_o unfortunate_a prudence_n and_o prowess_n that_o manuel_n emperor_n of_o the_o greek_n frederick_n emperor_n of_o germany_n the_o french_a king_n with_o many_o other_o famous_a prince_n send_v unto_o he_o as_o a_o schoolmaster_n of_o justice_n for_o determination_n of_o obscure_a doubt_n alfonso_n king_n of_o castille_n and_o saucius_fw-la king_n of_o navarre_n be_v at_o variance_n for_o some_o possession_n do_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n submit_v themselves_o unto_o his_o judgement_n and_o he_o find_v a_o overture_n to_o both_o their_o good_a like_n this_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v because_o the_o worshipper_n of_o becket_n call_v he_o a_o vicious_a prince_n in_o the_o year_n 1181._o the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o master_n of_o the_o templary_n have_v no_o king_n and_o be_v distress_v by_o saladin_n do_v proffer_n unto_o the_o same_o henry_n the_o kingdom_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o bring_v unto_o he_o the_o key_n of_o their_o city_n he_o refuse_v because_o of_o his_o weighty_a affair_n at_o home_n they_o be_v oppress_v by_o the_o infidel_n and_o he_o have_v no_o more_o prosperity_n for_o his_o son_n will_v have_v the_o government_n as_o well_o as_o the_o title_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o father_n do_v the_o service_n of_o a_o steward_n unto_o his_o son_n yea_o and_o more_o disdainful_o do_v the_o son_n entreat_v his_o father_n till_o he_o be_v take_v away_o by_o death_n and_o his_o brother_n richard_n be_v also_o a_o grief_n unto_o his_o father_n and_o so_o be_v the_o three_o brother_n john_n the_o true_a cause_n of_o all_o his_o woe_n may_v be_v think_v the_o oppression_n of_o some_o professor_n of_o truth_n for_o pol._n virgil._n in_o hist_n anglor_n lib._n 13._o testify_v that_o about_o the_o year_n 1160._o thirty_o teacher_n come_v from_o germany_n into_o england_n and_o teach_v the_o right_a use_n of_o baptism_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v put_v to_o death_n it_o be_v true_a virgil_n call_v they_o worshipper_n of_o devil_n but_o we_o shall_v hear_v anon_o how_o all_o professor_n of_o truth_n be_v revile_v and_o john_n of_o sarisbuny_n at_o the_o same_o time_n write_v say_v he_o who_o speak_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n or_o sincerity_n of_o manner_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v call_v superstitious_a envious_a and_o which_o be_v capital_a a_o enemy_n of_o the_o king_n after_o four_o year_n other_o which_o be_v in_o contempt_n call_v publican_n and_o waldenses_n teach_v in_o england_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v leave_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v become_v the_o whore_n of_o babel_n the_o barren_a figtree_n no_o obedience_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o bishop_n monk_n be_v dead_a carrion_n their_o vow_n frivolous_a their_o character_n be_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n io._n bale_n cent._n 2._o §_o 96._o in_o appen_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 1166._o the_o same_o henry_n draw_v some_o professor_n unto_o judgement_n at_o oxford_n because_o they_o be_v say_v to_o dissent_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v burn_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n and_o banish_v they_o i._o fox_n in_o act._n &_o mon._n 6._o at_o that_o time_n be_v many_o marry_a priest_n in_o britanny_n ephleg_n leave_v his_o clerk_n marry_a clerk_n son_n cedda_n to_o be_v his_o successor_n in_o the_o priesthood_n at_o plinmouth_n arnold_n dunpru_v leave_v his_o son_n robert_n likewise_o in_o the_o same_o county_n unto_o robert_n do_v his_o son_n succeed_v in_o norfolk_n wulkerel_n dimit_v his_o priesthood_n at_o dyssa_n unto_o his_o lawful_a son_n william_n hugh_n howet_n in_o sarisbury_n john_n in_o exchester_n and_o oliver_n in_o nottingham_n all_o succeed_v unto_o their_o father_n io._n bale_n cent._n 3._o §_o 10._o in_o appen_n in_o ireland_n fifteen_o bishop_n of_o lesmore_n succeed_v lineal_o and_o hereditary_o for_o the_o space_n of_o 200._o year_n and_o of_o they_o eight_o son_n succeed_v unto_o their_o father_n bernard_n in_o vita_fw-la malac._n until_o the_o year_n 1121._o when_v the_o bishop_n celsus_n have_v no_o son_n do_v as_o by_o testament_n name_n malachias_n bishop_n of_o connereth_n to_o be_v his_o successor_n and_o his_o friend_n as_o heir_n do_v resist_v for_o five_o year_n malachias_n have_v correspondence_n with_o bernard_n of_o claraval_n and_o have_v two_o monk_n send_v from_o that_o abbey_n to_o begin_v a_o abbey_n of_o that_o order_n in_o ireland_n but_o they_o return_v against_o the_o bishop_n will_v wherefore_o bernard_n write_v unto_o he_o his_o 317._o epistle_n exhort_v that_o he_o will_v not_o leave_v off_o the_o purpose_n but_o rather_o be_v more_o vigilant_a in_o that_o new_a place_n and_o land_n so_o unaccustomed_a with_o monastical_a life_n and_o excuse_v the_o monk_n that_o their_o return_v be_v occasion_v by_o the_o unto_o wardness_n of_o these_o brethren_n live_v in_o a_o land_n without_o discipline_n and_o especial_o not_o accustom_v to_o submit_v unto_o such_o counsel_n this_o malchias_n do_v urge_v the_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n in_o ireland_n he_o go_v to_o rome_n and_o become_v legate_n but_o die_v in_o the_o way_n beside_o bernard_n 7._o john_n of_o sarisbury_n bishop_n of_o carnotum_n be_v familiar_a with_o his_o countryman_n sarisbury_n john_n bishop_n of_o sarisbury_n pope_n hadrian_n iu._n when_o they_o be_v alone_o in_o a_o chamber_n at_o benevento_n hadrian_n ask_v he_o what_o the_o world_n think_v and_o speak_v of_o he_o and_o of_o the_o church_n after_o a_o little_a form_n of_o excuse_n he_o say_v i_o will_v tell_v what_o i_o hear_v speak_v every_o where_o they_o say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n be_v become_v a_o step_n dame_n unto_o they_o and_o the_o pope_n be_v call_v across_o and_o grief_n unto_o all_o man_n and_o intolerable_a for_o pride_n as_o the_o zeal_n of_o their_o father_n have_v erect_v church_n so_o now_o they_o do_v decay_v and_o the_o pope_n be_v glorious_a not_o only_o in_o purple_a but_o in_o glance_a gold_n the_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n be_v call_v scribe_n and_o pharisee_n lay_v heavy_a burden_n on_o man_n shoulder_n which_o themselves_o will_v not_o touch_v with_o their_o finger_n their_o palace_n be_v glorious_a and_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v pollute_v by_o their_o hand_n they_o spoil_v the_o nation_n as_o if_o they_o will_v scrape_v together_o the_o treasure_n of_o croesus_n but_o the_o most_o high_a deal_v most_o wise_o with_o they_o for_o they_o become_v often_o a_o prey_n unto_o other_o and_o i_o think_v so_o long_o as_o they_o stray_v out_o of_o the_o way_n they_o shall_v never_o want_v a_o scourge_n from_o god_n then_o say_v the_o pope_n what_o think_v thou_o he_o answer_v there_o be_v danger_n on_o every_o side_n i_o fear_v the_o blame_n of_o flatter_a or_o lie_v if_o i_o alone_o do_v speak_v contrary_a unto_o the_o world_n and_o i_o
all_o deceive_a tyranny_n fraud_n and_o oppression_n of_o truth_n i_o will_v not_o speak_v of_o their_o filthiness_n more_o than_o sodomitish_a do_v these_o high_a priest_n employ_v their_o time_n so_o that_o then_o rome_n do_v deserve_v to_o be_v call_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n or_o seat_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o just_o may_v be_v repute_v the_o habitation_n of_o foul_a spirit_n and_o the_o sink_n of_o all_o uncleanness_n revel_v 2_o &_o 18._o wherefore_o when_o they_o go_v to_o their_o general_a counsel_n or_o their_o legate_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o nation_n under_o colour_n of_o reconciliation_n and_o reformation_n it_o may_v seem_v that_o so_o oft_o do_v satan_n come_v out_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o smite_v job_n for_o whatsoever_o he_o be_v say_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o have_v do_v the_o same_o do_v these_o his_o hood_a vicar_n nor_o do_v their_o hellish_a madness_n spare_v the_o most_o puissant_a prince_n but_o hereafter_o shall_v the_o kingdom_n of_o abaddon_n which_o be_v the_o king_n of_o locust_n or_o friar_n of_o the_o beg_a order_n by_o their_o sophistry_n lay_v waste_n and_o destroy_v all_o thing_n until_o pope_n julius_n the_o ii_o that_o be_v the_o space_n of_o 260._o year_n but_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v spark_n of_o honesty_n to_o be_v see_v here_o and_o there_o 6._o so_o many_o cardinal_n be_v poison_v at_o the_o last_o election_n that_o they_o which_o be_v alive_a will_v not_o conveen_v until_o the_o emperor_n do_v charge_v they_o to_o go_v on_o with_o the_o election_n with_o certification_n that_o if_o they_o will_v not_o he_o will_v cause_v his_o soldier_n to_o plunder_v their_o land_n city_n and_o house_n and_o until_o the_o french_a king_n tell_v they_o that_o he_o will_v choose_v a_o pope_n for_o the_o church_n of_o his_o own_o kingdom_n mat._n paris_n innocentius_n the_o iv_o be_v then_o choose_v he_o be_v one_o of_o these_o who_o the_o emperor_n have_v under_o arrest_n and_o have_v be_v familiar_a with_o he_o but_o now_o he_o forget_v his_o kindness_n and_o without_o delay_n do_v confirm_v the_o sentence_n of_o pope_n gregory_n against_o the_o emperor_n so_o the_o war_n do_v continue_v he_o proffer_v the_o kingdom_n of_o italy_n unto_o edmund_n for_o a_o certain_a sum_n of_o money_n but_o his_o father_n henry_n king_n of_o england_n be_v scant_o of_o money_n say_v mat._n parnell_n that_o he_o can_v not_o perform_v what_o be_v require_v because_o he_o have_v foolish_o tie_v his_o kingdom_n unto_o the_o popish_a merchant_n in_o the_o council_n at_o lion_n which_o bellarmin_n call_v the_o thirty_o general_a council_n he_o will_v not_o delay_v his_o curse_n three_o day_n against_o the_o emperor_n albeit_o he_o understand_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v upon_o his_o journey_n to_o come_v before_o he_o and_o satisfy_v he_o ordain_v the_o feast_n octava_fw-la festivitatis_fw-la mariae_fw-la and_o that_o cardinal_n shall_v ride_v with_o footmantle_n garment_n ●_o 〈…〉_o ●_o garment_n and_o red_a hat_n and_o red_a cloak_n for_o honour_n of_o their_o order_n say_v platina_n or_o in_o imitation_n of_o the_o jewish_a priest_n say_v po._n virg._n the_o inven_n rer_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 9_o or_o rather_o it_o come_v so_o pass_v that_o the_o prophecy_n may_v be_v fulfil_v and_o the_o beast_n be_v clothe_v in_o scarlet_a revel_v 17._o 3._o he_o add_v unto_o the_o decretal_n and_o honour_v the_o dominick_n with_o apostatical_a they_o say_v apostolical_a honour_v and_o privilege_n and_o advance_v they_o unto_o bishopric_n and_o in_o favour_n of_o curate_n he_o discharge_v all_o beg_a friar_n to_o exercise_v any_o of_o their_o function_n mortous_a appeal_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 4._o §_o 6._o ex_fw-la azor._fw-la jesui_n thus_o he_o do_v ramverse_v the_o privilege_n grant_v by_o pope_n honorius_n the_o iii_o after_o the_o council_n when_o he_o hear_v that_o the_o imperial_a force_n do_v prevail_v in_o sundry_a place_n he_o like_o a_o lion_n rob_v of_o his_o whelp_n rage_v and_o leave_v no_o mean_n unessay_v to_o cut_v off_o the_o emperor_n especial_o he_o entice_v some_o of_o his_o domestics_n theobald_n francis_n james_n de_fw-fr mora_n pandulf_n de_fw-fr fasanellis_n and_o william_n de_fw-fr s._n severino_n to_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o his_o life_n either_o by_o poison_n secret_o or_o by_o weapon_n violent_o it_o be_v make_v know_v unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o be_v so_o watchful_a but_o he_o be_v poison_v in_o pulia_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o letter_n unto_o his_o brother_n in_o law_n henry_n the_o iii_o king_n of_o england_n the_o doer_n of_o this_o fact_n say_v he_o be_v accompany_v with_o a_o number_n of_o friar_n minorite_n do_v open_o avow_v that_o they_o be_v about_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o mother_n church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o they_o be_v sign_v by_o apostolical_a letter_n against_o we_o and_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o author_n of_o our_o death_n and_o disinherit_n matth._n parisien_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o pope_n hear_v of_o the_o emperor_n death_n he_o take_v his_o journey_n into_o italy_n when_o he_o go_v from_o lion_n the_o bishop_n and_o other_o chief_a man_n of_o the_o city_n do_v accompany_v he_o and_o unto_o they_o he_o say_v i_o have_v do_v much_o good_a in_o this_o city_n since_o i_o come_v into_o it_o at_o that_o time_n be_v but_o three_o or_o four_o stew_n in_o it_o &_o now_o be_v but_o one_o howbeit_o a_o large_a one_o from_o the_o east-gate_n to_o the_o west-gate_n idem_fw-la ad_fw-la an._n 1251._o he_o come_v into_o italy_n cease_v not_o to_o draw_v the_o city_n cleave_v unto_o the_o emperor_n from_o his_o son_n conrade_n yea_o at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o lewes_n the_o french_a king_n and_o his_o navy_n be_v in_o great_a peril_n of_o the_o turk_n in_o syria_n he_o cause_v to_o proclaim_v great_a pardon_n unto_o all_o who_o will_v fight_v against_o conrade_n than_o he_o or_o any_o pope_n have_v proffer_v to_o fight_v against_o the_o turk_n for_o he_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v preach_v in_o all_o the_o pulpit_n of_o italy_n if_o any_o will_v fight_v against_o conrade_n both_o the_o sign_v that_o be_v the_o fighter_n under_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n shall_v have_v pardon_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n when_o he_o hear_v of_o conrades_n death_n he_o laugh_v loud_o and_o say_v i_o be_o glad_a and_o let_v all_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n rejoice_v for_o now_o our_o two_o great_a enemy_n be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n conrade_z king_n of_o siciles_fw-la and_o robert_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n and_o immediate_o he_o go_v unto_o naples_n to_o take_v possession_n of_o that_o kingdom_n not_o long_o thereafter_o he_o direct_v letter_n into_o england_n to_o take_v up_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o before_o name_v robert_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v proclaim_v a_o heathen_a the_o same_o night_n after_o this_o direction_n he_o think_v that_o the_o same_o robert_n do_v smite_v he_o on_o the_o side_n and_o for_o his_o impiety_n do_v threaten_v he_o with_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n the_o next_o day_n his_o side_n be_v very_o sore_o and_o within_o few_o day_n he_o die_v matth._n paris_n 7._o alexander_z the_o iv_o be_v choose_v at_o naples_n when_o the_o see_v have_v be_v vacant_a two_o year_n his_o first_o exploit_n be_v to_o follow_v the_o war_n move_v by_o his_o predecessor_n against_o manfred_n than_o king_n of_o both_o sicily_n to_o this_o effect_n he_o send_v his_o locust_n the_o friar_n to_o preach_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v send_v subsidy_n unto_o the_o holy_a war_n against_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n some_o do_v see_v the_o pope_n insatiable_a greediness_n and_o other_o be_v persuade_v and_o so_o all_o italy_n be_v in_o a_o uproar_n he_o reward_v his_o friar_n with_o red_a hat_n and_o corner_a cap_n he_o give_v the_o kingdom_n of_o sicily_n and_o pulia_n unto_o edmund_n son_n of_o henry_n iii_o king_n of_o england_n for_o the_o conquer_a and_o for_o this_o effect_n he_o send_v legate_n rostand_v to_o collect_v all_o the_o ten_o of_o england_n and_o scotland_n against_o manfred_n still_o prevail_v not_o only_a in_o naples_n but_o in_o hetruria_n and_o lombardie_n and_o many_o abominable_a thing_n say_v matth._n paris_n do_v flow_v from_o the_o sulphurous_a fount_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n fie_o for_o sorrow_n to_o the_o damage_n of_o many_o such_o a_o exaction_n be_v not_o hear_v as_o the_o pope_n crave_v at_o that_o time_n rostand_v say_v in_o the_o assembl●_n at_o london_n all_o the_o church_n belong_v unto_o my_o master_n the_o pope_n one_o leonard_n in_o name_n of_o the_o bishop_n say_v it_o be_v true_a for_o defence_n but_o not_o for_o possession_n nor_o dissipation_n as_o all_o thing_n belong_v unto_o the_o king_n in_o a_o word_n at_o three_o several_a meeting_n he_o
by_o his_o bastard_n son_n manfred_n with_o a_o pillow_n crantz_n in_o saxo._n lib._n 8._o cap_n 18._o the_o writer_n testify_v that_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o excellent_a gift_n albeit_o the_o pope_n pursue_v he_o as_o a_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o say_v when_o they_o consider_v the_o life_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o command_n to_o forgive_v seventy_o time_n in_o a_o day_n with_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o pope_n against_o the_o emperor_n they_o be_v persuade_v to_o think_v with_o aeneas_n silvius_n that_o there_o have_v not_o be_v a_o great_a calamity_n in_o the_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n these_o many_o year_n whereof_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v the_o author_n and_o they_o call_v this_o frederick_n another_o charles_n the_o great_a he_o can_v talk_v in_o arabic_a greek_a latin_a french_a and_o dutch_a language_n on_o his_o tomb_n it_o be_v write_v thus_o si_fw-la probitas_fw-la sensus_fw-la virtutes_fw-la gratia_fw-la census_fw-la nobilitas_fw-la orti_fw-la possent_fw-la obsistere_fw-la morti_fw-la non_fw-la foret_fw-la extinctus_fw-la fredericus_fw-la qui_fw-la iaceo_fw-la intus_fw-la jo._n bale_n say_v he_o may_v not_o in_o this_o cause_n believe_v blondus_n platina_n stella_n or_o sabellicus_n for_o they_o report_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v write_v by_o the_o flatterer_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a they_o may_v provoke_v all_o the_o world_n against_o he_o but_o who_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n let_v they_o read_v the_o six_o book_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o petrus_n de_fw-fr vineis_fw-la haec_fw-la marius_n say_v he_o 4._o in_o the_o greek_a empire_n be_v a_o great_a alteration_n about_o that_o time_n the_o history_n change_v the_o greek_a empire_n be_v change_v thereof_o i_o will_v set_v down_o together_o for_o the_o more_o clearness_n isaacius_n the_o emperor_n have_v redeem_v his_o brother_n alexius_n from_o the_o scythian_n and_o advance_v he_o to_o so_o great_a authority_n that_o all_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v at_o the_o command_n of_o alexius_n here_o nicetas_n choniat_n in_o annal._n lament_v the_o condition_n of_o that_o people_n say_v truth_n and_o holiness_n have_v fail_v and_o because_o of_o manifold_a iniquity_n love_n be_v become_v cold_a so_o that_o the_o people_n leave_v whole_a city_n and_o go_v in_o colony_n into_o the_o land_n of_o the_o babarian_o where_o they_o may_v live_v more_o secure_o for_o a_o sober_a kind_n of_o life_n be_v banish_v by_o frequent_a tyranny_n and_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v robber_n neither_o think_v nor_o do_v any_o thing_n moderate_o o_o glorious_a empire_n of_o the_o roman_n say_v he_o and_o majesty_n which_o all_o nation_n do_v admire_v and_o adore_v what_o tyrant_n have_v thou_o endure_v with_o what_o injury_n have_v thou_o be_v afflict_v how_o many_o have_v burn_v in_o love_n of_o thou_o what_o man_n have_v thou_o embrace_v and_o prostitute_a thyself_o unto_o what_o sort_n of_o man_n have_v thou_o honour_v with_o a_o diadem_n and_o purple_a shoe_n etc._n etc._n by_o the_o way_n observe_v here_o that_o the_o greek_n do_v always_o call_v themselves_o roman_n and_o they_o call_v all_o the_o western_a people_n latin_n when_o the_o empire_n be_v in_o this_o condition_n alexius_n usurp_v the_o crown_n he_o pull_v out_o his_o brother_n eye_n and_o shut_v he_o in_o prison_n an._n 1190._o alexius_n son_n of_o isaacius_n flee_v unto_o philip_n duke_n of_o suevia_n afterwad_v emperor_n who_o have_v marry_v his_o sister_n irene_n and_o he_o send_v he_o at_o last_o unto_o the_o pope_n for_o help_v to_o be_v restore_v there_o this_o alexius_n conform_v himself_o unto_o rome_n and_o he_o promise_v say_v nicetas_n to_o change_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_n into_o the_o corrupt_a religion_n of_o the_o latin_n the_o pope_n recommend_v he_o unto_o certain_a prince_n which_o then_o be_v assemble_v at_o venice_n to_o go_v into_o syria_n to_o wit_n baldwin_n earl_n of_o flanders_n and_o his_o brother_n henry_n boniface_n marquis_n of_o monferrate_n lewes_n prince_n of_o savoy_n and_o other_o more_o the_o venetian_n also_o have_v a_o old_a quarrel_n against_o the_o greek_n and_o be_v glad_a of_o this_o occasion_n likewise_o the_o young_a man_n do_v swear_v unto_o they_o that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o what_o they_o do_v demand_v even_o which_o be_v impossible_a ocean_n of_o money_n say_v nicetas_n though_o the_o emperor_n alexius_n understand_v of_o this_o preparation_n he_o make_v nothing_o for_o resistance_n so_o the_o latin_n arrive_v at_o jadara_n and_o then_o come_v to_o epidamnum_n and_o they_o call_v young_a alexius_n emperor_n to_o the_o end_n the_o people_n may_v the_o more_o willing_o accept_v they_o then_o they_o come_v to_o constantinople_n theodorus_n lascaris_n son_n in_o law_n of_o alexius_n make_v some_o resistance_n but_o alexius_n flee_v and_o the_o italian_n enter_v the_o town_n and_o after_o nine_o year_n imprisonment_n isaacius_n be_v set_v upon_o his_o throne_n and_o his_o son_n alexius_n with_o he_o within_o few_o day_n the_o chief_a of_o the_o italian_n sit_v with_o they_o as_o be_v savior_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n then_o the_o soldier_n plunder_v the_o town_n spare_v neither_o private_a house_n nor_o church_n nor_o the_o flemin_n nor_o the_o pisanes_n nor_o the_o venetian_n dwell_v there_o the_o old_a alexius_n have_v be_v deceive_v by_o a_o false_a response_n that_o the_o east_n and_o west_n shall_v be_v conjoin_v in_o his_o time_n and_o now_o the_o monk_n execrable_a man_n and_o hate_v of_o god_n say_v nicet_fw-la make_v he_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v restore_v he_o sight_n and_o give_v he_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o world_n thus_o he_o have_v no_o other_o thought_n but_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o these_o monk_n and_o the_o young_a man_n keep_v company_n with_o the_o latin_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o their_o ship_n play_v at_o dice_n carouse_v etc._n etc._n from_o july_n 18._o till_o january_n 25._o the_o people_n be_v so_o grievous_o oppress_v that_o they_o begin_v to_o talk_v of_o choose_v another_o emperor_n the_o wise_a sort_n say_v it_o be_v not_o time_n to_o attempt_v the_o like_a but_o the_o people_n be_v so_o impatient_a of_o their_o oppression_n that_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v another_o emperor_n and_o they_o name_n nicolaus_n canabus_n who_o be_v very_o unwilling_a but_o ducas_n alexius_n call_v the_o proud_a take_v he_o prisoner_n kill_v young_a alexius_n imprison_v the_o old_a man_n and_o take_v the_o sceptre_n the_o people_n be_v content_v he_o begin_v to_o treat_v with_o the_o venetian_n and_o other_o latin_n their_o demand_n be_v so_o high_a that_o the_o greek_n can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o assent_v wherefore_o they_o possess_v themselves_o of_o the_o town_n put_v ducas_n to_o flight_n and_o do_v more_o harm_n than_o the_o saracen_n do_v at_o their_o enter_v into_o jerusalem_n say_v nicet_fw-la then_o they_o make_v fifteen_o elector_n and_o choose_v baldwin_n emperor_n and_o thomas_n a_o venetian_a to_o be_v patriarch_n who_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n to_o get_v all_o these_o thing_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o report_v imperial_a badge_n to_o baldwin_n in_o who_o successor_n that_o empire_n continue_v sixty_o year_n at_o that_o time_n creta_n and_o euboea_n or_o nigrepont_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o venetian_n boniface_n be_v make_v king_n of_o macedonia_n and_o other_o reward_n be_v give_v to_o other_o all_o the_o greek_a empire_n be_v subject_a unto_o baldwin_n except_o bythinia_n cappadocia_n and_o hadrianople_n and_o in_o they_o several_a greek_n have_v the_o dominion_n especial_o lascaris_n about_o hadrianople_n and_o keep_v the_o title_n of_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n the_o bulgarian_n invade_v thracia_n and_o take_v baldwin_n captive_a and_o send_v he_o in_o fetter_n into_o mysia_n his_o brother_n henry_n succee_v and_o give_v his_o only_a daughter_n unto_o peter_n earl_n of_o altisiodore_n which_o succeed_v in_o the_o empire_n at_o that_o time_n when_o otho_n the_o v._o be_v depose_v he_o be_v confirm_v by_o pope_n honorius_n short_o after_o his_o election_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o return_v from_o rome_n he_o enter_v in_o war_n with_o lascaris_n and_o they_o conclude_v a_o peace_n then_o he_o be_v entrap_v in_o constantinople_n and_o die_v in_o prison_n in_o the_o three_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n his_o wife_n jowl_n cause_v his_o son_n robert_n to_o be_v receive_v emperor_n he_o fall_v in_o love_n with_o a_o young_a damsel_n betroth_v unto_o a_o burgonian_a knight_n who_o have_v do_v good_a service_n in_o that_o empire_n and_o by_o consent_n of_o her_o mother_n bring_v she_o to_o his_o palace_n the_o knight_n dissemble_v for_o a_o time_n and_o then_o make_v a_o horrible_a revenge_n to_o wit_n he_o gather_v his_o friend_n and_o a_o number_n of_o greek_n hater_n of_o robert_n and_o come_v by_o night_n into_o the_o palace_n he_o
have_v the_o upper_a hand_n and_o when_o the_o soldier_n ask_v the_o abbot_n of_o cistertian_n what_o they_o shall_v do_v because_o they_o know_v not_o who_o be_v heretic_n and_o who_o be_v not_o he_o answer_v kill_v all_o god_n know_v who_o be_v he_o so_o they_o spare_v neither_o age_n nor_o sex_n caesar_n hist_o lib._n 5._o cap._n 21._o many_o hundred_o be_v burn_v many_o be_v hang_v and_o many_o thousand_o be_v slay_v in_o other_o place_n i._o thuan._n ad_fw-la an._n 1550_o in_o a_o word_n they_o prevail_v so_o that_o raymund_n be_v rob_v of_o all_o his_o land_n almost_o and_o go_v to_o rome_n an._n 1215._o and_o promise_v obedience_n unto_o the_o church_n if_o the_o pope_n will_v cause_v his_o land_n to_o be_v restore_v innocentius_n answer_v the_o expedition_n be_v chargeable_a unto_o the_o church_n and_o unto_o simon_n de_fw-fr monford_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v give_v these_o land_n unto_o simon_n and_o it_o be_v pass_v the_o king_n confirmation_n and_o can_v not_o be_v recall_v only_o he_o will_v grant_v unto_o raymund_n 400._o mark_n yearly_a during_o his_o life_n if_o he_o shall_v continue_v under_o obedience_n then_o raymund_n go_v to_o arragon_n and_o levy_v a_o army_n of_o 100000._o man_n and_o within_o a_o year_n he_o recover_v by_o strength_n all_o his_o land_n simon_n be_v kill_v an._n 1218._o and_o 22000._o man_n with_o he_o so_o be_v his_o son_n guido_n an._n 1219._o io._n de_fw-fr serres_n then_o king_n philip_n send_v his_o son_n lewes_n once_o and_o again_o against_o tolouse_n but_o all_o in_o vain_a so_o long_o as_o raymund_n live_v and_o roger_n de_fw-fr foy_fw-fr both_o which_o die_v within_o one_o month_n an._n 1221._o his_o son_n raymund_n whether_o for_o fear_n of_o worldly_a opposition_n or_o if_o he_o leave_v the_o doctrine_n which_o his_o father_n have_v profess_v it_o be_v uncertain_a offer_v all_o obedience_n unto_o the_o church_n and_o king_n if_o they_o will_v grant_v he_o peace_n almaric_n the_o son_n of_o simon_n de_fw-fr montford_n appear_v in_o the_o contrary_a allege_v his_o title_n unto_o the_o county_n of_o tolouse_n which_o be_v grant_v unto_o his_o father_n and_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o king_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n philip_n die_v and_o leave_v unto_o almaric_n 20000._o some_o write_v 100000._o liever_n of_o paris_n for_o a_o new_a expedition_n against_o tolouse_n and_o at_o last_o by_o persuasion_n of_o romanus_n cardinal_n de_fw-fr st._n angelo_n the_o pope_n legate_n lewes_n viii_o king_n of_o france_n with_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n abbot_n peer_n baron_n and_o 50000._o horse_n with_o a_o great_a number_n of_o foot_n which_o arise_v for_o fear_n of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o pope_n legate_n more_o than_o for_o zeal_n to_o the_o cause_n say_v mat._n paris_n in_o hen._n iii_o they_o be_v mark_v with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n against_o the_o heretic_n as_o they_o speak_v of_o tolouse_n and_o avenion_n which_o also_o belong_v unto_o raymund_n and_o boast_v to_o destroy_v all_o the_o mean_n and_o man_n within_o his_o dominion_n an._n 1226._o they_o come_v first_o to_o avenion_n crave_v passage_n through_o the_o town_n for_o shortness_n of_o way_n the_o citizen_n say_v they_o fear_v more_o danger_n the_o king_n swear_v he_o will_v not_o rise_v from_o siege_n till_o he_o have_v take_v the_o city_n they_o have_v so_o provide_v that_o within_o be_v neither_o old_a person_n nor_o woman_n nor_o child_n and_o all_o beastial_o be_v remove_v and_o all_o the_o meadow_n be_v till_v that_o the_o king_n have_v scarcity_n without_o and_o they_o within_o have_v plenty_n so_o without_o be_v dearth_n and_o death_n as_o be_v reckon_v of_o 22000._o simon_n and_o the_o pope_n general_n be_v kill_v with_o stone_n out_o of_o sling_n some_o of_o the_o nobility_n crave_v leave_v to_o return_v but_o obtain_v it_o not_o the_o king_n die_v romanus_n cause_v his_o death_n to_o be_v conceal_v and_o after_o ask_v a_o treaty_n for_o peace_n which_o be_v refuse_v he_o crave_v that_o he_o and_o the_o prelate_n may_v enter_v the_o city_n to_o try_v if_o the_o wickedness_n be_v so_o great_a as_o the_o cry_n thereof_o be_v come_v unto_o the_o pope_n ear_n and_o swear_v that_o he_o mind_v nothing_o but_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n but_o he_o contemn_v his_o oath_n bring_v in_o the_o army_n break_v their_o wall_n and_o slay_v many_o of_o they_o mat._n paris_n ad_fw-la an._n 1226._o in_o hen._n iii_o in_o the_o year_n 1228._o raymund_n do_v rout_n his_o adversary_n in_o three_o several_a battle_n idem_fw-la then_o they_o invade_v tolouse_n but_o so_o that_o the_o young_a king_n be_v glad_a to_o seek_v peace_n and_o the_o earl_n accept_v it_o on_o good_a condition_n then_o the_o pope_n send_v the_o marshal_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr foy_fw-fr with_o a_o fresh_a army_n king_n lewes_n will_v not_o allow_v it_o and_o say_v they_o shall_v persuade_v by_o reason_n and_o not_o constrain_v by_o force_n io._n de_fw-fr serres_n when_o open_a war_n be_v end_v the_o bishop_n and_o friar_n be_v busy_a with_o burn_v and_o hang_v and_o these_o broil_n be_v not_o end_v for_o seventy_o year_n say_v bertrand_n ja._n thuan._n in_o the_o dedication_n of_o his_o history_n tell_v summary_o the_o success_n they_o be_v kill_v or_o banish_v and_o scatter_v hither_o and_o thither_o but_o not_o convict_v of_o error_n nor_o bring_v into_o repentance_n some_o flee_v into_o province_n or_o near_o unto_o the_o alps_o find_v lurk_a hole_n for_o their_o liye_n and_o doctrine_n some_o go_v into_o calabria_n and_o their_o follower_n abide_v there_o until_o the_o papacy_n of_o pius_n the_o iv_o some_o settle_v in_o bohem_n poland_n and_o livonia_n and_o of_o their_o relic_n in_o britain_n be_v john_n wickliff_n in_o oxford_n so_o thuan._n wheresoever_o they_o go_v satan_n follow_v to_o devour_v they_o and_o all_o the_o historian_n of_o those_o time_n show_v how_o they_o be_v persecute_v as_o vsser_n have_v mark_v particular_o loc_fw-la cit_fw-la ca._n 10._o innocentius_n iii_o cause_v the_o bone_n of_o almaric_a to_o be_v burn_v a_o learned_a bishop_n at_o paris_n because_o he_o have_v teach_v that_o no_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o man_n in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o image_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o church_n and_o other_o twenty_o four_o person_n for_o the_o same_o doctrine_n an._n 1210._o io._n bale_n cent._n 3._o cap._n 67._o in_o appen_n show_v ex_fw-la bern._n lutzenburg_n that_o when_o dominicus_n with_o twelve_o cistertian_n monk_n be_v send_v against_o they_o the_o sum_n of_o they_o who_o be_v kill_v in_o the_o war_n be_v 100000._o person_n and_o out_o of_o christ_n massanus_fw-la that_o in_o the_o diocy_n of_o narbon_n 140._o man_n choose_v rather_o to_o suffer_v the_o fire_n then_o accept_v the_o doctrine_n of_o rome_n an._n 1210._o and_o in_o the_o next_o year_n 400._o be_v burn_v within_o the_o diocy_n of_o tolouse_n eighty_o be_v behead_v and_o almericus_n captain_n of_o the_o castle_n of_o vare_fw-la be_v hang_v and_o his_o wife_n be_v stone_v to_o death_n m._n fox_n in_o act._n &_o monim_n show_v out_o of_o herm._n mutius_n that_o an._n 1212._o sundry_a noble_a man_n and_o other_o in_o the_o county_n of_o alsatia_n do_v hold_v that_o every_o day_n be_v free_a for_o eat_v of_o flesh_n if_o it_o be_v sober_o and_o that_o they_o do_v wicked_o who_o hinder_v priest_n from_o lawful_a marriage_n therefore_o innocentius_n cause_v a_o hundred_o of_o they_o to_o be_v burn_v in_o one_o day_n nauclerus_fw-la show_v that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v many_o of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n at_o milan_n who_o send_v relief_n unto_o their_o brethren_n in_o alsatia_n an._n 1220._o william_n a_o goldsmith_n be_v burn_v because_o he_o say_v rome_n be_v babylon_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n bale_n ex_fw-la caesar_n in_o dialog_n desiderius_n à_fw-fr lombard_n at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v call_v haeresiarcha_n because_o he_o write_v against_o the_o beg_a friar_n we_o read_v of_o many_o such_o other_o burn_n and_o martyrdom_n in_o other_o place_n and_o time_n but_o the_o truth_n can_v not_o be_v burn_v nor_o overthrow_v nor_o want_v her_o witness_n 5._o guilielmus_fw-la de_fw-la alta_fw-la petra_n bishop_n of_o paris_n about_o the_o year_n 1220._o write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr clero_fw-la wherein_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o clergy_n of_o his_o time_n in_o this_o manner_n no_o godliness_n or_o learning_n be_v see_v in_o they_o but_o rather_o all_o devilish_a filthiness_n and_o monstrous_a vice_n their_o sin_n be_v not_o simple_o sin_n but_o monster_n of_o sin_n they_o be_v not_o the_o church_n but_o babylon_n egypt_n and_o sodom_n the_o prelate_n build_v not_o the_o church_n but_o destroy_v it_o they_o mock_v god_n and_o they_o and_o their_o priest_n do_v profane_a the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o lift_v up_o to_o the_o heaven_n with_o all_o
to_o tell_v you_o plain_a too_o much_o commove_v without_o cause_n your_o fatherhood_n may_v consider_v that_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a 1._o the_o holy_a land_n lie_v in_o misery_n and_o peril_n 2._o all_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v depart_v from_o we_o 3._o frederick_n the_o mighty_a prince_n of_o christendom_n be_v against_o we_o 4._o both_o your_o holiness_n and_o we_o be_v exile_v from_o your_o papal_a seat_n and_o thrust_v out_o of_o italy_n 5._o hungary_n and_o all_o the_o nation_n thereabouts_o look_v for_o nothing_o but_o utter_a ruin_n from_o the_o tartar_n 6._o germany_n be_v toss_v with_o intestine_a war_n 7._o spain_n be_v fierce_a and_o cruel_a against_o we_o even_o to_o the_o cut_v out_o of_o bishop_n tongue_n 8._o france_n be_v by_o we_o impoverish_v and_o like_a to_o conspire_v against_o we_o 9_o now_o wretched_a england_n so_o oft_o plague_v by_o we_o much_o like_o balaam_n ass_n gore_v with_o spur_n begin_v to_o complain_v of_o her_o intolerable_a grief_n and_o we_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o ishmael_n hate_v all_o man_n do_v provoke_v all_o man_n to_o hate_v we_o ......_o matth._n parisien_n ad_fw-la an._n 1246._o but_o innocentius_n will_v relent_v nothing_o yea_o make_v his_o exaction_n more_o grievous_a and_o begin_v to_o excite_v lewis_n king_n of_o france_n to_o slay_v or_o expel_v king_n henry_n france_n remember_v former_a time_n and_o lewis_n refuse_v to_o vex_v his_o cousin_n but_o say_v the_o before_o name_v writer_n the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n be_v provoke_v to_o mislike_v the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n whereof_o the_o one_o seek_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o father_n and_o the_o other_o to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n but_o he_o prove_v a_o step_n father_n and_o she_o a_o stepdame_n 4._o in_o the_o year_n 1222._o the_o in-dweller_n of_o caithnes_n refuse_v to_o pay_v ten_o unto_o adam_n their_o bishop_n and_o therefore_o he_o excommunicate_v they_o all_o then_o they_o come_v into_o his_o house_n and_o in_o his_o chamber_n they_o slay_v a_o monk_n and_o his_o servant_n and_o they_o draw_v he_o into_o his_o kitchen_n and_o burn_v he_o with_o all_o the_o house_n pope_n honorius_n rest_v not_o till_o he_o have_v cause_v king_n alexander_n to_o hang_v four_o hundred_o of_o they_o and_o the_o earl_n of_o caithnes_n hardly_o obtain_v pardon_n albeit_o he_o be_v not_o accessary_a unto_o the_o deed_n boet._n lib._n 13._o cap._n 14._o about_o that_o william_n bishop_n of_o st._n andrews_n bring_v from_o france_n some_o dominican_n franciscan_n jacboine_n and_o some_o monk_n call_v vallis_fw-la umbrosae_fw-la these_o by_o their_o crafty_a insinuation_n with_o people_n do_v supplant_v the_o credit_n of_o priest_n and_o draw_v unto_o themselves_o both_o credit_n and_o mean_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o pope_n because_o they_o study_v especial_o to_o advance_v their_o design_n spotsw_n hist_o p._n 43._o 5._o nigellus_n vireker_n a_o learned_a and_o much_o respect_a monk_n at_o canterbury_n write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr abusu_fw-la verum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la and_o send_v it_o unto_o william_n bishop_n of_o ely_z chancellor_n of_o england_n a_o man_n say_v bale_n most_o envious_a in_o this_o book_n he_o rebuke_v not_o the_o proud_a prelate_n only_o but_o all_o teacher_n under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n because_o they_o commit_v the_o cure_n of_o soul_n unto_o child_n belly-god_n and_o despiser_n of_o the_o sacred_a word_n 6._o walter_n mapez_n archdeacon_n of_o oxford_n be_v once_o send_v by_o king_n john_n unto_o rome_n after_o his_o return_n he_o do_v write_v several_a book_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n close_o reprove_v the_o pope_n sometime_o under_o the_o name_n of_o goliath_n sometime_o of_o pluto_n and_o show_v manifest_o that_o then_o antichrist_n be_v reign_v in_o the_o world_n he_o have_v a_o fellow_n with_o he_o who_o make_v show_v of_o a_o pleasant_a or_o rhymer_n but_o all_o his_o rhyme_n be_v say_v to_o be_v write_v by_o mapez_n himself_o in_o they_o he_o plain_o paint_v forth_o the_o roman_a court_n and_o call_v the_o prelate_n proud_a beast_n the_o rhyme_n begin_v thus_o roma_fw-la caput_fw-la mundi_fw-la sed_fw-la nil_fw-la capit_fw-la mundum_fw-la quod_fw-la pendet_fw-la à_fw-la capite_fw-la totum_fw-la est_fw-la immundum_fw-la trahit_fw-la enim_fw-la vitium_fw-la primum_fw-la &_o secundum_fw-la et_fw-la de_fw-la sundo_fw-la redolet_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la juxta_fw-la fundum_fw-la roma_fw-it capit_fw-la singulos_fw-la &_o res_fw-la singulorum_fw-la romanorum_fw-la curia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la forum_n ibi_fw-la sunt_fw-la venalia_fw-la jura_fw-la senatorum_fw-la et_fw-la solvit_fw-la contraria_fw-la copia_fw-la nummorum_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la consistorio_fw-la siquis_fw-la causam_fw-la regat_fw-la svam_fw-la vel_fw-la alterius_fw-la hic_fw-la imprimis_fw-la legate_n nisi_fw-la des_fw-fr pecuniam_fw-la roma_fw-la totum_fw-la negate_fw-la qui_fw-la plus_fw-la that_fw-mi pecuniae_fw-la meliùs_fw-la allegat_fw-la etc._n etc._n io._n bale_n in_o catalogue_n test_n verit_fw-la lib._n 14._o we_o find_v these_o rhyme_n ascribe_v unto_o this_o mapez_n vide_fw-la deus_fw-la ultionum_fw-la vide_fw-la videns_fw-la omne_fw-la quod_fw-la spelunca_fw-la vespillonum_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o templum_fw-la solomonis_fw-la venit_fw-la princeps_fw-la babylonis_fw-la et_fw-la excelsum_fw-la sibi_fw-la thronum_fw-la posuit_fw-la in_o medio_fw-la these_o word_n be_v to_o no_o sense_n unless_o the_o temple_n signify_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o babylon_n signify_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n 7._o an._n 1237._o be_v a_o conference_n at_o york_n between_o henry_n the_o iii_o king_n of_o england_n and_o alexander_n the_o ii_o king_n of_o scot_n where_o they_o do_v accord_n upon_o the_o matter_n of_o debate_n between_o the_o kingdom_n then_o otto_n the_o pope_n legate_n will_v go_v into_o scotland_n for_o redress_v as_o he_o say_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n but_o alexander_n say_v unto_o he_o i_o remember_v not_o that_o evera_fw-la legate_n be_v in_o my_o land_n neither_o have_v i_o need_v of_o one_o thanks_o be_v unto_o god_n neither_o be_v any_o in_o my_o father_n time_n nor_o in_o any_o of_o my_o ancestor_n neither_o will_v i_o suffer_v any_o so_o long_o as_o i_o may_v otto_n return_v with_o king_n henry_n matth._n parisien_n nevertheless_o this_o alexander_n do_v suffer_v peter_n red_a to_o take_v away_o 3000._o pound_n for_o the_o pope_n which_o no_o king_n of_o scotland_n have_v suffer_v before_o idem_fw-la ad_fw-la an._n 1240._o but_o boet._n lib._n 13._o cap._n 20._o add_v he_o send_v the_o earl_n of_o carrict_a and_o athale_n to_o accompany_v lewis_n king_n of_o france_n into_o syria_n and_o he_o send_v unto_o the_o pope_n a_o thousand_o mark_n lest_o he_o shall_v think_v himself_o despise_v 8._o robert_n grosshead_n alias_o capito_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n be_v the_o most_o renown_a bishop_n of_o his_o time_n a_o godly_a man_n a_o admonisher_n of_o his_o king_n a_o fearful_a rebuker_n of_o the_o pope_n a_o bold_a reprover_n of_o prelate_n a_o corrector_n of_o monk_n a_o direct_a and_o teacher_n of_o priest_n a_o favourer_n of_o student_n a_o preacher_n to_o the_o people_n a_o defender_n of_o fatherless_a and_o widow_n a_o persecutor_n of_o the_o incontinent_a a_o searcher_n of_o the_o scripture_n a_o lover_n of_o truth_n a_o hammerer_n and_o contemner_n of_o the_o roman_n say_v matth._n paris_n in_o the_o year_n 1237._o his_o own_o clark_n give_v he_o poison_v in_o a_o drink_n but_o as_o it_o please_v god_n he_o escape_v death_n at_o that_o time_n by_o help_n of_o medicine_n the_o priest_n which_o teach_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o human_a tradition_n he_o call_v the_o minister_n of_o satan_n thief_n of_o the_o night_n robber_n in_o the_o day_n corrupter_n of_o manner_n murderer_n of_o soul_n and_o angel_n of_o darkness_n and_o he_o call_v their_o exemption_n snare_n of_o the_o devil_n an._n 1253._o pope_n innocentius_n send_v unto_o he_o a_o letter_n command_v he_o to_o provide_v a_o canon_n place_n for_o a_o italian_a in_o his_o diocy_n nihil_fw-la obstante_fw-la he_o return_v answer_v i_o be_o most_o willing_a to_o obey_v apostolical_a commandment_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o apostle_n command_v i_o will_v gain-stand_a since_o i_o be_o oblige_v unto_o both_o by_o the_o command_n of_o god_n ....._o the_o tenor_n of_o your_o aforesaid_a letter_n agree_v not_o with_o apostolical_a holiness_n but_o plain_o disagree_v 1._o because_o by_o that_o word_n non_fw-la obstante_fw-la in_o that_o and_o so_o many_o other_o letter_n do_v abound_v a_o deluge_n of_o inconstancy_n shamelesness_n lie_v deceive_a difficulty_n of_o trust_v any_o and_o innumerable_a other_o vice_n follow_v thereupon_o shake_v and_o confound_v the_o purity_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o quietness_n of_o all_o sociable_a conversation_n ....._o 2._o except_o the_o sin_n of_o lucifer_n which_o be_v also_o the_o sin_n of_o antichrist_n there_o can_v be_v a_o great_a sin_n nor_o
the_o valiantness_n of_o his_o father_n and_o grandfather_n pope_n john_n say_v solomon_n son_n be_v not_o very_o wise_a so_o he_o reject_v they_o both_o and_o allege_v that_o according_a to_o former_a act_n of_o his_o predecessor_n now_o he_o be_v emperor_n wherefore_o war_n continue_v eight_o year_n and_o john_n proclaim_v against_o they_o both_o allege_v that_o the_o imperial_a crown_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o pope_n since_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o german_n may_v elect_v their_o king_n but_o then_o he_o be_v emperor_n when_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v father_n and_o prince_n of_o all_o christendom_n do_v approve_v he_o and_o when_o the_o elector_n can_v agree_v none_o be_v king_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n govern_v at_o his_o pleasure_n even_o as_o the_o soul_n shall_v command_v the_o body_n by_o who_o benefit_n it_o live_v and_o so_o shall_v the_o world_n be_v well_o rule_v when_o profane_a thing_n be_v subject_a unto_o spiritual_a ......_o for_o these_o cause_n see_v two_o be_v choose_v ...._o and_o neither_o of_o the_o two_o seem_v worthy_a unto_o we_o say_v he_o we_o command_v that_o within_o three_o month_n they_o both_o renounce_v etc._n etc._n the_o most_o do_v follow_v lewis_n at_o frankford_n be_v a_o frequent_a diet_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o all_o the_o elector_n frederick_n be_v a_o captive_a there_o many_o thing_n be_v decree_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o lewis_n shall_v provide_v that_o the_o liberty_n of_o germany_n be_v not_o turn_v into_o bondage_n and_o whosoever_o will_v maintain_v the_o act_n of_o pope_n john_n be_v a_o enemy_n of_o the_o republic_n immediate_o otho_n bishop_n of_o carintha_n and_o lambert_n bishop_n of_o tolouse_n the_o pope_n legate_n be_v expel_v out_o of_o germany_n all_o the_o bishop_n prelate_n priest_n and_o monk_n obey_v the_o decree_n only_o the_o dominican_n incline_v sometime_o unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o sometime_o unto_o the_o pope_n by_o authority_n of_o that_o assembly_n a_o act_n be_v pope_n a_o description_n of_o the_o pope_n publish_v that_o be_v in_o aventin_n lib._n cit_fw-la the_o head_n be_v christ_n the_o saviour_n our_o lord_n and_o god_n and_o his_o chief_a apostle_n peter_n paul_n james_n and_o john_n have_v foretell_v that_o perilous_a time_n be_v come_v after_o their_o departure_n and_o they_o have_v sorewarn_v especial_o that_o we_o shall_v beware_v of_o false_a christ_n false_a apostle_n and_o false_a prophet_n who_o be_v so_o call_v from_o the_o lie_v of_o their_o feign_a religion_n term_v themselves_o priest_n when_o they_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o antichrist_n their_o insatiable_a thirst_n of_o honour_n and_o money_n their_o lechery_n and_o pride_n be_v most_o manifest_a bewray_v they_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o confess_v sincere_o that_o our_o time_n can_v endure_v any_o censure_n ......_o long_o custom_n prevail_v above_o truth_n indignation_n break_v our_o silence_n see_v from_o heaven_n we_o be_v set_v in_o the_o high_a watch_n of_o human_a affair_n we_o can_v be_v silent_a lest_o we_o prove_v to_o be_v dumb_a dog_n that_o can_v bark_v as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v although_o we_o can_v drive_v away_o the_o wolf_n because_o of_o the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o time_n yet_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o resist_v they_o and_o declare_v who_o they_o be_v although_o we_o can_v prevail_v against_o they_o lurk_v under_o sheep_n skin_n as_o we_o will_v yet_o it_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n sufficient_a unto_o those_o who_o can_v attain_v to_o have_v a_o willingness_n to_o do_v then_o they_o apply_v unto_o john_n show_v how_o that_o he_o vex_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o compel_v christian_n to_o draw_v their_o sword_n against_o christian_n and_o bring_v people_n into_o a_o custom_n of_o perjury_n rebellion_n and_o conspiracy_n and_o they_o add_v neither_o can_n christian_n keep_v peace_n when_o god_n give_v it_o they_o be_v so_o trouble_v with_o this_o antichrist_n so_o great_a be_v the_o madness_n of_o this_o man_n or_o rather_o satan_n that_o open_o in_o assembly_n he_o proclaim_v his_o wickedness_n as_o if_o they_o be_v good_a work_n when_o christian_a prince_n be_v at_o variance_n than_o indeed_o he_o be_v priest_n of_o rome_n the_o great_a priest_n then_o reign_v and_o domineer_v when_o all_o thing_n be_v waste_v with_o jar_n and_o broil_n and_o his_o power_n become_v terrible_a he_o may_v have_v most_o easy_o restore_v peace_n with_o one_o letter_n but_o he_o have_v no_o will_n that_o peace_n be_v among_o we_o yea_o by_o he_o rather_o be_v the_o discord_n increase_v he_o feign_v now_o to_o favour_n lewis_n and_o then_o to_o love_v frederick_n as_o each_o of_o they_o be_v weak_a he_o promise_v his_o aid_n unto_o the_o weak_a he_o do_v purposely_o invite_v both_o unto_o the_o coronation_n and_o give_v fair_a word_n unto_o both_o when_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o have_v agree_v he_o peswade_v they_o unto_o arm_n all_o these_o thing_n he_o do_v crafty_o that_o when_o we_o be_v undo_v by_o intestine_a war_n he_o may_v destroy_v the_o empire_n and_o possess_v castle_n town_n and_o republic_n ......._o when_o he_o be_v capital_a foe_n and_o public_a enemy_n yet_o he_o will_v be_v proctor_n witness_v and_o judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n ...._o what_o he_o please_v he_o judge_v lawful_a ......_o he_o assume_v the_o spirit_n of_o satan_n make_v himself_o like_a unto_o the_o most_o high_a and_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v worship_v which_o the_o angel_n forbid_v john_n to_o do_v and_o his_o foot_n to_o be_v kiss_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o dioclesian_n and_o alexander_n two_o most_o cruel_a tyrant_n ....._o those_o pope_n have_v thrust_v caesar_n out_o of_o rome_n and_o italy_n and_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n they_o permit_v the_o heaven_n unto_o he_o and_o have_v take_v hell_n and_o earth_n unto_o themselves_o and_o they_o will_v be_v believe_v not_o only_o call_v god_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o of_o man_n as_o if_o they_o reign_v over_o the_o soul_n and_o tongue_n or_o as_o if_o they_o have_v divide_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o world_n with_o jupiter_n how_o contrary_a be_v these_o thing_n crucify_a and_o supreme_a power_n a_o soldier_n and_o a_o priest_n a_o emperor_n and_o a_o pastor_n ....._o he_o be_v the_o two_o head_a beast_n who_o be_v augustus_n and_o the_o great_a high_a priest_n as_o we_o read_v of_o nero_n decius_n etc._n etc._n then_o they_o refute_v the_o particular_n of_o the_o pope_n bull_n final_o conclude_v if_o he_o be_v not_o the_o antichrist_n certain_o he_o be_v his_o forerunner_n from_o who_o we_o appeal_v unto_o the_o christian_a senate_n of_o the_o world_n this_o apology_n of_o lewis_n prevail_v even_o among_o his_o foe_n that_o the_o earl_n of_o tirolis_n and_o some_o other_o deal_v for_o peace_n between_o lewis_n and_o frederick_n lewis_n have_v the_o other_o captive_a and_o he_o set_v he_o at_o liberty_n on_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v renounce_v the_o title_n of_o emperor_n and_o within_o few_o year_n he_o die_v then_o lewis_n be_v sole_a emperor_n and_o he_o go_v into_o italy_n an._n 1327._o be_v invite_v by_o the_o gibelines_n to_o aid_v they_o against_o the_o gwelph_n and_o he_o exercise_v the_o imperial_a authority_n where_o he_o come_v therefore_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v he_o platin._n but_o tho._n couper_n in_o epist_n say_v he_o be_v accurse_v because_o udalrick_n the_o emperor_n secretary_n without_o the_o emperor_n knowledge_n in_o a_o epistle_n have_v call_v the_o pope_n the_o beast_n rise_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n the_o emperor_n do_v often_o proffer_n a_o treaty_n of_o peace_n but_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o hear_v of_o it_o many_o learned_a man_n both_o divine_n and_o jurist_n of_o bolonia_n and_o paris_n write_v then_o against_o the_o pope_n as_o follow_v when_o lewis_n can_v not_o obtain_v confirmation_n from_o the_o pope_n he_o enter_v into_o rome_n and_o be_v receive_v glad_o he_o and_o the_o empress_n be_v crown_v by_o stephen_n colonna_n vicar_n of_o rome_n with_o full_a consent_n say_v platin._n of_o noble_n and_o cardinal_n the_o city_n be_v then_o govern_v by_o their_o own_o citizen_n under_o the_o title_n vicar_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n plat._n in_o johan._n there_o he_o assemble_v a_o very_a frequent_a synod_n and_o declare_v more_o full_o 1._o what_o wrong_v he_o have_v suffer_v from_o jac._n de_fw-fr cadurco_fw-la alius_fw-la pope_n john_n the_o xxii_o or_o rather_o the_o mystical_a antichrist_n say_v he_o and_o abiathar_n who_o have_v follow_v absalon_n against_o david_n an_o he_o do_v not_o only_o thus_o complain_v but_o also_o the_o orator_n of_o the_o armenian_n and_o other_o nation_n against_o who_o john_n have_v covenant_v with_o the_o turk_n 2._o he_o show_v what_o authority_n other_o emperor_n have_v exercise_v against_o the_o pope_n when_o they_o be_v find_v vicious_a
man_n have_v tell_v they_o 1._o that_o their_o counsellor_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o satan_n under_o show_n of_o religion_n and_o zeal_n draw_v they_o from_o ancient_a purity_n 2._o whatsoever_o those_o angel_n of_o satan_n do_v advise_v they_o they_o shall_v not_o authorise_v and_o execute_v and_o it_o be_v tell_v they_o if_o they_o shall_v contemn_v this_o warning_n god_n shall_v cause_v they_o to_o feel_v here_o the_o presage_n of_o everlasting_a judgement_n boniface_n believe_v not_o this_o until_o he_o feel_v it_o and_o it_o be_v tell_v to_o benedict_n by_o writing_n that_o god_n will_v short_o pull_v he_o from_o his_o seat_n and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v for_o he_o sit_v not_o thirty_o five_o day_n after_o that_o and_o it_o be_v tell_v they_o that_o they_o who_o glory_n of_o evangelical_a perfection_n be_v corrupter_n of_o evangelical_a doctrine_n by_o wicked_a life_n and_o pestiferous_a preach_n see_v the_o friar_n in_o their_o sermon_n do_v traduce_v they_o who_o they_o do_v envy_n and_o flatter_v such_o as_o they_o will_v rob_v they_o deprave_v divine_a oracle_n with_o false_a exposition_n impertinent_a application_n and_o sophistical_a distinction_n they_o omit_v thing_n necessary_a and_o useful_a and_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n they_o seduce_v people_n from_o their_o ordinary_a shepherd_n they_o go_v unto_o all_o province_n and_o buy_v the_o office_n of_o inquisition_n and_o like_o rage_a devil_n they_o persecute_v all_o true_a believer_n with_o false_a calumny_n furious_a vexation_n clamorous_a lie_n and_o unjust_a punishment_n and_o yet_o none_o reprove_v nor_o restrain_v such_o madness_n all_o this_o say_v he_o i_o have_v see_v among_o the_o apostolical_a writing_n and_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o same_o denunciation_n that_o these_o false_a prophet_n have_v conspire_v against_o the_o divine_a truth_n covenant_v that_o none_o of_o they_o shall_v touch_v those_o passage_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o ancient_n have_v in_o their_o commentary_n expound_v of_o false_a teacher_n but_o to_o teach_v the_o prophet_n rather_o than_o the_o evangelist_n that_o some_o of_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o commistion_n of_o man_n with_o man_n be_v no_o sin_n and_o if_o any_o of_o their_o own_o society_n do_v rebuke_v their_o fault_n he_o be_v condemn_v to_o death_n as_o superstitious_a or_o enemy_n of_o their_o religion_n if_o any_o do_v appeal_v unto_o the_o apostolical_a see_v not_o for_o severity_n of_o discipline_n but_o for_o corruption_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o be_v imprison_v cruel_o or_o exile_v all_o the_o book_n declare_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o describe_v their_o ungodliness_n be_v condemn_v to_o the_o fire_n under_o pretence_n of_o superstition_n and_o error_n for_o a_o ambiguous_a sentence_n they_o persecute_v all_o who_o will_v live_v in_o evangelical_a poverty_n whether_o without_o or_o within_o their_o order_n some_o of_o they_o do_v always_o attend_v the_o apostolical_a see_v lest_o the_o complaint_n of_o the_o people_n come_v there_o they_o be_v like_o the_o drake_n and_o ostrich_n for_o the_o drake_n have_v pleasure_n in_o water_n so_o they_o in_o fleshly_a lust_n and_o the_o ostrich_n have_v feather_n like_o a_o eagle_n but_o never_o rise_v from_o the_o earth_n so_o their_o austerity_n of_o outward_a carriage_n be_v like_a to_o heavenly_a religion_n but_o their_o heart_n cleave_v fast_o to_o earthly_a ambition_n ....._o they_o have_v forbid_v all_o their_o fellow_n under_o pain_n of_o death_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n declare_v the_o truth_n and_o they_o stop_v the_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n from_o they_o that_o thirst_n after_o the_o water_n of_o life_n ......_o see_v god_n have_v foretell_v those_o thing_n and_o now_o have_v twice_o denounce_v they_o although_o the_o messenger_n be_v contemn_v and_o cast_v into_o bond_n he_o be_v not_o move_v but_o continue_v constant_a in_o the_o faith_n neither_o shall_v it_o move_v thou_o o_o king_n to_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o i_o know_v that_o god_n will_v cause_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v denounce_v the_o three_o time_n unto_o the_o apostolical_a see_v but_o determinate_o by_o who_o and_o where_o and_o when_o i_o can_v tell_v because_o it_o be_v not_o show_v unto_o i_o and_o if_o that_o man_n who_o god_n shall_v send_v undertake_v it_o and_o prosecute_v it_o with_o the_o zeal_n of_o moses_n and_o phinehas_n he_o will_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n adorn_v it_o with_o excellent_a thing_n both_o old_a and_o new_a but_o if_o he_o neglect_v it_o be_v you_o assure_v god_n will_v within_o these_o three_o year_n bring_v most_o fearful_a judgement_n to_o the_o astonishment_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n etc._n etc._n the_o three_o denouncer_n be_v himself_o and_o at_o that_o time_n begin_v the_o contention_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o lewis_n king_n frederick_n be_v persuade_v by_o these_o word_n and_o write_v unto_o his_o brother_n james_n king_n of_o arragon_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n and_o receive_v letter_n from_o he_o tend_v much_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n mornay_n testify_v that_o both_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o date_n an._n 1309._o be_v extant_a and_o the_o copy_n of_o they_o be_v full_a in_o catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 18._o 4._o dante_n be_v aligerius_n a_o florentine_a be_v then_o famous_a for_o piety_n and_o learning_n and_o a_o excellent_a poet_n say_v platin._n in_o bonifac._n viii_o he_o write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr monarchia_fw-la mundi_fw-la where_o he_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o above_o the_o emperor_n nor_o have_v any_o power_n over_o he_o he_o confute_v that_o which_o be_v call_v donatio_fw-la constantini_n that_o the_o emperor_n neither_o give_v such_o a_o gift_n nor_o can_v give_v it_o he_o deride_v the_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o sun_n and_o of_o the_o emperor_n unto_o the_o moon_n and_o aver_v contrary_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v his_o privilege_n from_o the_o emperor_n in_o a_o poem_n of_o paradise_n in_o the_o italian_a tongue_n he_o complain_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o stead_n of_o be_v a_o shepherd_n be_v become_v a_o wolf_n and_o drive_v christ_n sheep_n out_o of_o the_o right_a way_n that_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n be_v omit_v and_o vain_a fable_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n and_o decretal_n be_v most_o hear_v the_o flock_n be_v feed_v with_o the_o wind_n he_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n and_o the_o patriarch_n or_o cardinal_n be_v the_o tower_n of_o it_o in_o old_a time_n the_o church_n be_v persecute_v by_o the_o sword_n but_o now_o by_o famine_n for_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v give_v for_o her_o nourishment_n be_v take_v away_o i._o fox_n in_o act._n &_o mon._n 5._o robert_n a_o french_a man_n by_o name_n and_o nation_n a_o franciscan_a by_o profession_n the_o long_o he_o be_v in_o that_o order_n he_o love_v the_o friar_n the_o worse_o he_o live_v about_o that_o time_n a_o treatise_n under_o his_o name_n be_v print_v with_o the_o prophecy_n of_o hildegrandis_n in_o the_o six_o chapter_n he_o speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n unto_o the_o idol_n the_o pope_n be_v a_o idol_n pope_n say_v who_o have_v set_v this_o idol_n in_o my_o seat_n to_o rule_v my_o flock_n he_o have_v car_n and_o hear_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o they_o who_o go_v down_o mourning_n into_o hell_n he_o have_v eye_n and_o see_v not_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o bacchanal_a excess_n of_o their_o pleasure_n how_o great_a evil_n do_v this_o people_n before_o i_o neither_o will_v he_o see_v they_o unless_o he_o see_v a_o treasure_n ......_o wo_n to_o the_o idol_n who_o shall_v be_v equal_a unto_o this_o idol_n on_o the_o earth_n he_o have_v exalt_v his_o name_n say_v who_o shall_v control_v i_o ......_o they_o who_o ride_v on_o horse_n do_v serve_v i_o what_o be_v not_o do_v unto_o my_o predecessor_n be_v do_v unto_o i_o etc._n etc._n this_o be_v his_o exposition_n of_o that_o in_o zech._n woe_n to_o the_o idol_n shepherd_n in_o chap._n 1._o and_o chap._n 12._o vision_n some_o prophetical_a vision_n he_o describe_v the_o pope_n under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o serpent_n who_o exalt_v himself_o above_o measure_n oppress_v the_o small_a number_n of_o godly_a man_n and_o have_v many_o false_a prophet_n about_o he_o to_o obscure_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o advance_v the_o name_n of_o the_o serpent_n only_o again_o he_o say_v i_o be_v pray_v on_o my_o knee_n my_o eye_n be_v lift_v up_o to_o heaven_n and_o i_o see_v a_o high_a priest_n clad_v in_o white_a silk_n before_o i_o his_o back_n be_v towards_o the_o east_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n towards_o the_o west_n as_o priest_n be_v wont_v at_o the_o mass_n his_o head_n appear_v not_o and_o as_o i_o mark_v more_o attentive_o whether_o he_o have_v a_o head_n i_o see_v his_o head_n wither_v and_o
small_a like_o a_o tree_n then_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o i_o it_o signify_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n again_o he_o say_v as_o i_o be_v the_o same_o way_n exercise_v i_o see_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o behold_v a_o man_n walk_v in_o the_o same_o habit_n carry_v sweet_a bread_n on_o his_o shoulder_n and_o very_o good_a wine_n by_o his_o side_n and_o he_o hold_v in_o his_o hand_n a_o round_a stone_n bite_v it_o with_o his_o tooth_n as_o a_o hungry_a man_n bit_v bread_n but_o he_o do_v nothing_o then_o two_o head_n of_o serpent_n come_v out_o of_o the_o stone_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n instruct_v i_o say_v this_o stone_n be_v unprofitable_a and_o curious_a question_n wherewith_o the_o hungry_a soul_n be_v turmoil_v when_o they_o leave_v substantial_a thing_n and_o i_o say_v what_o mean_v those_o two_o head_n he_o say_v the_o name_n of_o the_o one_o be_v vain_a glory_n and_o the_o other_o be_v overthrow_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o about_o that_o time_n the_o chief_a question_n in_o the_o school_n be_v whether_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n or_o whether_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o evacuate_v what_o eat_v a_o mouse_n when_o she_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n wherein_o subsi_v the_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n whether_o in_o christ_n body_n or_o by_o themselves_o etc._n etc._n again_o he_o say_v i_o see_v a_o clear_a cross_n of_o silver_n like_v to_o the_o cross_n of_o tolouse_n but_o the_o twelve_o apple_n of_o it_o be_v like_a to_o vile_a apple_n that_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n what_o be_v this_o lord_n jesus_n the_o spirit_n say_v the_o cross_n be_v the_o church_n which_o shall_v be_v clear_a with_o pureness_n of_o life_n and_o shrill_a with_o the_o clear_a voice_n of_o the_o truth_n preach_v then_o i_o say_v what_o mean_v those_o rot_a apple_n the_o humiliation_n of_o the_o churchman_n which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v here_o he_o prophesy_v of_o the_o reformation_n possevin_n in_o apparto_n 2._o call_v this_o robert_n a_o excellent_a preacher_n of_o the_o word_n mornay_n in_o myster_n pag._n 427._o 6._o marsilius_n paravinus_n write_v the_o book_n defensor_fw-la pacis_fw-la about_o the_o year_n 1324._o there_o he_o debate_v the_o question_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n law_n canon_n and_o history_n ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a he_o maintain_v these_o position_n christ_n be_v the_o only_a head_n and_o foundation_n of_o day_n rare_a thesis_n in_o those_o day_n the_o church_n he_o make_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v universal_a vicar_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o make_v he_o the_o other_o apostle_n subject_a unto_o peter_n it_o be_v more_o probable_a that_o peter_n be_v never_o at_o rome_n far_o less_o have_v he_o his_o seat_n there_o who_o have_v no_o fix_a seat_n as_o also_o not_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o fullness_n of_o power_n in_o any_o man_n be_v a_o manifest_a lie_n a_o execrable_a title_n the_o beginning_n of_o many_o evil_n and_o the_o use_n thereof_o shall_v be_v discharge_v in_o a_o good_a council_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o key_n be_v that_o judiciary_n power_n that_o consist_v in_o dispense_n the_o word_n the_o sacrament_n and_o discipline_n christ_n who_o vicar_n the_o pope_n call_v himself_o do_v never_o exercise_v temporal_a authority_n on_o earth_n he_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o magistrate_n and_o so_o be_v his_o apostle_n after_o his_o ascension_n and_o they_o teach_v other_o to_o obey_v prince_n if_o a_o pope_n usurp_v temporal_a authority_n prince_n shall_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n resist_v by_o word_n and_o deed_n or_o they_o be_v unjust_a and_o sin_n against_o god_n and_o those_o who_o fight_v for_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v account_v the_o soldier_n of_o satan_n unto_o the_o pope_n belong_v not_o the_o election_n nor_o confirmation_n of_o the_o emperor_n but_o contrary_o the_o christian_a prince_n with_o consent_n of_o clergy_n and_o people_n shall_v name_v the_o pope_n or_o if_o one_o be_v choose_v in_o his_o absence_n he_o shall_v confirm_v he_o if_o the_o pope_n go_v astray_o or_o be_v accurse_v the_o emperor_n shall_v reduce_v he_o into_o the_o way_n and_o judge_v he_o in_o a_o council_n when_o peter_n live_v he_o may_v have_v fall_v and_o err_v neither_o have_v the_o pope_n any_o privilege_n against_o error_n that_o that_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o be_v to_o be_v extend_v unto_o the_o other_o apostle_n only_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o truth_n against_o which_o canon_n we_o may_v not_o believe_v either_o pope_n or_o church_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o any_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n we_o may_v not_o believe_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n see_v not_o once_o have_v they_o seduce_v silly_a soul_n into_o hell_n the_o christian_a church_n be_v the_o universality_n of_o believer_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n she_o be_v represent_v in_o a_o lawful_a and_o general_a council_n a_o council_n shall_v be_v assemble_v by_o the_o emperor_n with_o consent_n of_o christian_a prince_n as_o ancient_o it_o be_v always_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v the_o only_a rule_n and_o chief_a judge_n in_o decide_v cause_n ecclesiastical_a not_o only_o the_o clergy_n by_o lay_v man_n also_o if_o they_o be_v godly_a and_o learned_a shall_v have_v voice_n in_o general_a counsel_n the_o clergy_n and_o synagogue_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o den_n of_o thief_n etc._n etc._n this_o book_n be_v print_v at_o basil_n an._n 1522._o in_o another_o treatise_n he_o say_v good_a work_n be_v not_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o salvation_n but_o causa_fw-la sine_fw-la quanon_fw-mi mornay_n ibid._n pag._n 452._o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o heretic_n by_o pope_n john_n the_o xxiii_o catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 18._o consider_v what_o a_o modern_a can_v say_v more_o of_o this_o matter_n and_o whether_o they_o show_v not_o themselves_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o antiquity_n who_o accuse_v we_o of_o novelty_n 7._o the_o same_o position_n be_v hold_v by_o john_n de_fw-fr janduno_n or_o gandanensis_fw-la at_o the_o same_o time_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o his_o book_n print_v at_o venice_n and_o florence_n so_o write_v also_o luitpold_a bishop_n of_o bamberg_n namely_o in_o a_o treatise_n de_fw-fr translatione_fw-la imperii_fw-la print_v lutet_n an._n 1540_o he_o say_v the_o authority_n of_o govern_v the_o empire_n belong_v unto_o the_o emperor_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v choose_v and_o the_o coronation_n by_o the_o pope_n add_v nothing_o since_o caesar_n be_v not_o his_o vassal_n nor_o feudatory_a the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n be_v but_o a_o fable_n he_o be_v also_o condemn_v by_o pope_n john_n catal._n test_n ibid._n michael_n cesenas_n general_n of_o the_o franciscan_n be_v bold_a say_v express_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o antichrist_n and_o rome_n be_v babylon_n drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n therefore_o antonin_n par_fw-fr 3._o tit_n 21._o cap._n 5._o reckon_v he_o among_o the_o poor_a man_n of_o lion_n for_o the_o valdenses_n still_o suffer_v persecution_n in_o sundry_a country_n and_o under_o divers_a name_n as_o the_o adversary_n please_v to_o brand_v they_o many_o error_n be_v impute_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n but_o because_o they_o do_v abhor_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o court_n they_o be_v revile_v as_o we_o have_v hear_v from_o arnold_n de_fw-fr villanova_n and_o seek_v out_o to_o the_o fire_n as_o an._n 1302._o nogaret_n the_o father_n of_o he_o who_o take_v pope_n boniface_n the_o viii_o be_v burn_v in_o aquitania_n clemens_n the_o v._o cause_v it_o to_o be_v proclaim_v to_o take_v up_o the_o flag_n of_o the_o cross_n against_o they_o and_o destroy_v 4000_o near_o the_o alps_o whether_o they_o have_v sle_z platin._n other_o go_v high_o unto_o the_o mountain_n of_o who_o some_o remain_v in_o his_o day_n say_v antonin_n par_fw-fr 3._o tit_n 22._o cap._n 10._o from_o they_o be_v the_o in-dweller_n of_o angronia_n and_o adjacent_a part_n continue_v until_o the_o council_n at_o trent_n trithemius_n testify_v of_o many_o that_o be_v burn_v in_o austria_n about_o that_o time_n howbeit_o he_o believe_v the_o report_n of_o malice_n impute_v many_o error_n unto_o they_o yet_o he_o testify_v that_o they_o abhor_v the_o mass_n call_v the_o hosty_a a_o god_n invent_v by_o man_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o synagogue_n of_o unbeliever_n and_o not_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n they_o deny_v all_o man_n merit_n intercession_n of_o saint_n the_o difference_n of_o day_n and_o meat_n etc._n etc._n he_o witness_v also_o that_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v innumerable_a in_o bohemia_n austria_n
bodily_a pain_n in_o this_o world_n which_o after_o their_o own_o say_n be_v far_o less_o and_o the_o pope_n may_v go_v down_o to_o hell_n as_o another_o man_n and_o whereas_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o absolve_v any_o man_n without_o inward_a repentance_n he_o extoll_v himself_o above_o god_n this_o complaint_n be_v at_o length_n in_o the_o act._n &_o monim_n write_v by_o io._n fox_n and_o these_o be_v the_o chief_a head_n of_o it_o 11._o in_o the_o twenty_o five_o year_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o iii_o which_o be_v 1364._o pope_n law_n against_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n statute_n be_v make_v if_o any_o procure_v from_o rome_n a_o provision_n to_o any_o abbey_n priory_n or_o benefice_n in_o england_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o destruction_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o holy_a religion_n or_o if_o any_o man_n sue_v out_o of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n any_o process_n or_o procure_v any_o personal_a citation_n upon_o cause_n who_o cognifance_n and_o final_a discussion_n pertain_v to_o the_o king_n court_n these_o shall_v be_v out_o of_o the_o king_n protection_n and_o their_o land_n good_n and_o cattle_n shall_v be_v forfeit_v unto_o the_o king_n the_o narrative_a of_o the_o act_n show_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o and_o the_o king_n and_o commons_o of_o the_o realm_n have_v oft_o complain_v that_o his_o realm_n be_v impoverish_v by_o the_o pope_n give_v benefice_n to_o stranger_n which_o never_o dwell_v in_o england_n the_o king_n and_o nobility_n be_v rob_v of_o their_o right_n of_o patronage_n the_o cure_n be_v not_o serve_v and_o the_o will_n of_o the_o first_o founder_n be_v not_o follow_v the_o king_n have_v oft_o complain_v but_o in_o vain_a therefore_o he_o resolve_v to_o make_v his_o kingdom_n free_a from_o this_o bondage_n morn_n in_o myster_n pag._n 480._o show_v that_o when_o pope_n gregory_n the_o xi_o hear_v of_o it_o he_o cry_v this_o enterprise_n be_v a_o rent_v of_o the_o church_n a_o destroy_n of_o religion_n and_o usurpation_n of_o his_o right_n and_o privilege_n wherefore_o he_o send_v immediate_o unto_o edward_n require_v he_o to_o annul_v these_o acts._n but_o when_o the_o schism_n arise_v no_o pope_n do_v insist_v in_o it_o until_o pope_n martin_n the_o v._o send_v more_o sharp_a letter_n unto_o king_n henry_n the_o vi_o and_o he_o answer_v a_o act_n of_o parliament_n can_v be_v annul_v but_o by_o another_o parliament_n and_o he_o will_v assemble_v a_o parliament_n within_o a_o short_a space_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n but_o he_o do_v it_o not_o say_v pol._n virg._n hist_o lib._n 19_o in_o the_o thirteeth_n year_n of_o richard_n the_o ii_o this_o act_n be_v revive_v in_o these_o word_n if_o any_o person_n within_o or_o without_o the_o realm_n shall_v seek_v from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n preferment_n to_o any_o benefice_n of_o cure_n or_o without_o cure_n the_o preferment_n shall_v be_v null_a and_o the_o person_n shall_v be_v banish_v and_o his_o good_n shall_v appertain_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o the_o same_o punishment_n shall_v strike_v against_o they_o which_o receive_v or_o entertain_v any_o such_o person_n as_o also_o it_o be_v ordain_v if_o any_o person_n shall_v bring_v or_o send_v any_o summons_n sentence_n or_o excommunication_n or_o if_o any_o shall_v make_v execution_n of_o any_o such_o summons_n sentence_n or_o excommunication_n against_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o shall_v forfeit_v all_o his_o land_n and_o good_n for_o ever_o and_o himself_o shall_v be_v imprison_v and_o incur_v the_o pain_n of_o death_n yea_o although_o such_o a_o person_n have_v obtain_v the_o king_n licence_n for_o petition_v at_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o shall_v sorfeit_v a_o year_n rend_v it_o be_v also_o observe_v that_o before_o the_o year_n 1367._o the_o high_a office_n in_o england_n state_n office_n of_o state_n as_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n the_o lord_n treasurer_n the_o lord_n privy_a seal_n etc._n etc._n be_v wont_a to_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o clergy_n as_o also_o in_o scotland_n until_o the_o reformation_n but_o about_o that_o time_n the_o english_a nobility_n procure_v that_o all_o these_o office_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o temporal_a lord_n 12._o at_o that_o time_n god_n raise_v up_o john_n wickliff_n a_o courageous_a witness_n of_o wickliff_n john_n wickliff_n truth_n he_o be_v fellow_n of_o merton_n college_n and_o master_n of_o balliol_n college_n in_o oxford_n and_o reader_n of_o divinity_n there_o about_o the_o year_n 1370._o he_o begin_v first_o to_o oppose_v in_o question_n of_o logic_n and_o metaphysic_n but_o such_o as_o straw_v the_o way_n to_o other_o thing_n which_o he_o intend_v when_o he_o set_v upon_o controversy_n of_o divinity_n he_o protest_v public_o in_o the_o school_n that_o his_o aim_n be_v to_o bring_v the_o church_n from_o idolatry_n to_o some_o amendment_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v the_o pathway_n to_o perfect_a knowledge_n near_o the_o end_n he_o show_v what_o travel_n he_o have_v in_o translate_n the_o bible_n into_o english_a he_o gather_v many_o old_a latin_a bibles_n for_o say_v he_o the_o late_a book_n be_v very_o corrupt_a and_o he_o confer_v the_o translation_n with_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o common_a gloss_n and_o especial_o he_o be_v help_v by_o the_o late_a translation_n of_o lyra_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o four_o time_n he_o employ_v many_o cunning_a man_n at_o the_o correct_v of_o his_o four_o translation_n then_o he_o write_v that_o book_n which_o i_o have_v now_o name_v wherein_o he_o give_v the_o sum_n of_o every_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n with_o some_o general_a and_o useful_a observation_n he_o reckon_v the_o book_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o show_v also_o some_o use_n of_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la for_o example_n of_o piety_n patience_n constancy_n etc._n etc._n and_o deni_v that_o they_o be_v for_o proof_n of_o faith_n in_o chap._n 2._o he_o say_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n suffice_v to_o salvation_n without_o keep_v the_o ceremony_n make_v of_o god_n in_o the_o old_a law_n and_o much_o more_o without_o keep_v the_o ceremony_n of_o sinful_a and_o unknowing_a man_n that_o have_v be_v make_v in_o time_n of_o antichrist_n and_o unbind_n of_o satan_n as_o it_o be_v apocal._n 20._o and_o he_o call_v it_o heresy_n to_o say_v otherwise_o in_o chap._n 1._o he_o say_v christian_a man_n and_o woman_n old_a and_o young_a shall_v study_v fast_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o it_o be_v of_o full_a authority_n and_o open_a to_o the_o understanding_n of_o simple_a man_n as_o to_o the_o point_n that_o be_v most_o needful_a to_o salvation_n and_o the_o same_o sentence_n in_o the_o dark_a place_n of_o holy_a writ_n be_v both_o open_a and_o dark_a which_o sentence_n be_v in_o the_o open_a place_n and_o each_o place_n of_o holy_a writ_n both_o open_a and_o dark_a teach_v humility_n and_o charity_n and_o therefore_o he_o that_o keep_v humility_n and_o charity_n have_v the_o true_a understanding_n and_o perfection_n of_o all_o holy_a writ_n as_o augustine_n prove_v in_o his_o sermon_n of_o praise_v charity_n therefore_o no_o simple_a man_n of_o wit_n shall_v be_v fear_v unmeasurable_o to_o study_v the_o text_n of_o holy_a writ_n for_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o everlasting_a life_n as_o peter_n say_v to_o christ_n john_n 6._o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n stir_v holy_a man_n to_o speak_v and_o write_v the_o word_n of_o holy_a writ_n for_o the_o comfort_n and_o salvation_n of_o meek_a christian_a man_n as_o peter_n in_o his_o epistle_n and_o paul_n rom._n 15._o witness_n and_o no_o clerk_n shall_v be_v proud_a of_o the_o very_a understanding_n of_o holy_a writ_n for_o that_o very_a understanding_n without_o charity_n which_o keep_v god_n hest_n make_v a_o man_n deep_o damn_v as_o christ_n jesus_n and_o james_n witness_n and_o the_o pride_n and_o covetousness_n of_o clark_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o blindeness_n and_o heresy_n in_o chap._n 10._o though_o king_n and_o lord_n know_v no_o more_o of_o holy_a writ_n than_o three_o story_n of_o 2_o chron._n that_o be_v of_o jehoshaphat_n hezekiah_n and_o josiah_n they_o may_v learn_v sufficient_o to_o live_v well_o and_o govern_v their_o people_n well_o by_o god_n law_n and_o eschew_v all_o pride_n and_o idolatry_n and_o other_o sin_n but_o alas_o alas_o alas_o whereas_o king_n jehoshaphat_n send_v his_o prince_n deacon_n and_o priest_n to_o each_o city_n of_o his_o realm_n with_o the_o book_n of_o god_n law_n to_o teach_v open_o god_n law_n unto_o the_o people_n ....._o some_o christian_a lord_n send_v general_a letter_n unto_o all_o their_o minister_n and_o liege-man_n that_o the_o pardon_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v open_a lie_n for_o they_o grant_v many_o hundred_o year_n of_o pardon_n after_o doomsday_n be_v preach_v general_o in_o their_o realm_n
and_o lordship_n and_o if_o any_o wise_a man_n gainsay_v the_o open_a error_n of_o antichrist_n and_o teach_v man_n to_o give_v their_o alm_n to_o poor_a needy_a man_n to_o escape_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n and_o to_o gain_v the_o bliss_n of_o heaven_n he_o shall_v be_v imprison_v as_o a_o man_n of_o unchristian_a belief_n and_o traitor_n to_o god_n and_o christian_a king_n and_o lord_n and_o whereas_o king_n hezekiah_n be_v busy_a to_o cleanse_v god_n house_n and_o put_v away_o all_o uncleanness_n from_o the_o sanctuary_n ....._o some_o christian_n lord_n in_o name_n and_o heathen_n in_o condition_n defile_v the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n and_o bring_v in_o simoniacal_a clark_n full_a of_o covetousness_n and_o heresy_n and_o hypocrisy_n and_o malice_n to_o stop_v god_n law_n that_o it_o be_v not_o know_v and_o keep_v or_o free_o preach_v and_o some_o christian_a lord_n keep_v many_o prelate_n and_o curate_n in_o their_o court_n and_o in_o secular_a office_n open_o against_o god_n law_n and_o man_n and_o withhold_v they_o from_o their_o ghostly_a office_n and_o help_v of_o christian_a soul_n ......_o let_v these_o unwise_a lord_n know_v that_o eli_n the_o prophet_n one_o only_o have_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o king_n ahab_n with_o 850_o priest_n and_o prophet_n of_o baal_n have_v the_o false_a part_n and_o after_o micheas_n one_o alone_a prophet_n of_o god_n have_v the_o truth_n against_o 400_o prophet_n of_o baal_n that_o counsel_v achab_n to_o war_n to_o his_o own_o shame_n and_o death_n so_o now_o a_o few_o poor_a man_n and_o idiot_n in_o comparison_n of_o school-clark_n may_v have_v the_o truth_n of_o holy_a scripture_n against_o many_o thousand_o prelate_n and_o religious_a that_o be_v give_v to_o worldly_a pride_n covetousness_n simony_n hypocrisy_n and_o other_o fleshly_a sin_n and_o the_o rather_o see_v poor_a man_n desire_v only_o the_o truth_n and_o freedom_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n and_o scripture_n and_o accept_v man_n law_n and_o ordinance_n only_o in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v ground_v on_o holy_a scripture_n or_o good_a reason_n and_o common_a profit_n of_o christian_a people_n ......_o but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v full_a sore_o that_o king_n and_o lord_n now_o have_v be_v in_o the_o former_a sin_n of_o manasses_n god_n grant_v that_o they_o repent_v very_o and_o make_v amends_o to_o god_n and_o man_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o end_n and_o near_o the_o end_n of_o that_o chapter_n he_o say_v now_o in_o england_n it_o be_v a_o common_a protection_n against_o persecution_n of_o prelate_n and_o some_o lord_n if_o a_o man_n be_v accustom_v to_o swear_v needless_a false_a and_o unadvised_a oath_n by_o the_o bone_n nail_n and_o side_n and_o other_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v proud_a and_o lecherous_a and_o speak_v not_o of_o god_n law_n and_o reprove_v not_o sin_n about_o he_o and_o to_o abstain_v from_o needless_a oath_n and_o not_o lawful_a and_o to_o reprove_v sin_n by_o way_n of_o charity_n be_v cause_n enough_o why_o prelate_n and_o some_o lord_n slander_v man_n and_o call_v they_o lollard_n heretic_n raiser_n of_o debate_n and_o treason_n against_o the_o king_n ......_o how_o much_o blood_n have_v lord_n shed_v in_o war_n for_o pride_n and_o covetousness_n by_o counsel_n of_o false_a prelate_n confessor_n and_o preacher_n it_o pass_v man_n wit_n to_o tell_v full_o in_o this_o life_n but_o of_o shed_v blood_n and_o slay_v poor_a man_n by_o withdraw_a alm_n and_o give_v it_o to_o dead_a stock_n or_o stone_n or_o to_o rich_a clark_n and_o feign_a religious_a be_v to_o speak_v now_o if_o a_o man_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o ghostly_a strength_n now_o man_n kneel_v and_o pray_v and_o offer_v fast_n to_o dead_a image_n that_o have_v neither_o hunger_n nor_o cold_a and_o despise_v beat_v and_o slay_v christian_a man_n what_o honour_v of_o god_n be_v this_o etc._n etc._n the_o bishop_n and_o friar_n can_v not_o endure_v such_o doctrine_n but_o so_o long_o as_o edward_n the_o iii_o live_v he_o be_v safe_a for_o that_o king_n love_v he_o and_o as_o some_o write_v the_o above_z name_v act_n be_v by_o his_o information_n máde_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o prelate_n when_o the_o king_n become_v old_a and_o unable_a his_o second_o son_n john_n duke_z of_o lancaster_n be_v regent_n for_o the_o king_n be_v elder_a son_n be_v dead_a and_o his_o son_n richard_n be_v young_a he_o approve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n which_o wickliff_n do_v teach_v so_o do_v henry_n percy_n lord_n marshal_n william_n rig_n chancellor_n of_o the_o university_n and_o many_o more_o of_o account_n simon_n langham_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n summon_v he_o to_o appear_v at_o lambeth_n an._n 1376._o the_o duke_n of_o lancaster_n go_v with_o he_o and_o the_o contention_n be_v great_a yet_o nothing_o be_v do_v against_o he_o at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o richard_n the_o ii_o john_n the_o regent_n and_o the_o lord_n marshal_n give_v up_o their_o office_n then_o the_o bishop_n think_v to_o have_v the_o more_o advantage_n against_o wickliff_n nevertheless_o he_o continue_v preach_v 1._o the_o holy_a eucharist_n after_o consecration_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o figurative_o or_o sacramental_o 2._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n nor_o have_v peter_n any_o more_o power_n give_v he_o by_o christ_n than_o any_o other_o apostle_n have_v 3._o the_o pope_n have_v no_o more_o power_n of_o the_o key_n than_o any_o other_o within_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n have_v 4._o if_o god_n be_v temporal_a prince_n may_v lawful_o and_o just_o take_v their_o temporality_n from_o churchman_n sin_v habitualiter_fw-la 5._o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o rule_n sufficient_a by_o itself_o to_o rule_v the_o life_n of_o all_o christian_n here_o etc._n etc._n these_o and_o such_o other_o article_n be_v bring_v to_o pope_n gregory_n the_o xi_o by_o he_o and_o twenty_o three_o cardinal_n they_o be_v condemn_v as_o heretical_a and_o the_o pope_n send_v his_o bull_n unto_o the_o university_n to_o simon_n the_o archbishop_n and_o unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n that_o they_o shall_v apprehend_v the_o heretic_n as_o he_o speak_v he_o write_v also_o unto_o the_o king_n to_o assist_v the_o bishop_n a_o convocation_n be_v hold_v at_o lambeth_n where_o wickliff_n appear_v profess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o true_a christian_a he_o explain_v the_o article_n and_o he_o deny_v some_o to_o be_v his_o assertion_n say_v they_o have_v wrest_v his_o word_n at_o that_o time_n whether_o the_o queen-mother_n have_v discharge_v the_o bishop_n to_o do_v he_o violence_n as_o some_o write_v or_o that_o the_o londoner_n take_v his_o part_n as_o other_o say_v or_o both_o he_o be_v dismiss_v only_o they_o charge_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v preach_v no_o more_o of_o that_o doctrine_n the_o schism_n of_o the_o antipope_n give_v some_o respite_n unto_o wickliff_n and_o simon_n be_v slay_v in_o a_o dissension_n between_o the_o nobility_n and_o the_o commons_o his_o successor_n william_n courtney_n be_v more_o full_o against_o he_o and_o prevail_v so_o with_o the_o king_n to_o banish_v he_o and_o in_o the_o five_o year_n of_o the_o young_a king_n procure_v a_o act_n that_o heretic_n as_o it_o please_v they_o to_o speak_v shall_v be_v imprison_v until_o they_o justify_v their_o cause_n this_o act_n mention_v great_a number_n of_o they_o throughout_o all_o the_o kingdom_n convening_n to_o sermon_n in_o church_n churchyard_n market-place_n and_o other_o place_n where_o be_v great_a assembling_n of_o people_n philip_n repington_n a_o bachelor_n of_o divinity_n have_v be_v summon_v for_o the_o same_o doctrine_n but_o after_o this_o act_n he_o forsake_v it_o and_o become_v bishop_n of_o lincoln_n and_o a_o cruel_a persecutor_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o he_o have_v profess_v john_n ashton_n also_o fall_v away_o nicolas_n herford_n another_o bachelor_n make_v his_o appeal_n from_o the_o bishop_n unto_o the_o king_n and_o his_o council_n but_o william_n cause_v he_o to_o be_v apprehend_v and_o imprison_v he_o escape_v and_o continue_v preach_v as_o before_o john_n wickliff_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o banishment_n write_v unto_o pope_n urban_n a_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n wherein_o he_o affirm_v that_o see_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n call_v himself_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n of_o all_o man_n he_o be_v most_o bind_v to_o follow_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n since_o the_o greatness_n among_o christ_n disciple_n consist_v not_o in_o worldly_a honour_n but_o in_o exact_a imitation_n of_o christ_n in_o life_n and_o doctrine_n and_o he_o advise_v the_o pope_n to_o leave_v unto_o the_o secular_a power_n all_o temporal_a rule_n as_o christ_n do_v and_o he_o pray_v that_o he_o and_o his_o cardinal_n may_v follow_v the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o faithful_o teach_v
his_o flock_n but_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o busy_a against_o the_o pope_n of_o avenion_n that_o neither_o of_o they_o have_v leisure_n to_o attend_v such_o matter_n and_o wickliff_n do_v return_v it_o happen_v that_o he_o become_v sick_a and_o there_o be_v little_a hope_n of_o his_o recovery_n the_o friar_n send_v four_o of_o their_o order_n and_o four_o elder_a man_n unto_o he_o and_o wish_v he_o then_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o death_n to_o recant_v his_o former_a opinion_n he_o desire_v his_o friend_n to_o set_v he_o up_o and_o then_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n i_o shall_v not_o die_v but_o live_v and_o declare_v the_o most_o wicked_a fact_n of_o friar_n they_o leave_v he_o with_o confusion_n and_o he_o do_v recover_v and_o write_v a_o treatise_n against_o the_o order_n of_o friar_n of_o which_o treatise_n doctor_n james_n make_v mention_v in_o his_o book_n call_v wickliff_n conformity_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n an._n 1382._o they_o assemble_v a_o convocation_n against_o he_o to_o condemn_v his_o doctrine_n and_o book_n in_o the_o very_a hour_n of_o their_o first_o meeting_n all_o england_n be_v shake_v with_o a_o earthquake_n that_o all_o who_o be_v assemble_v think_v it_o expedient_a to_o surcease_v for_o that_o time_n at_o last_o he_o die_v in_o peace_n in_o lutterworth_n where_o he_o have_v be_v parson_n an._n 1387._o such_o a_o god_n be_v the_o lord_n that_o who_o he_o will_v keep_v nothing_o can_v hurt_v john_n bale_n have_v a_o catalogue_n of_o his_o book_n in_o five_o full_a page_n and_o aen._n silvius_n in_o histor_n bohem._n testify_v that_o more_o of_o his_o book_n be_v extant_a than_o of_o augustine_n the_o late_a papist_n do_v impute_v many_o error_n unto_o he_o and_o so_o do_v the_o council_n of_o constance_n but_o other_o have_v clear_v he_o of_o those_o imputation_n especial_o the_o above_o name_v antiquary_n doctor_n james_n and_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v the_o falsehood_n of_o those_o crimination_n this_o be_v one_o that_o he_o condemn_v all_o oath_n therein_o savour_v of_o anabaptism_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n which_o i_o have_v cite_v out_o of_o the_o pathway_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o speak_v of_o customary_a and_o false_a swear_n and_o in_o that_o same_o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o to_o swear_v by_o any_o be_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n alone_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o swear_v by_o any_o saint_n or_o creature_n and_o by_o this_o one_o instance_n it_o may_v be_v judge_v of_o other_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n ordain_v to_o take_v up_o his_o body_n and_o burn_v it_o and_o so_o the_o english_a prelate_n take_v up_o his_o bone_n forty_o and_o one_o year_n after_o his_o death_n to_o burn_v they_o such_o be_v their_o rage_n against_o the_o professor_n of_o truth_n at_o that_o time_n happen_v a_o rebellion_n in_o ireland_n richard_n bishop_n a_o prank_n of_o the_o bishop_n the_o ii_o go_v to_o suppress_v it_o while_o he_o be_v there_o thomas_n arundel_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n steal_v away_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o subject_n from_o he_o because_o he_o have_v hearken_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o wickliff_n and_o persuade_v they_o to_o advance_v henry_n earl_n of_o derby_n to_o the_o crown_n to_o the_o end_n that_o both_o they_o may_v be_v rid_v of_o such_o a_o sovereign_n and_o have_v a_o king_n for_o ever_o oblige_v to_o authorise_v their_o bloody_a design_n against_o god_n people_n but_o all_o their_o treason_n and_o cruelty_n can_v not_o smother_v the_o truth_n it_o be_v bitter_o enough_o mark_v say_v io._n bale_n cent._n 6._o 25._o in_o appen_n that_o the_o earl_n of_o salisbury_n despise_v confession_n lollard_n many_o be_v call_v lollard_n and_o the_o popish_a sacrament_n at_o his_o death_n sir_n john_n montague_n throw_v down_o all_o image_n within_o his_o land_n john_n purvey_v write_v book_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o master_n lesson_n he_o write_v a_o commentary_n on_o the_o revelation_n where_o he_o say_v seven_o year_n be_v past_a since_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v general_o make_v know_v to_o be_v the_o antichrist_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o year_n 1382._o behold_v how_o god_n bring_v light_a out_o of_o darkness_n i_o have_v not_o write_v such_o thing_n against_o antichrist_n and_o his_o prelate_n if_o they_o have_v not_o imprison_v i_o lest_o i_o do_v speak_v against_o they_o there_o he_o appli_v all_o the_o prophecy_n concern_v antichrist_n and_o the_o whore_n unto_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o court._n the_o archbishop_n have_v imprison_v this_o purvey_v and_o by_o cruel_a torment_n cause_v he_o to_o recant_v seven_o godly_a article_n at_o paul_n cross_n but_o when_o he_o be_v at_o liberty_n he_o speak_v more_o bold_o and_o accuse_v the_o pope_n for_o deny_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n without_o the_o decree_n and_o decretal_n he_o say_v also_o spiritual_a man_n write_v book_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o these_o book_n be_v either_o hide_v or_o burn_v nor_o be_v any_o man_n suffer_v to_o preach_v but_o which_o be_v devote_v unto_o the_o pope_n and_o good_a man_n be_v draw_v into_o prison_n but_o say_v he_o more_o book_n and_o more_o vehement_a shall_v be_v write_v against_o the_o pope_n for_o these_o and_o such_o other_o thing_n henry_n chichelay_v successor_n to_o thomas_n imprison_v he_o again_o an._n 1393._o walter_n bruit_n be_v in_o question_n before_o the_o bishop_n of_o hereford_n and_o deliver_v a_o book_n yet_o extant_a say_v geo._n abbot_n against_o hill_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o reason_n in_o the_o register_n of_o that_o diocy_n wherein_o he_o write_v these_o and_o many_o such_o position_n bread_n remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o consecration_n the_o pope_n be_v the_o antichrist_n nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o what_o may_v be_v confirm_v by_o scripture_n the_o city_n describe_v in_o revel_n 7._o be_v rome_n justification_n be_v free_o by_o christ_n alone_o miracle_n now_o be_v no_o assurance_n of_o truth_n infant_n die_v before_o baptism_n be_v not_o therefore_o condemn_v auricular_a confession_n be_v not_o prescribe_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o canon_n law_n be_v ill_o ground_v the_o numeral_a letter_n of_o dux_n cleri_fw-la make_v up_o the_o number_n 66●_n worship_n of_o image_n be_v idolatry_n that_o man_n be_v not_o rash_o to_o be_v repute_v saint_n the_o pope_n have_v no_o power_n beyond_o other_o saint_n nor_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n papist_n mistake_v the_o key_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v the_o pope_n deceive_v man_n in_o his_o pardon_n absolution_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n only_o priest_n use_v vain_a prayer_n in_o the_o mass_n exorcism_n and_o holy_a water_n be_v unlawful_a priest_n do_v sin_n who_o bargain_n to_o sing_v for_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n depart_v religious_a man_n and_o woman_n be_v the_o devourer_n of_o widow_n house_n sell_v of_o order_n and_o dirge_n be_v naught_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o beast_n with_o the_o two_o horn_n like_o the_o lamb_n while_o he_o challenge_v the_o double_a sword_n temporal_a good_n may_v be_v take_v from_o the_o clergy_n offend_v the_o same_o author_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la sect_n 25._o say_v yea_o so_o far_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o wickliff_n spread_v the_o pope_n gregory_n xi_o in_o the_o year_n 1378._o do_v direct_v his_o bull_n to_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n against_o the_o doctrine_n and_o article_n of_o that_o learned_a man_n even_o rome_n itself_o ring_v of_o his_o opinion_n in_o that_o university_n neither_o do_v his_o follower_n die_v when_o he_o die_v but_o long_o after_o that_o pope_n gregory_n the_o xii_o do_v direct_v another_o bull_n to_o oxford_n in_o which_o he_o use_v the_o same_o word_n which_o his_o predecessor_n have_v that_o be_v that_o wickliff_n do_v follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n and_o of_o john_n of_o gandune_n of_o unworthy_a memory_n which_o speech_n be_v worth_a the_o mark_v say_v abbot_n to_o show_v that_o this_o man_n have_v his_o predecessor_n the_o copy_n of_o this_o latter_a bull_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o a_o book_n which_o that_o worthy_a lover_n of_o antiquity_n mr._n hare_n give_v to_o our_o university_n say_v he_o 13._o in_o time_n of_o the_o rebellion_n against_o king_n richard_n among_o all_o the_o bishop_n only_a thomas_n mark_v bishop_n of_o carlisle_n be_v for_o he_o in_o the_o parliament_n they_o be_v not_o content_a to_o depose_v he_o but_o be_v devise_v more_o mischief_n against_o he_o then_o say_v thomas_n none_o here_o present_a be_v worthy_a to_o pass_v his_o sentence_n on_o so_o worthy_a a_o king_n who_o they_o have_v obey_v as_o their_o lawful_a prince_n full_a twenty_o two_o year_n this_o be_v the_o part_n of_o traitor_n cutthroat_n
lewis_n who_o die_v in_o a_o battle_n against_o the_o turk_n an._n 1528._o and_o then_o the_o covenant_n be_v accomplish_v and_o the_o house_n of_o austria_n be_v king_n of_o hungary_n after_o the_o death_n of_o ladislaus_n be_v strife_n also_o for_o the_o duchy_n of_o austria_n three_o brethren_n the_o emperor_n albert_n and_o sigismond_n contend_v for_o it_o they_o do_v name_v some_o umpire_n to_o decide_v the_o controversy_n but_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o judge_v against_o the_o mighty_a frederick_n carry_v it_o but_o in_o the_o year_n 1463._o albert_n besiege_v his_o brother_n in_o the_o castle_n of_o vienna_n so_o straight_o that_o the_o emperor_n send_v for_o relief_n unto_o george_n king_n of_o bohemia_n who_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o despise_v as_o a_o heretic_n and_o he_o send_v unto_o pope_n pius_fw-la entreat_v he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o accurse_v george_n with_o his_o thunder_n the_o pope_n yield_v because_o of_o that_o necessity_n say_v naucler_n and_o the_o bohemian_o deliver_v the_o emperor_n but_o so_o wary_o that_o he_o neither_o do_v perish_v nor_o be_v victorious_a in_o the_o year_n 1466._o frederick_n go_v to_o rome_n some_o say_v to_o perform_v a_o vow_n other_o say_v to_o treat_v with_o the_o pope_n concern_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n whatsoever_o be_v his_o purpose_n he_o return_v in_o peace_n and_o by_o his_o mean_n peace_n continue_v in_o italy_n and_o germany_n at_o that_o time_n charles_n surname_v the_o hardy_a duke_n of_o burgundy_n flanders_n gelderland_n holland_n etc._n etc._n dare_v hold_v all_o the_o world_n for_o his_o enemy_n and_o spare_v not_o to_o invade_v and_o take_v town_n where_o he_o please_v he_o have_v a_o conference_n with_o the_o emperor_n at_o lutzemburg_n and_o among_o other_o purpose_n he_o demand_v the_o title_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n because_o it_o sometime_o have_v belong_v unto_o the_o empire_n and_o now_o he_o intend_v to_o make_v conquest_n of_o italy_n the_o emperor_n know_v and_o mislike_v his_o ambition_n give_v he_o fair_a word_n and_o depart_v the_o city_n in_o the_o night_n wherefore_o the_o duke_n besiege_v colein_n the_o emperor_n come_v against_o he_o with_o a_o great_a army_n yet_o desirous_a of_o peace_n they_o be_v both_o induce_v to_o agree_v and_o charles_n leave_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o he_o can_v not_o live_v in_o peace_n he_o intend_v to_o march_v into_o italy_n and_o to_o molest_v the_o swisser_n in_o his_o way_n but_o he_o be_v kill_v by_o they_o in_o the_o year_n 1476._o then_o the_o french_a the_o swisser_n and_o other_o repossess_v themselves_o of_o what_o charles_n have_v take_v from_o they_o and_o maximilian_n the_o emperor_n son_n marry_v the_o only_a daughter_n of_o charles_n and_o keep_v his_o inheritance_n not_o without_o trouble_n in_o the_o year_n 1480._o mahumet_n have_v conquer_v the_o island_n of_o archipelagus_n invade_v italy_n his_o bassa_n acomath_n take_v otranto_n and_o some_o other_o place_n all_o italy_n be_v in_o fear_n mahumet_n die_v and_o his_o son_n bajazeth_n be_v molest_v with_o civil_a war_n so_o italy_n be_v free_v in_o the_o year_n 1486._o frederick_n cause_v his_o son_n maximilian_n to_o be_v choose_v king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o make_v several_a statute_n under_o great_a penalty_n against_o all_o that_o shall_v disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o germany_n the_o year_n 1492._o be_v remarkable_a first_o for_o the_o death_n of_o pope_n innocentius_n and_o election_n of_o alexander_n the_o vi_o next_o for_o expel_v the_o moor_n out_o of_o spain_n by_o ferdinand_n king_n of_o castille_n above_o 700._o year_n after_o their_o first_o arrival_n it_o be_v write_v that_o 224000._o family_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v banish_v three_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o same_o ferdinand_n christopher_n columbus_n sail_v westward_o discover_v the_o isle_n azore_n as_o americus_n vespusius_n in_o the_o year_n 1499._o discover_v the_o west-indies_n which_o after_o he_o be_v call_v america_n pope_n alexander_n give_v that_o kingdom_n unto_o ferdinand_n when_o this_o gift_n be_v report_v unto_o artabaliba_n king_n of_o peru_n he_o say_v that_o pope_n must_v be_v a_o fool_n who_o give_v unto_o another_o what_o he_o never_o have_v or_o certain_o he_o be_v impudent_a and_o unjust_a who_o give_v another_o man_n land_n unto_o stranger_n and_o stir_v up_o man_n to_o the_o shed_n of_o innocent_a blood_n as_o benzo_n &_o lopez_n do_v record_n when_o all_o the_o empire_n be_v in_o peace_n frederick_n die_v an._n 1493._o the_o reign_n of_o his_o son_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o the_o next_o century_n chap._n iii_o of_o divers_a country_n 1._o it_o be_v tedious_a to_o repeat_v all_o the_o strange_a eclipse_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n sign_n ominous_a sign_n which_o be_v record_v to_o have_v be_v in_o this_o century_n portend_v the_o wondrous_a darkness_n of_o the_o ignorance_n of_o these_o time_n as_o indeed_o it_o surpass_v all_o other_o since_o no_o age_n have_v see_v more_o ungodly_a pope_n nor_o great_a ignorance_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o inundation_n of_o water_n the_o frequent_a pestilence_n and_o famine_n do_v also_o proclaim_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o the_o iniquity_n of_o man_n but_o the_o more_o god_n do_v strike_v the_o stithies_n of_o their_o heart_n they_o become_v the_o hard_a except_o a_o small_a number_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o ungodly_a multitude_n who_o therefore_o be_v have_v in_o reproach_n and_o be_v persecute_v 2._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o century_n god_n make_v some_o preparation_n for_o a_o knowledge_n help_v of_o knowledge_n reformation_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o more_o which_o be_v two_o mighty_a help_n of_o knowledge_n first_o some_o greek_n come_v into_o italy_n to_o wit_n emanuel_n chrysoloras_n and_o argyropulus_fw-la two_o byzantine_n musurus_fw-la cretensis_n john_n laicaris_n theodor_n gaza_n george_n trapezuntius_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o greek_a language_n have_v scarce_o be_v hear_v in_o italy_n the_o space_n of_o 700._o year_n but_o then_o both_o greek_a and_o latin_a school_n be_v multiply_v and_o they_o translate_v some_o greek_a father_n into_o latin_a as_o trapezuntius_fw-la translate_v some_o work_n of_o cyril_n alexandrin_n of_o eusebius_n etc._n etc._n their_o disciple_n be_v leonard_n aretin_n guarin_n veronen_n pogius_n florentin_n philelphus_n etc._n etc._n in_o emulation_n of_o they_o be_v famous_a in_o the_o latin_a language_n laurentius_n valla_n flavius_n blondus_n donatus_n acciaiolus_n a_o florentine_a and_o many_o more_o and_o the_o year_n 1450._o be_v famous_a print_v first_o print_v for_o the_o excellent_a invention_n of_o print_v in_o strawsburg_n by_o a_o goldsmith_n john_n gutenberg_n who_o some_o do_v call_v johannes_n faustus_n this_o art_n as_o it_o be_v wondrous_a for_o invention_n so_o it_o be_v and_o be_v singular_o profitable_a for_o store_n of_o book_n then_o the_o scripture_n be_v see_v and_o read_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n come_v to_o light_v history_n be_v make_v know_v time_n be_v compare_v truth_n be_v discern_v falsehood_n be_v detect_v etc._n etc._n before_o that_o time_n the_o rich-poor_a monk_n gather_v all_o the_o book_n into_o their_o cloister_n and_o few_o read_v they_o but_o other_o can_v not_o have_v they_o this_o be_v a_o great_a occasion_n of_o ignorance_n which_o thereafter_o be_v remove_v by_o use_n of_o printing_n 3._o several_a homily_n and_o treati●es_n come_v forth_o against_o the_o covetousness_n luxury_n and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o clark_n and_o monk_n herman_n ried_n in_o a_o book_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la &_o honestate_fw-la clericorum_fw-la say_v in_o these_o dangerous_a time_n be_v many_o clark_n whio_n make_v no_o account_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n nor_o of_o reason_n they_o admit_v not_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o they_o despise_v the_o ancient_a canon_n as_o bernard_n have_v write_v unto_o eugenius_n they_o do_v hate_n and_o deride_v man_n of_o understanding_n and_o catholic_n because_o they_o espy_v the_o grievous_a vice_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o in_o zeal_n speak_v against_o their_o unfaithfulness_n the_o clark_n call_v such_o man_n fantastic_a disturber_n of_o peace_n and_o man_n of_o erroneous_a conscience_n who_o be_v zealous_a to_o root_v out_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o who_o allege_v the_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n these_o i_o say_v be_v check_v and_o revile_v by_o their_o own_o and_o other_o prelate_n so_o that_o at_o last_o they_o must_v even_o against_o their_o will_n be_v silent_a and_o dissemble_v so_o it_o be_v verify_v what_o st._n jerom_n say_v in_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la norma_fw-la vivendi_fw-la cap._n 5._o there_o be_v not_o so_o cruel_a a_o beast_n as_o a_o wicked_a priest_n for_o he_o can_v endure_v to_o be_v correct_v or_o hear_v the_o truth_n in_o a_o word_n they_o be_v full_a of_o wickedness_n then_o he_o complain_v that_o the_o
christ_n that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o work_n of_o indulgence_n shall_v have_v virtue_n sometime_o for_o six_o year_n sometime_o for_o seven_o sometime_o for_o seven_o hundred_o sometime_o for_o seven_o thousand_o and_o sometime_o full_a and_o absolute_a then_o answer_v unto_o that_o position_n the_o church_n be_v rule_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n he_o say_v it_o be_v true_a in_o so_o far_o as_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a but_o not_o in_o these_o particular_n whereof_o she_o be_v ignorant_a and_o in_o which_o she_o err_v as_o alas_o we_o lament_v that_o she_o err_v grievous_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o unsavoury_a salt_n the_o delate_a husbandman_n and_o the_o unfaithful_a steward_n who_o bernard_n expound_v to_o be_v mercenary_n in_o place_n of_o shepherd_n yea_o and_o wolf_n for_o hireling_n and_o devil_n for_o wolf_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr subditis_fw-la &_o superioribus_fw-la he_o aver_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v and_o when_o he_o err_v he_o shall_v be_v resist_v pius_n the_o ii_o do_v usurp_v all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o sixtus_n the_o iv_o dispense_v with_o all_o manner_n of_o oath_n in_o cause_n temporal_a not_o only_o that_o be_v already_o make_v but_o that_o shall_v be_v make_v which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o give_v unto_o man_n licence_n to_o forswear_v themselves_o and_o deceive_v other_o because_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n be_v contrary_a unto_o christ_n they_o be_v the_o antichrist_n john_n ostendorp_n a_o canon_n of_o st._n levin_n in_o daventry_n go_v once_o to_o visit_v he_o and_o wesselus_n say_v unto_o he_o o_o diligent_a youth_n thou_o shall_v live_v until_o that_o time_n when_o the_o doctrine_n of_o these_o late_a divine_n and_o contentious_a schoolman_n shall_v be_v forsake_v wesselus_n die_v in_o the_o year_n 1490._o and_o ostendorp_n live_v until_o the_o year_n 1520._o gerhard_n gelderhaurius_n write_v that_o he_o hear_v his_o master_n ostendorp_n report_v this_o prophecy_n ja._n triglandius_n in_o his_o church_n history_n against_o ●tenboga_fw-la par_fw-fr 3._o write_v of_o he_o that_o when_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o iv_o be_v choose_v wesselus_n go_v to_o visit_v he_o because_o he_o have_v be_v his_o good_a friend_n in_o paris_n the_o pope_n bid_v he_o ask_v what_o he_o will_v and_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v deny_v unto_o he_o he_o answer_v i_o wish_v that_o since_o now_o you_o be_v universal_a pope_n you_o will_v demean_v yourself_o in_o your_o office_n according_a to_o your_o name_n that_o in_o due_a time_n you_o may_v hear_v that_o approbation_n come_v thou_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n enter_v into_o thy_o master_n joy_n the_o pope_n say_v why_o seek_v thou_o not_o somewhat_o for_o thyself_o he_o say_v i_o crave_v no_o more_o but_o a_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a bible_n out_o of_o the_o vatican_n the_o pope_n answer_v that_o you_o shall_v have_v but_o fool_n thou_o may_v have_v seek_v a_o bishopric_n or_o some_o such_o thing_n wesselus_n answer_v because_o i_o have_v not_o need_v of_o so_o great_a thing_n when_o he_o die_v some_o friar_n burn_v all_o his_o book_n and_o paper_n but_o he_o have_v give_v sundry_a book_n unto_o other_o which_o be_v collect_v and_o print_v at_o wittenberg_n in_o the_o year_n 1522._o when_o luther_n see_v they_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o prophet_n elias_n who_o think_v that_o he_o be_v leave_v alone_o and_o yet_o the_o lord_n have_v preserve_v seven_o thousand_o that_o have_v hot_a bow_v the_o knee_n to_o baal_n so_o say_v he_o have_v god_n preserve_v many_o thousand_o from_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o write_v of_o he_o as_o follow_v there_o be_v one_o wesselus_n come_v forth_o who_o they_o call_v basilius_n a_o friselander_n of_o groan_v a_o man_n of_o wonderful_a understanding_n and_o of_o a_o excellent_a spirit_n who_o have_v be_v teach_v of_o god_n as_o isaiah_n have_v prophesy_v of_o christian_n for_o it_o can_v be_v think_v or_o say_v that_o he_o have_v learn_v such_o thing_n from_o man_n as_o neither_o i_o have_v if_o i_o have_v read_v those_o book_n before_o my_o enemy_n may_v have_v say_v luther_n have_v take_v all_o this_o out_o of_o wesselus_n we_o do_v so_o agree_v but_o by_o these_o my_o joy_n and_o courage_n increase_v and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o i_o have_v learn_v the_o truth_n since_o he_o and_o i_o do_v agree_v in_o so_o constant_a unity_n and_o almost_o in_o the_o same_o word_n although_o differ_v in_o place_n and_o time_n and_o occasion_n and_o i_o admire_v by_o what_o mishap_n it_o be_v come_v that_o so_o christian_a work_n be_v not_o publish_v by_o another_o 37._o among_o the_o light_n of_o that_o time_n rodulph_n agricola_n may_v just_o be_v reckon_v he_o be_v bear_v in_o friesland_n ph._n melanchthon_n write_v his_o life_n say_v josquin_n groningensis_n have_v report_v unto_o he_o that_o when_o he_o be_v young_a he_o hear_v vesselus_n and_o agricola_n often_o lament_v in_o their_o sermon_n the_o darkness_n of_o the_o church_n the_o abuse_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n and_o that_o they_o both_o teach_v that_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n but_o by_o faith_n as_o paul_n oft_o teach_v and_o they_o condemn_v the_o multitude_n of_o tradition_n he_o die_v an._n 1489._o buxtorf_n ind._n 38._o paul_n scriptor_n teach_v on_o scotus_n in_o tube_v when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o four_o book_n dist_n 10._o do_v speak_v against_o transubstantiation_n and_o say_v all_o thing_n shall_v be_v try_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o a_o true_a touchstone_n all_o scholastical_a teach_n shall_v short_o be_v abolish_v and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n shall_v be_v restore_v according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n conradine_n pelicanus_n be_v his_o auditor_n and_o testify_v that_o he_o hear_v he_o reprove_v many_o error_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n therefore_o the_o minorite_n cause_v he_o to_o be_v banish_v and_o as_o rud._n gualther_n in_o his_o epistle_n before_o his_o homile_n on_o matthew_n testify_v he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n as_o many_o do_v suspect_v be_v not_o move_v with_o uncertain_a conjecture_n he_o die_v at_o keiserberg_n in_o the_o year_n 1499._o 39_o nicolaus_n rus_n a_o bachelor_n of_o divinity_n preach_v at_o rome_n and_o write_v the_o pope_n have_v not_o such_o power_n as_o be_v common_o believe_v the_o pope_n shall_v not_o be_v hear_v when_o he_o stray_v from_o the_o scripture_n his_o indulgence_n be_v but_o fraud_n those_o only_o be_v true_a pardon_n which_o god_n give_v of_o his_o free_a grace_n in_o christ_n saint_n shall_v not_o be_v adore_v and_o far_o less_o their_o bone_n they_o who_o be_v call_v the_o spiritualty_n to_o wit_n the_o roman_a clergy_n have_v pack_v up_o all_o religion_n in_o man_n tradition_n and_o vain_a superstition_n and_o they_o be_v careless_a of_o their_o office_n and_o be_v minister_n of_o antichrist_n these_o thing_n be_v write_v in_o his_o threefold_a cord_n where_o he_o expound_v the_o lord_n prayer_n the_o creed_n and_o the_o ten_o commandment_n which_o he_o write_v in_o the_o saxon_a languauge_n that_o the_o common_a people_n may_v understand_v he_o leave_v rome_n and_o abode_n there_o and_o have_v many_o auditor_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o waldenses_n in_o bohemia_n come_v and_o visit_v he_o at_o last_o he_o be_v force_v to_o flee_v into_o liveland_n where_o he_o die_v 40._o jerome_n savonorola_n a_o dominican_n in_o florence_n teach_v these_o article_n 1._o man_n be_v justify_v free_o by_o faith_n 2._o the_o communion_n shall_v be_v administer_v in_o both_o kind_n 3._o the_o pope_n indulgence_n be_v frivolous_a 4._o the_o key_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o not_o to_o peter_n alone_o 5._o the_o pope_n have_v not_o from_o christ_n any_o primacy_n above_o other_o bishop_n 6._o the_o pope_n follow_v neither_o the_o life_n nor_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v the_o antichrist_n 7._o he_o who_o fear_v the_o pope_n excommunication_n be_v excommunicate_v of_o god_n 8._o he_o preach_v against_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o clergy_n io._n fox_n in_o act._n &_o mon._n philip_n cominaeus_n do_v confer_v with_o he_o and_o testify_v that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o most_o upright_a life_n he_o foretell_v that_o god_n will_v raise_v up_o a_o king_n to_o punish_v the_o tyrant_n of_o italy_n and_o that_o god_n will_v short_o reform_v the_o church_n therefore_o some_o do_v h●te_v he_o and_o some_o believe_v he_o namely_o the_o senate_n of_o florence_n be_v persuade_v by_o his_o preach_n to_o give_v way_n unto_o charles_n the_o viii_o king_n of_o france_n when_o the_o league_n be_v make_v in_o italy_n against_o the_o french_a he_o foretell_v that_o charles_n shall_v return_v in_o safety_n of_o his_o person_n maugre_o all_o the_o power_n of_o his_o adversary_n charles_n return_v from_o naples_n send_v for_o
pope_n gregory_n the_o xii_o do_v direct_v a_o bull_n to_o oxford_n against_o the_o wiclevist_n and_o there_o he_o say_v they_o do_v follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n and_o john_n of_o ganduin_n there_o he_o mention_v a_o provincial_a council_n hold_v at_o oxford_n and_o sharp_a inquiry_n decree_v by_o the_o above_o name_v thomas_n against_o all_o even_o the_o head_n of_o college_n and_o hall_n and_o other_o suspect_v of_o lollardy_n they_o may_v very_o well_o suppose_v say_v he_o that_o the_o student_n of_o that_o place_n be_v also_o entertainer_n of_o the_o aforesaid_a doctrine_n since_o about_o that_o very_a time_n in_o the_o margin_n be_v anno_fw-la 1406._o october_n the_o 5._o a_o testimonial_n be_v give_v in_o the_o congregation-house_n under_o seal_n in_o savour_n of_o john_n wickliff_n where_o these_o word_n be_v god_n forbid_v that_o our_o prelate_n shall_v have_v condemn_v a_o man_n of_o such_o honesty_n for_o a_o heretic_n etc._n etc._n by_o this_o testimonial_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o fire_n can_v not_o consume_v the_o truth_n in_o time_n of_o the_o same_o king_n henry_n many_o proposition_n be_v publish_v upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o schism_n between_o the_o antipope_n argue_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o law_n censure_n and_o counsel_n and_o the_o king_n write_v unto_o pope_n gregory_n the_o xii_o an._n 1409._o thus_o most_o bless_v father_n if_o the_o most_o discreet_a providence_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_n will_v call_v to_o mind_n with_o what_o peril_n the_o universal_a world_n have_v be_v damnify_v hitherto_o under_o pretence_n of_o this_o present_a schism_n and_o especial_o what_o slaughter_n of_o christian_a people_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 200000._o as_o some_o say_v have_v be_v through_o the_o world_n and_o late_o 30000._o be_v slay_v for_o the_o bishopric_n of_o leodium_n by_o two_o antibishop_n set_v up_o against_o one_o another_o by_o two_o pope_n certain_o you_o will_v lament_v in_o spirit_n and_o be_v grieve_v for_o the_o same_o so_o that_o with_o good_a conscience_n you_o will_v relinquish_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v rather_o than_o suffer_v so_o horrible_a bloodshed_n hereafter_o to_o ensue_v follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o true_a mother_n who_o plead_v before_o solomon_n for_o the_o right_n of_o her_o child_n will_v rather_o part_v from_o the_o child_n than_o the_o child_n shall_v be_v part_v with_o a_o sword_n etc._n etc._n 2._o in_o the_o year_n 1407._o james_n resby_n be_v burn_v at_o glascow_n for_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o a_o man_n of_o wicked_a life_n shall_v not_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o pope_n about_o the_o year_n 1411._o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o university_n of_o st._n andrew_n not_o so_o much_o for_o public_a or_o private_a addoting_a of_o revenue_n as_o by_o voluntary_a profession_n of_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o year_n 1416._o the_o abbot_n of_o pontiniak_a be_v send_v legate_n from_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n into_o scotland_n and_o pope_n benedict_n send_v henry_n hardin_n a_o english_a franciscan_n to_o persuade_v robert_n governor_n of_o scotland_n in_o time_n of_o the_o captivity_n of_o king_n james_n the_o i._o he_o be_v take_v by_o the_o english_a when_o he_o be_v sail_v into_o france_n unto_o their_o adherence_n the_o governor_n consent_v unto_o benedict_n but_o all_o the_o clergy_n receive_v pope_n martin_n and_o follow_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n buchan_n 3._o in_o the_o year_n 1412._o the_o commons_o of_o england_n present_v a_o bill_n petition_v king_n henry_n to_o take_v the_o temporal_a land_n from_o the_o spiritual_a man_n so_o be_v the_o monk_n name_v because_o the_o temporality_n be_v disorderly_o waste_v by_o they_o and_o may_v suffice_v to_o entertain_v unto_o the_o king_n 15._o earl_n 1500._o knight_n 6200._o esquire_n 100_o alm_n house_n for_o the_o poor_a and_o 20000._o l._n to_o the_o king_n exchequer_n so_o that_o every_o earl_n shall_v have_v 3000._o mark_n yearly_a every_o knight_n have_v 100_o m._n and_o four_o plowland_n every_o esquire_n have_v 40._o m._n and_o two_o plowland_n and_o each_o alms-house_n 100_o m._n with_o the_o oversight_n of_o two_o secular_a man_n unto_o each_o house_n all_o english_a money_n unto_o this_o bill_n no_o answer_n be_v make_v tho._n cooper_n in_o the_o year_n 1414._o thomas_n arundel_n bishop_n of_o canterbury_n put_v to_o death_n and_o martyrdom_n in_o january_n these_o person_n sir_n robert_n actoun_n mr._n john_n brown_n john_n beverley_n with_o 36._o more_o and_o in_o march_n follow_v he_o be_v so_o plague_v in_o his_o tongue_n that_o some_o day_n before_o his_o death_n he_o can_v neither_o eat_v nor_o drink_v nor_o speak_v many_o say_v it_o be_v just_o do_v unto_o he_o because_o he_o have_v tie_v the_o truth_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v preach_v m._n fox_n ex_fw-la tho._n gascoin_n unto_o he_o succeed_v henry_n chicesley_n who_o sit_v 25._o year_n and_o be_v no_o less_o a_o adversary_n against_o the_o follower_n of_o truth_n as_o the_o preacher_n be_v increase_v the_o strict_a inquisition_n be_v make_v some_o be_v burn_v some_o flee_v and_o some_o abjure_v among_o those_o that_o be_v burn_v be_v john_n claydon_n a_o currier_n in_o london_n and_o richard_n turn_v both_o in_o one_o fire_n at_o smithfield_n an._n 1415._o and_o 36._o at_o thickethfield_n here_o sir_n john_n oldcastle_n lord_n cobham_n deserve_v peculiar_a remembrance_n for_o his_o godliness_n and_o warlike_a courage_n about_o the_o year_n 1413._o he_o be_v call_v the_o protector_n of_o the_o lollord_n when_o he_o be_v commit_v unto_o the_o tower_n he_o give_v in_o write_v unto_o the_o archbishop_n a_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n the_o archbishop_n read_v it_o and_o say_v it_o contain_v many_o good_a and_o catholic_n point_n but_o he_o must_v satisfy_v they_o in_o other_o head_n as_o concern_v transubstantiation_n the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n the_o worship_n of_o image_n the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o roman_a hierarchy_n sir_n john_n be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v satisfaction_n in_o these_o head_n that_o he_o say_v plain_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o antichrist_n the_o archbishop_n and_o other_o prelate_n be_v the_o member_n of_o the_o antichrist_n and_o the_o friar_n be_v his_o tail_n and_o the_o usual_a determination_n of_o these_o other_o point_n be_v contrary_n unto_o scripture_n and_o be_v devise_v since_o poison_v be_v infuse_v into_o the_o church_n and_o not_o before_o for_o these_o answer_n the_o archbishop_n condemn_v he_o of_o heresy_n and_o ordain_v he_o to_o be_v punish_v but_o the_o king_n love_v he_o and_o cause_v the_o execution_n to_o be_v delay_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n sir_n john_n escape_v out_o of_o the_o tower_n and_o then_o a_o great_a multitude_n join_v with_o he_o trust_v to_o be_v free_a of_o danger_n but_o many_o both_o priest_n and_o other_o be_v condemn_v to_o the_o fire_n and_o will_v not_o recant_v p._n morn_n in_o myster_n ex_fw-la walse_v and_o he_o show_v ex_fw-la io._n copgra_fw-la lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr nobilib_n henr._n that_o sir_n john_n oldcastle_n say_v in_o a_o parliament_n england_n will_v never_o be_v in_o peace_n until_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v send_v over_o the_o sea_n he_o be_v a_o learned_a and_o eloquent_a man_n and_o publish_v sundry_a treatise_n against_o invocation_n of_o saint_n auricular_a confession_n the_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n and_o other_o error_n than_o wax_a wherefore_o he_o be_v apprehend_v and_o bring_v again_o to_o london_n he_o be_v first_o hang_v as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o traitor_n and_o then_o burn_v as_o a_o heretic_n an._n 1417._o io._n fox_n have_v his_o story_n at_o great_a length_n in_o act._n &_o mon._n if_o we_o will_v believe_v walsingham_n at_o that_o time_n be_v in_o england_n 100000._o person_n profess_v the_o same_o doctrine_n king_n henry_n the_o v._o write_v to_o pope_n martin_n an._n 1422._o there_o be_v so_o many_o infect_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o wickliff_n that_o without_o the_o force_n of_o a_o army_n they_o can_v not_o be_v suppress_v neither_o yet_o leave_v he_o off_o to_o make_v strict_a act_n against_o they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o lollard_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v as_o felon_n and_o traitor_n and_o so_o be_v they_o pursue_v nevertheless_o many_o endure_v the_o heat_n of_o the_o fire_n for_o worship_v god_n alone_o for_o deny_v the_o pope_n usurp_a power_n for_o maintain_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o communicate_v in_o both_o element_n etc._n etc._n among_o these_o be_v number_v laurence_n redman_n master_n of_o art_n john_n aschwarby_n vicar_n of_o st._n mary_n in_o oxford_n william_n james_n who_o be_v call_v a_o excellent_o well_o learned_a young_a man_n thomas_n brightwel_n william_n haulam_fw-la a_o civilian_n ralph_n greenhurst_n etc._n etc._n among_o
and_z gregory_z a_o confessary_a jerusalem_n name_v dionysius_n and_o isidore_n two_o monk_n then_o but_o the_o one_o become_v bishop_n of_o sardeis_n and_o the_o other_o of_o russia_n their_o commission_n give_v they_o power_n to_o substitute_v a_o vicar_n if_o any_o necessity_n detain_v they_o but_o the_o orator_n of_o basil_n take_v exception_n against_o the_o commission_n and_o they_o complain_v unto_o the_o emperor_n that_o they_o tie_v the_o deputy_n to_o admit_v nothing_o that_o be_v not_o do_v canonical_o nor_o conformable_a unto_o former_a counsel_n and_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o admit_v any_o addition_n or_o change_v or_o novation_n of_o the_o creed_n of_o faith_n this_o limitation_n say_v john_n the_o orator_n can_v be_v accept_v for_o how_o can_v i_o engage_v myself_o to_o give_v entertainment_n unto_o such_o deputy_n who_o be_v so_o tie_v if_o a_o question_n be_v propound_v in_o this_o manner_n answer_v thus_o and_o if_o not_o you_o must_v do_v nothing_o deputy_n shall_v be_v leave_v free_a unto_o their_o thought_n and_o confirm_v what_o shall_v be_v define_v by_o the_o synod_n you_o must_v therefore_o cause_v this_o to_o be_v amend_v or_o else_o in_o my_o judgement_n it_o will_v not_o be_v expedient_a unto_o your_o majesty_n to_o go_v nor_o dare_v i_o hold_v up_o my_o face_n in_o the_o synod_n the_o emperor_n be_v persuade_v to_o draw_v up_o another_o form_n of_o commission_n and_o send_v it_o unto_o the_o patriarch_n with_o his_o letter_n where_o he_o say_v you_o may_v not_o be_v suspicious_a of_o we_o for_o we_o hold_v the_o same_o ground_n with_o you_o nor_o will_v we_o change_v in_o the_o least_o from_o the_o oecumenial_a counsel_n and_o what_o we_o hitherto_o profess_v and_o be_v you_o assure_v that_o we_o will_v do_v no_o otherwise_o then_o as_o you_o will_v but_o they_o must_v subscribe_v that_o form_n of_o commission_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o synod_n and_o of_o their_o deputy_n when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o ferraria_n after_o the_o compliment_n which_o be_v touch_v before_o the_o patriarch_n send_v the_o bishop_n of_o nicomedia_n and_o tornob_n and_o the_o history_n writer_n to_o see_v how_o the_o place_n of_o the_o assembly_n be_v order_v there_o cardinal_n julian_n say_v unto_o they_o here_o be_v the_o pope_n throne_n and_o on_o either_o side_n be_v seat_n on_o the_o one_o side_n for_o the_o latin_n and_o on_o the_o other_o for_o the_o greek_n since_o the_o synod_n consist_v of_o two_o nation_n the_o pope_n must_v sit_v in_o the_o midst_n as_o the_o chief_a and_o tie_v of_o both_o party_n they_o answer_v since_o there_o be_v two_o party_n the_o pope_n shall_v sit_v with_o his_o party_n as_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o patriarch_n be_v order_v to_o sit_v with_o their_o party_n julian_n reply_v there_o must_v be_v a_o middle_a tie_n therefore_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v in_o midst_n but_o say_v they_o a_o middle_a tie_n be_v not_o necessary_a or_o if_o you_o will_v have_v the_o pope_n in_o the_o midst_n it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o patriarch_n shall_v also_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n and_o sit_v with_o he_o or_o else_o they_o can_v sit_v julian_n say_v one_o tie_n be_v sufficient_a to_o join_v the_o two_o party_n but_o two_o or_o three_o can_v make_v one_o tie_n when_o this_o order_n be_v show_v unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o patriarch_n they_o will_v not_o be_v satisfy_v until_o that_o posture_n be_v change_v and_o the_o pope_n throne_n be_v set_v on_o the_o side_n with_o the_o latin_n and_o then_o they_o can_v hardly_o condescend_v for_o though_o the_o pope_n throw_v be_v set_v on_o the_o side_n yet_o he_o will_v have_v a_o place_n make_v for_o the_o emperor_n of_o germany_n and_o over_o against_o his_o seat_n another_o for_o the_o greek_a emperor_n but_o the_o greek_a emperor_n say_v why_o shall_v a_o chair_n be_v for_o the_o german_a emperor_n since_o there_o be_v none_o and_o why_o shall_v the_o pope_n have_v place_n distinct_a and_o above_o the_o emperor_n the_o patriarch_n say_v why_o shall_v the_o pope_n be_v not_o only_o before_o both_o the_o emperor_n but_o in_o so_o many_o degree_n and_o accoutrement_n above_o i_o then_o say_v the_o emperor_n with_o indignation_n all_o these_o toy_n be_v not_o so_o much_o for_o decorement_n of_o the_o place_n or_o for_o order_n of_o the_o synod_n but_o rather_o for_o pride_n and_o earthly_a fancy_n and_o far_o from_o a_o spiritual_a disposition_n so_o the_o emperor_n chair_n be_v set_v right_o over_o to_o the_o pope_n throne_n and_o the_o patriarch_n chair_n over_o against_o the_o empty_a seat_n for_o the_o emperor_n of_o germany_n there_o be_v strife_n also_o among_o the_o deputy_n of_o the_o patriarch_n for_o place_n in_o the_o first_o session_n april_n 9_o nothing_o be_v do_v but_o they_o take_v possession_n of_o their_o place_n and_o the_o bull_n of_o convocation_n be_v read_v in_o latin_a and_o greek_a and_o it_o be_v condescend_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o cessation_n for_o four_o month_n that_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v advertise_v of_o their_o meeting_n may_v send_v their_o vicegerent_n unto_o the_o synod_n unless_o it_o be_v private_a conference_n for_o debate_v lesser_a difference_n in_o this_o time_n the_o cardinal_n julian_n invite_v some_o greek_n to_o dinner_n some_o do_v refuse_v with_o fair_a excuse_n because_o the_o emperor_n have_v forbid_v they_o to_o argue_v at_o any_o time_n with_o the_o latin_n private_o or_o apart_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o mitylene_n be_v persuade_v after_o much_o entreat_v there_o the_o cardinal_n advise_v the_o ephesian_a to_o write_v unto_o the_o pope_n in_o commendation_n of_o this_o noble_a work_n that_o he_o have_v begin_v and_o exhort_v he_o to_o continue_v in_o bring_v the_o union_n to_o a_o happy_a issue_n he_o answer_v it_o seem_v in_o my_o judgement_n superfluous_a nor_o be_o i_o fit_a thereunto_o nevertheless_o if_o you_o think_v expedient_a i_o shall_v write_v and_o send_v it_o unto_o you_o and_o if_o it_o please_v you_o it_o may_v be_v direct_v unto_o the_o pope_n in_o this_o letter_n he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n unto_o he_o to_o accomplish_v the_o union_n because_o of_o his_o power_n in_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o latin_n yield_v blind_a obedience_n unto_o he_o as_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n if_o he_o will_v but_o put_v away_o the_o word_n filioque_fw-la out_o of_o the_o creed_n and_o leave_v off_o the_o dead_a sacrifice_n of_o unleavened_a bread_n the_o union_n will_v soon_o be_v confirm_v and_o all_o christian_n be_v make_v one_o church_n so_o soon_o as_o julian_n read_v this_o letter_n he_o go_v quick_o and_o deliver_v it_o unto_o the_o emperor_n he_o be_v so_o enrage_v that_o he_o will_v have_v call_v he_o to_o account_v and_o punishment_n for_o it_o if_o bessarion_n bishop_n of_o nice_n have_v not_o excuse_v the_o matter_n as_o a_o slight_a conceit_n unworthy_a of_o censure_n and_o may_v do_v annoyance_n if_o it_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o judicial_o then_o a_o conference_n begin_v of_o ten_o churchman_n on_o each_o side_n and_o some_o nobleman_n to_o sit_v apart_o as_o beholder_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n monembasia_n nice_n lacedaemon_n and_o anchial_a sylvester_n sgurogulus_n ......_o and_o of_o the_o latin_n be_v two_o cardinal_n julian_n and_o of_o firma_n andrew_n bishop_n of_o rhodos_n etc._n etc._n cardinal_n julian_n ask_v whether_o they_o have_v think_v upon_o mean_n of_o reconciliation_n the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n answer_v the_o best_a mean_n be_v truth_n and_o if_o we_o have_v truth_n with_o we_o we_o will_v never_o seek_v another_o for_o we_o can_v find_v a_o better_a mean_n than_o truth_n the_o latin_n will_v have_v dispute_v on_o the_o main_a controversy_n but_o the_o greek_n say_v that_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o former_a agreement_n they_o talk_v of_o purgatory_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n demand_v whence_o have_v you_o that_o tradition_n how_o long_a time_n have_v you_o have_v that_o opinion_n what_o be_v your_o opinion_n concern_v it_o julian_n answer_v the_o roman_a church_n have_v this_o opinion_n from_o peter_n and_o paul_n and_o have_v keep_v it_o always_o and_o thus_o it_o be_v ......_o the_o greek_n declare_v their_o doctrine_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o godly_a receive_v the_o good_a thing_n prepare_v for_o they_o and_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o wicked_a receive_v punishment_n until_o they_o receive_v their_o body_n again_o here_o john_n a_o spanish_a doctor_n of_o the_o pope_n court_n propound_v other_o question_n concern_v the_o be_v of_o angel_n in_o a_o place_n with_o what_o wing_n do_v they_o fly_v what_o kind_n of_o fire_n be_v that_o in_o hell_n etc._n etc._n they_o spend_v some_o day_n upon_o such_o question_n without_o any_o agreement_n in_o the_o
for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n this_o profession_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v write_v by_o the_o evangelist_n and_o holy_a paul_n unto_o this_o profession_n may_v be_v add_v this_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o blood_n shall_v according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v take_v in_o both_o kind_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n and_o of_o his_o blood_n shed_v as_o he_o say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o then_o this_o death_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n shall_v be_v preach_v as_o also_o the_o hope_n of_o his_o blood_n shed_v as_o the_o apostle_n witness_v say_v so_o oft_o as_o you_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n you_o shall_v show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n until_o he_o come_v three_o according_a to_o the_o sure_a knowledge_n of_o spiritual_a truth_n of_o which_o the_o evangelist_n john_n do_v write_v as_o also_o for_o assurance_n of_o give_v taking_z use_v and_o of_o truth_n by_o faith_n in_o hope_n as_o the_o lord_n say_v take_v and_o eat_v take_v and_o drink_v four_o for_o the_o conjunct_a use_n for_o according_a to_o the_o institution_n and_o practice_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o priest_n shall_v then_o administer_v when_o the_o necessity_n of_o believer_n require_v and_o he_o shall_v receive_v with_o they_o as_o he_o say_v do_v you_o this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o paul_n say_v the_o cup_n which_o we_o bless_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o partake_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o we_o many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n who_o be_v partaker_n of_o that_o one_o bread_n and_o one_o cup._n five_o for_o distinction_n of_o believer_n from_o the_o unbeliever_n and_o unworthy_a and_o for_o excommunication_n and_o rebuke_n of_o those_o who_o be_v defile_v with_o the_o spot_n of_o vice_n do_v refuse_v to_o amend_v of_o this_o say_v paul_n i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o partaker_n with_o the_o devil_n you_o can_v not_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o devil_n and_o again_o he_o say_v put_v away_o the_o evil_a from_o yourselves_o for_o if_o any_o who_o be_v call_v a_o brother_n among_o you_o be_v covetous_a or_o a_o fornicator_n or_o a_o idolater_n or_o a_o drunkard_n or_o a_o railer_n or_o a_o thief_n with_o such_o a_o one_o eat_v you_o not_o behold_v this_o be_v our_o faith_n most_o gracious_a king_n concern_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o as_o we_o be_v afraid_a to_o change_v or_o forsake_v these_o thing_n which_o our_o lord_n jesus_n have_v be_v please_v to_o testify_v and_o for_o which_o end_n we_o do_v now_o declare_v it_o so_o neither_o dare_v we_o add_v any_o thing_n unto_o it_o which_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o sacrament_n have_v not_o add_v as_o also_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o follow_v christ_n in_o poverty_n and_o affliction_n in_o singleness_n of_o heart_n have_v not_o alter_v the_o ordinance_n of_o his_o law_n concern_v this_o sacrament_n which_o our_o lord_n through_o his_o great_a mercy_n have_v ordain_v for_o love_n of_o his_o elect_a have_v many_o contention_n arisen_a in_o opinion_n exposition_n and_o addition_n of_o sanction_n or_o decree_n so_o that_o contrary_a unto_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o lord_n institution_n they_o have_v furious_o rage_v against_o other_o even_o to_o take_v away_o their_o life_n but_o we_o for_o eschue_v so_o great_a mischief_n have_v our_o refuge_n unto_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n even_o unto_o his_o word_n and_o meaning_n so_o often_o repeat_v in_o his_o word_n so_o that_o what_o he_o command_v to_o believe_v we_o do_v believe_v it_o simple_o and_o what_o he_o have_v command_v to_o do_v we_o will_v do_v it_o faith_n full_o true_o we_o do_v not_o only_o believe_v that_o that_o bread_n be_v his_o body_n which_o be_v take_v and_o bless_a and_o break_v he_o testify_v to_o be_v his_o body_n but_o also_o if_o he_o have_v take_v a_o stone_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n we_o will_v have_v full_o believe_v it_o because_o of_o this_o our_o simple_a faith_n and_o because_o we_o will_v not_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o forsake_v it_o for_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n we_o be_v call_v heretic_n likewise_o for_o the_o actual_a use_n unto_o which_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o example_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n do_v invite_v we_o because_o we_o do_v and_o use_v it_o so_o with_o upright_a faith_n in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v condemn_v judge_v worthy_a of_o prison_n and_o be_v afflict_v for_o we_o be_v tie_v unto_o christ_n command_n and_o dissuade_v by_o his_o forbid_v do_v worship_n he_o with_o reverence_n and_o honour_v due_a unto_o he_o and_o we_o fear_v to_o worship_v any_o other_o thing_n as_o he_o only_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wherefore_o gracious_a king_n let_v your_o highness_n understand_v that_o we_o do_v so_o not_o in_o contumacy_n or_o any_o contempt_n but_o for_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o obedience_n unto_o he_o and_o we_o pray_v that_o your_o highness_n will_v show_v compassion_n on_o we_o who_o be_v condemn_v for_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o wish_v that_o the_o most_o high_a will_v of_o his_o grace_n be_v please_v to_o preserve_v and_o keep_v your_o honour_n from_o his_o wrath_n by_o the_o same_o faith_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o ordination_n of_o priest_n be_v true_o from_o the_o high_a bishop_n and_o great_a priest_n that_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o embassage_n of_o christ_n the_o ministry_n preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n doctrine_n judge_v offer_v of_o prayer_n by_o man_n thanksgiving_n and_o praise_n may_v be_v do_v unto_o god_n by_o they_o and_o it_o be_v from_o god_n unto_o man_n that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n may_v be_v verify_v in_o hope_n of_o the_o receive_v true_a faith_n and_o by_o excommunication_n the_o wicked_a may_v be_v debar_v from_o that_o good_a and_o by_o the_o same_o faith_n we_o confess_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n may_v be_v verify_v in_o hope_n of_o the_o receive_v true_a faith_n and_o by_o excommunication_n the_o wicked_a may_v be_v debar_v from_o that_o good_a and_o by_o the_o same_o faith_n we_o confess_v that_o they_o who_o intend_v to_o ordain_v other_o shall_v follow_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n and_o shall_v consummate_v his_o ambassage_n with_o a_o right_a mind_n without_o respect_n of_o person_n free_a from_o covetousness_n and_o simony_n by_o the_o same_o faith_n we_o declare_v that_o they_o which_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v or_o promote_v to_o high_a or_o inferior_a order_n shall_v excel_v other_o believer_n in_o a_o godly_a life_n and_o faith_n in_o christ_n for_o a_o lively_a faith_n sanctifi_v and_o make_v fit_a unto_o all_o office_n and_o possess_v the_o blessing_n and_o life_n for_o good_a work_n of_o a_o honest_a conversation_n be_v the_o garment_n and_o ornament_n of_o a_o priest_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o heavenly_a father_n and_o example_n of_o the_o people_n and_o show_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o word_n they_o shall_v also_o have_v more_o abundant_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o wit_n more_o servant_n love_n towards_o christ_n confidence_n of_o their_o own_o and_o their_o neighbour_n salvation_n trust_v in_o god_n equity_n of_o mind_n a_o wholesome_a feel_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o good_a conscience_n their_o foot_n prepare_v unto_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n prudence_n of_o spirit_n knowledge_n of_o god_n law_n discern_v of_o spirit_n and_o the_o like_a what_o clerck_n soever_o by_o such_o a_o ordination_n be_v advance_v unto_o the_o priesthood_n we_o profess_v that_o such_o a_o ordination_n be_v a_o sacrament_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a priesthood_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o of_o his_o ordination_n by_o god_n the_o father_n and_o a_o form_n of_o the_o ministry_n as_o of_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n to_o offer_v unto_o god_n the_o incense_n of_o truth_n in_o christ_n we_o approve_v that_o three_o thing_n be_v necessary_a unto_o the_o full_a gradation_n of_o a_o presbyter_n first_o the_o the_o trial_n of_o his_o life_n faith_n gift_n and_o fidelity_n in_o lesser_a thing_n that_o be_v entrust_v unto_o he_o another_o prayer_n with_o fast_v three_o the_o give_v of_o power_n with_o word_n suitable_a there_o unto_o and_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n for_o corroboration_n by_o faith_n we_o do_v testify_v that_o marriage_n be_v a_o lawful_a honest_a and_o
worde_n and_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n according_a to_o the_o first_o institution_n these_o be_v all_o apprehend_v and_o carry_v in_o cart_n into_o paris_n where_o they_o receive_v sentence_n of_o death_n and_o be_v send_v back_o 14._o of_o they_o be_v burn_v in_o one_o fire_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v whip_v and_o banish_v these_o go_v into_o sundry_a province_n and_o cease_v not_o to_o glorify_v god_n by_o preach_v the_o truth_n namely_o pharonus_n manginn_v petrus_n bonuspanis_n etc._n etc._n afterward_o this_o peter_z with_o other_z twell_n be_v burn_v at_o paris_n jo._n fox_n in_o act._n &_o mon._n when_o king_n francis_n time_n the_o persecution_n be_v stop_v for_o a_o time_n be_v sick_a unto_o death_n he_o repent_v of_o his_o cruelty_n and_o many_o write_v say_v thuan._n loc_fw-fr cit_fw-la that_o he_o advise_v his_o son_n henry_n to_o try_v the_o injury_n do_v by_o the_o senate_n of_o aignes_n against_o those_o of_o piedmont_n and_o he_o send_v order_n unto_o that_o senate_n to_o apprehend_v john_n a_o monk_n and_o put_v he_o to_o a_o assize_n that_o man_n have_v devise_v a_o new_a kind_n of_o torment_n to_o wit_n he_o cause_v the_o waldenses_n put_v their_o leg_n into_o boot_n full_a of_o seethe_a tallow_n and_o in_o derision_n ask_v they_o if_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o ride_v when_o the_o monk_n hear_v of_o this_o mandate_n he_o flee_v into_o avenion_n and_o within_o few_o day_n he_o be_v so_o torment_v with_o ulcer_n that_o he_o wish_v death_n king_n henry_n ii_o love_a not_o cardinal_n turnon_n and_o such_o cruel_a persecuter_n so_o the_o merindolian_o and_o other_o waldenses_n gather_v again_o and_o by_o advice_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n aumalius_n present_v unto_o the_o king_n their_o complaint_n against_o the_o iniquity_n &_o cruelty_n of_o the_o senate_n of_o aignes_n and_o they_o do_v humble_o beseech_v that_o their_o cause_n may_v be_v once_o hear_v and_o examine_v it_o have_v some_o beginning_n in_o the_o great_a counsel_n as_o they_o call_v it_o but_o the_o king_n bring_v it_o to_o the_o high_a parliament_n of_o paris_n there_o the_o matter_n be_v debate_v public_o fifty_o day_n with_o great_a vehemency_n by_o ja._n auberius_n for_o the_o waldenses_n and_o peter_n robert_n for_o aignes_n and_o dion_n riantius_n the_o king_n advocate_n when_o the_o complaint_n and_o many_o cruelty_n be_v read_v all_o the_o hearer_n conceive_v hope_n of_o redress_n the_o event_n be_v only_a guerin_n regius_n patronus_fw-la one_o of_o the_o cruel_a persecuter_n and_o have_v no_o favour_n among_o the_o courtier_n be_v behead_v and_o minier_v die_v as_o be_v say_v before_o little_o be_v do_v public_o for_o religion_n in_o france_n until_o the_o year_n 1553_o then_o many_o suffer_v at_o lion_n and_o paris_n among_o who_o be_v martialis_n albus_n and_o petrus_n scriba_fw-la who_o have_v be_v send_v from_o bern_n in_o helvetia_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o before_o they_o have_v do_v any_o thing_n they_o be_v take_v at_o lion_n and_o the_o king_n will_v not_o spare_v they_o for_o the_o intercession_n of_o bern._n thuan._n lib._n 12._o xliii_o charles_n cardinal_z of_o lorraine_n intend_v towards_o rome_n will_v do_v some_o thing_n to_o gratify_v the_o pope_n therefore_o he_o persuade_v the_o king_n to_o renew_v persecution_n be_v renew_v publish_v a_o act_n command_v all_o precedent_n to_o prosecute_v without_o any_o delay_n all_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n against_o lutheran_n the_o senate_n of_o paris_n answer_v unto_o the_o king_n that_o four_o year_n before_o he_o have_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v act_v that_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o ancestor_n who_o be_v all_o defender_n of_o the_o religion_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n the_o power_n of_o life_n or_o death_n for_o religion_n shall_v be_v reserve_v unto_o the_o king_n but_o by_o this_o act_n he_o lose_v his_o privilege_n and_o forsake_v his_o servant_n and_o subject_n and_o commit_v their_o fame_n good_n and_o person_n unto_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o elergy_n who_o by_o their_o severity_n in_o these_o year_n by_o past_a have_v not_o amend_v any_o error_n but_o rather_o have_v exasperate_v the_o people_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v more_o reasonable_a to_o command_v the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o instruct_v their_o flock_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o diligent_o either_o by_o themselves_o or_o by_o qualify_a vicar_n and_o in_o time_n come_v to_o promote_v only_o sufficient_a pastor_n who_o have_v no_o need_n of_o vicar_n thuan._n lib._n 16._o in_o the_o year_n 1557._o septemb_n 4._o a_o great_a number_n assemble_v in_o a_o private_a house_n of_o s._n jaques_n striet_fw-la to_o hear_v the_o worde_n and_o receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n in_o the_o night_n because_o they_o have_v not_o liberty_n in_o the_o day_n the_o multitude_n convene_v in_o the_o nighour_n house_n with_o weapon_n and_o stone_n to_o throw_v at_o these_o people_n in_o their_o outcome_v they_o who_o come_v forth_o first_o be_v kill_v with_o stone_n and_o other_o take_v courage_n upon_o necessity_n draw_v their_o sword_n and_o come_v forth_o all_o save_v to_o one_o say_v thuan._n lib._n 19_o the_o author_n of_o the_o french_a commentary_n lib._n 1._o writ_n that_o the_o believer_n see_v that_o they_o be_v compass_v on_o every_o side_n by_o the_o furious_a multitude_n have_v small_a hope_n to_o escape_v but_o some_o find_v a_o way_n make_v open_a through_o a_o gate_n which_o be_v a_o singular_a providence_n for_o the_o savety_n of_o many_o after_o they_o have_v return_v to_o their_o prayer_n escape_v by_o flight_n without_o harm_n even_o as_o if_o god_n himself_o have_v go_v before_o they_o both_o these_o author_n say_v that_o the_o woman_n and_o weak_a people_n about_o the_o number_n of_o 120_o be_v take_v by_o the_o inquisitor_n say_v thuan_n and_o the_o other_o say_v by_o the_o magistrate_n and_o hurry_v into_o prison_n and_o then_o burn_v among_o who_o be_v nic._n clivius_fw-la a_o schoolmaster_n in_o paris_n in_o the_o 60_o year_n of_o his_o age_n taurin_n gravella_n in_o senatu_fw-la patronus_fw-la nic._n cevius_n a_o physician_n and_o some_o noble_a woman_n diverse_a report_n be_v spread_v of_o this_o assemble_v the_o monk_n preach_v that_o the_o lutheran_n meet_v in_o the_o night_n without_o any_o light_n to_o fulfil_v their_o lust_n the_o mother_n spare_v not_o to_o lie_v with_o she_o soon_o ....._o their_o clothes_n be_v find_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o such_o filthiness_n they_o kill_v their_o infant_n etc._n etc._n these_o thing_n be_v report_v unto_o the_o king_n but_o uncertain_o yet_o none_o dare_v contradict_v they_o lest_o he_o be_v challenge_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o sect_n thuan._n ibid._n and_o the_o mind_n of_o many_o do_v boil_v against_o they_o so_o that_o he_o be_v call_v the_o best_a man_n who_o can_v devise_v the_o mean_n of_o their_o destruction_n the_o protestant_n write_v a_o apology_n show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o those_o calumny_n even_o as_o the_o like_a be_v impute_v unto_o the_o ancient_a christian_n as_o be_v clear_a by_o undoubted_a testimony_n and_o history_n to_o the_o end_n king_n and_o prince_n may_v be_v move_v to_o hate_v they_o and_o now_o these_o be_v publish_v by_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v enjoy_v other_o man_n good_n which_o they_o have_v catch_v wicked_o and_o therefore_o they_o humble_o pray_v that_o the_o king_n will_v be_v please_v to_o try_v their_o cause_n etc._n etc._n french_a come_v lib._n 1._o they_o find_v mean_n to_o lay_v this_o book_n in_o the_o king_n bedchamber_n and_o so_o be_v bring_v into_o his_o hand_n antonius_n demochares_n a_o inquisitor_n and_o ro._n cevalis_n bishop_n of_o aurincae_n write_v a_o answer_n unto_o this_o apology_n but_o none_o dare_v reply_v because_o the_o king_n ear_n be_v so_o sell_v unto_o the_o impudent_a accusation_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n and_o he_o send_v the_o precedent_n julianensis_fw-la command_v all_o heretic_n or_o waldenses_n as_o they_o call_v they_o to_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o point_n of_o religion_n or_o to_o want_v land_n and_o life_n the_o reform_a with_o humble_a answer_n appease_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o commissioner_n osiand_n epitome_n hist_o cent_n 16._o lib._n 3._o c._n 26._o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n and_o the_o swiser_n send_v unto_o king_n henry_n entreat_v for_o those_o miserable_a man_n profess_v the_o same_o religion_n with_o they_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n philip_n king_n of_o spain_n be_v enter_v into_o picardy_n and_o have_v take_v sanquintin_n and_o other_o place_n so_o that_o henry_n have_v need_v of_o aid_n from_o these_o intereessor_n and_o do_v bear_v with_o the_o slackness_n of_o his_o commissioner_n thuan._n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la in_o the_o same_o year_n it_o be_v ordain_v by_o king_n henry_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v
church_n may_v be_v grant_v unto_o the_o reform_a religion_n quintinus_n heduus_n have_v a_o long_a oration_n in_o commendation_n of_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n and_o of_o the_o immunity_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o petition_v that_o the_o new_a religion_n shall_v have_v no_o liberty_n close_v with_o a_o invective_n against_o the_o prince_n of_o condee_n his_o speech_n be_v hear_v with_o scoff_v and_o he_o be_v deride_v with_o ballet_n that_o he_o be_v say_v through_o impatience_n to_o have_v die_v of_o melancholy_a after_o these_o speech_n a_o contest_v arise_v between_o the_o peer_n and_o the_o guise_n who_o will_v have_v be_v account_v the_o king_n near_a kinsman_n the_o meeting_n be_v adiourny_v until_o the_o first_o of_o may_n the_o prelate_n be_v command_v to_o prepare_v themselves_o unto_o the_o council_n and_o all_o the_o judge_n who_o be_v imprison_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n in_o august_n an._n 1561._o they_o meet_v again_o at_o pontoise_n in_o picardy_n there_o at_o the_o first_o contention_n be_v between_o the_o peer_n and_o the_o cardinal_n for_o the_o order_n of_o sit_v the_o cardinal_n turnon_n lorraine_n and_o guise_n go_v away_o malcontent_a because_o they_o be_v not_o prefer_v then_o the_o chancellor_n declare_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o meeting_n and_o exhort_v every_o man_n to_o speak_v free_o i_o touch_v not_o their_o politik_a affair_n the_o speaker_n of_o the_o commons_o complain_v as_o before_o of_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n man_n and_o petition_v that_o these_o fault_n may_v be_v reform_v and_o that_o the_o king_n will_v so_o attemperate_a the_o revenue_n of_o the_o prelate_n that_o they_o live_v not_o licentious_o and_o see_v it_o be_v the_o royal_a privilege_n to_o maintain_v religion_n and_o all_o these_o trouble_n arise_v upon_o occasion_n of_o religion_n the_o ready_a remedy_n be_v to_o call_v a_o council_n whereunto_o all_o man_n may_v have_v free_a access_n as_o also_o that_o they_o who_o can_v not_o with_o safe_a conscience_n go_v unto_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n may_v have_v liberty_n to_o assemble_v peaceable_o and_o public_o for_o hear_v god_n word_n in_o the_o vulgar_a language_n and_o because_o adversary_n do_v calumniate_v their_o meeting_n he_o wish_v that_o the_o king_n will_v depute_v certain_a person_n to_o be_v present_a and_o see_v what_o be_v do_v as_o neither_o shall_v those_o be_v call_v heretic_n who_o be_v condemn_v before_o their_o cause_n be_v hear_v and_o examine_v by_o god_n word_n the_o speaker_n for_o the_o nobility_n speak_v much_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o the_o clergy_n do_v oppose_v they_o both_o at_o that_o time_n the_o pope_n send_v cardinal_n ferrar_n to_o hinder_v the_o national_a council_n he_o will_v have_v observe_v the_o accustom_a power_n of_o the_o roman_a legate_n in_o bestow_v benefice_n but_o he_o be_v stop_v by_o a_o decree_n and_o many_o rhyme_n be_v scatter_v against_o he_o he_o take_v those_o in_o ill_a part_n and_o go_v away_o french_a comm._n lib._n 2._o so_o the_o papal_a authority_n seem_v to_o fall_v and_o it_o be_v talk_v abroad_o that_o religion_n shall_v not_o be_v sway_v by_o authority_n of_o any_o man_n but_o by_o truth_n and_o reason_n and_o who_o do_v cleave_v unto_o their_o former_a rite_n be_v quiet_a for_o the_o time_n the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o nobility_n seem_v to_o affect_v the_o reformation_n and_o the_o queen_n whether_o to_o please_v the_o king_n of_o navarre_n or_o to_o serve_v the_o time_n i_o know_v not_o say_v that_o author_n write_v unto_o the_o pope_n august_n 4._o in_o this_o manner_n first_o she_o lament_v the_o wretched_a condition_n of_o france_n that_o many_o thousand_o cleave_a as_o yet_o unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n perish_v in_o their_o soul_n because_o they_o be_v not_o instruct_v and_o many_o noble_n and_o most_o potent_a man_n have_v make_v secession_n who_o power_n and_o number_n and_o concordis_fw-la so_o strong_a that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v overmaster_v therefore_o she_o implore_v his_o aid_n that_o the_o one_o sort_n may_v be_v retain_v and_o the_o other_o may_v be_v reduce_v and_o so_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v restore_v which_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o be_v effectuate_v because_o there_o be_v no_o anabaptist_n in_o all_o france_n nor_o any_o heretic_n that_o speak_v against_o the_o christian_a faith_n nor_o against_o the_o act_n of_o the_o first_o six_o general_a counsel_n and_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o learned_a man_n with_o who_o she_o have_v confer_v that_o the_o holy_a father_n may_v receive_v such_o man_n into_o fellowship_n of_o the_o church_n albeit_o they_o be_v of_o different_a opinion_n as_o of_o old_a the_o diversity_n of_o observe_v the_o easter_n and_o other_o rite_n and_o part_n of_o divine_a service_n do_v not_o dissolve_v the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n then_o for_o remedy_n she_o propound_v the_o necessity_n of_o call_v a_o general_a council_n or_o that_o he_o will_v provide_v another_o remedy_n especial_o to_o regain_v they_o who_o be_v separate_v it_o may_v be_v expedient_a to_o use_v frequent_a admonition_n and_o to_o permit_v quiet_a conference_n likewise_o bishop_n and_o priest_n shall_v teach_v god_n word_n and_o exhort_v the_o people_n unto_o concord_n lay_v aside_o all_o reproach_n as_o she_o have_v command_v they_o who_o be_v separate_v and_o they_o have_v obey_v but_o many_o who_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o depart_v stand_v in_o doubt_n of_o these_o particular_n especial_o first_o it_o be_v certain_o know_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v no_o image_n and_o god_n have_v expressy_o forbid_v to_o worship_v they_o therefore_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v whether_o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o remove_v they_o into_o place_n where_o they_o shall_v not_o give_v occasion_n to_o worship_v they_o 2._o it_o seem_v strange_a unto_o many_o good_a man_n that_o in_o baptism_n exorcism_n be_v use_v and_o many_o other_o rite_n which_o perhaps_o may_v profit_v they_o who_o understand_v they_o but_o see_v the_o most_o part_n understand_v they_o not_o and_o they_o know_v that_o only_a water_n and_o the_o word_n be_v necessary_a it_o be_v better_a to_o omit_v they_o namely_o many_o be_v offend_v that_o a_o infect_a or_o disease_a priest_n put_v his_o unclean_a spittle_n into_o the_o infant_n mouth_n in_o the_o mass_n many_o be_v offend_v with_o three_o thing_n one_o that_o it_o be_v give_v under_o one_o kind_n only_o albeit_o christ_n say_v eat_v you_o drink_v you_o and_o such_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o another_z it_o be_v minister_v unto_o one_o alone_a or_o some_o few_o without_o prayer_n that_o may_v be_v understand_v by_o the_o vulgar_a people_n and_o the_o other_o party_n have_v show_v that_o they_o restore_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o three_o that_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v carry_v about_o the_o striet_n against_o the_o express_a institution_n take_v you_o eat_v you_o and_o not_o carry_v you_o they_o say_v also_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o heaven_n only_o and_o therefore_o only_o spiritual_a worship_n be_v require_v fourthly_a the_o mass_n be_v a_o scandal_n unto_o many_o because_o it_o be_v sell_v by_o ignorant_a and_o dissolute_a priest_n and_o none_o seek_v to_o amend_v this_o yea_o and_o many_o of_o our_o fellowship_n doubt_v of_o the_o mass_n both_o in_o the_o substance_n and_o form_n of_o it_o in_o the_o substance_n they_o observe_v that_o church_n man_n affirm_v that_o they_o do_v offer_v christ_n and_o they_o do_v esteem_v of_o their_o own_o sacrifice_n more_o than_o they_o do_v of_o christ_n sacrifice_n in_o the_o manner_n they_o note_v four_o point_n it_o be_v do_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n 2._o the_o use_n of_o no_o part_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v declare_v 3._o some_o word_n be_v speak_v as_o belong_v unto_o the_o people_n especial_o concern_v the_o communion_n and_o yet_o the_o priest_n communicate_v alone_o even_o when_o the_o people_n be_v stand_v there_o 4._o the_o order_n of_o the_o divine_a service_n etc._n etc._n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la what_o answer_n be_v return_v unto_o this_o letter_n the_o reader_n may_v judge_v among_o the_o ambassador_n of_o foreign_a prince_n who_o go_v to_o congratulat_fw-la the_o young_a king_n be_v george_n gluch_n from_o denmark_n the_o king_n of_o navarre_n envit_v he_o to_o his_o lodging_n and_o say_v he_o may_v show_v his_o master_n that_o he_o hope_v the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v free_o preach_v through_o out_o france_n ere_o one_o year_n go_v about_o then_o say_v gluch_n oh_o i_o pray_v take_v heed_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o caluin_n and_o the_o swiser_n be_v not_o receive_v but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o martin_n luther_n which_o the_o king_n of_o denmark_n and_o sweden_n and_o many_o prince_n of_o large_a dominion_n do_v
follow_v the_o king_n repli_v martin_n luther_n and_o john_n caluin_n profess_v to_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o forty_o article_n and_o of_o these_o 40._o they_o differ_v between_o themselves_o in_o one_o only_a wherefore_o both_o party_n shall_v bend_v their_o mind_n first_o against_o the_o pope_n that_o when_o he_o be_v overcome_v they_o may_v serious_o consider_v confer_v and_o come_v to_o agreement_n in_o that_o article_n and_o so_o at_o last_o the_o church_n may_v enjoy_v the_o primitive_a purity_n xlvi_o in_o the_o end_n of_o august_n an._n 1561._o according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o 1561._o the_o conference_n at_o possiac_n 1561._o that_o great_a counsel_n begin_v the_o public_a conference_n in_o possiac_n the_o prelate_n bring_v their_o clergy_n from_o all_o part_n of_o france_n to_o dispute_v the_o article_n in_o controversy_n and_o a_o safe_a conduct_n be_v grant_v unto_o these_o for_o the_o reformation_n there_o be_v the_o king_n and_o his_o mother_n and_o his_o brother_n the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n and_o his_o sister_n margarit_n and_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o his_o queen_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o condee_n with_o other_o peer_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o turnon_n with_o arch_a bishop_n and_o bishop_n about_o 50._o beside_o many_o deputy_n from_o other_o prelate_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o popish_a doctor_n from_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v send_v peter_n martyr_n then_o minister_n at_o zurik_n theodore_n beza_n minister_n at_o geneve_n augustin_n marlorat_n mi._n at_o rouen_n nic._n gelasius_n jo._n merlin_n and_o other_o about_o twenty_o the_o minister_n begin_v with_o a_o supplication_n unto_o the_o king_n that_o the_o disputation_n may_v have_v place_n hort_o and_o those_o condition_n be_v observe_v the_o prelate_n sit_v not_o as_o judge_n but_o the_o king_n and_o his_o counsellor_n by_o his_o authority_n shall_v rule_v and_o order_v the_o conference_n 2._o that_o the_o controversy_n be_v examine_v according_a to_o god_n word_n only_o 3._o what_o ever_o shall_v be_v determine_v it_o shall_v be_v write_v by_o the_o king_n notary_n in_o his_o public_a commentary_n after_o some_o day_n the_o queen_n promise_v in_o the_o king_n name_n that_o these_o shall_v be_v perform_v the_o prelate_n complain_v and_o say_v such_o liberty_n to_o dispute_n shall_v not_o be_v grant_v unto_o such_o who_o be_v already_o condemn_v thus_o the_o dispute_n be_v differ_v some_o day_n the_o first_o session_n begin_v september_n 9_o the_o king_n in_o few_o word_n do_v show_v his_o grief_n for_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o exhort_v they_o to_o declare_v what_o thing_n have_v need_v of_o reformation_n and_o he_o promise_v to_o maintain_v their_o liberty_n with_o no_o less_o care_n than_o his_o ancestor_n have_v do_v the_o chancellor_n do_v more_o full_o show_v that_o the_o king_n will_v be_v according_a to_o the_o endeavour_n of_o his_o ancestor_n to_o remove_v controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o albeit_o their_o aim_n be_v such_o yet_o the_o success_n be_v not_o as_o they_o wish_v but_o rather_o more_o trouble_v wax_v wherefore_o he_o wish_v now_o that_o all_o man_n will_v diligent_o apply_v themselves_o to_o settle_v these_o trouble_n in_o time_n for_o this_o end_n he_o have_v call_v they_o and_o in_o his_o royal_a person_n do_v accompany_v they_o that_o all_o thing_n both_o of_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n may_v be_v reform_v especial_o by_o this_o public_a conference_n and_o to_o look_v for_o remedy_n from_o a_o general_a council_n it_o be_v as_o vain_a as_o if_o a_o sick_a man_n have_v sufficient_a help_n at_o home_n will_v travel_v into_o the_o indies_n for_o it_o we_o may_v provide_v better_o for_o ourselves_o than_o other_o of_o foreign_a country_n can_v do_v they_o know_v not_o so_o well_o our_o cause_n nor_o condition_n of_o our_o people_n and_o great_a profit_n have_v often_o come_v by_o national_a counsel_n then_o by_o the_o general_a wherefore_o let_v the_o disputant_n on_o both_o side_n joint_o aim_v at_o concord_n in_o the_o truth_n let_v not_o the_o great_a party_n despise_v the_o lesser_a neither_o let_v any_o man_n use_v curiosity_n but_o judge_n of_o every_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o albeit_o the_o wish_a fruit_n do_v not_o follow_v yet_o this_o good_a shall_v ensue_v that_o all_o pretext_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o those_o who_o complain_v that_o they_o be_v condemn_v unheard_a etc._n etc._n osiand_n lib._n cit_fw-la c._n 46._o ex_fw-la beuther_n the_o cardinal_n turnon_n in_o name_n of_o the_o prelate_n give_v thanks_o unto_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n and_o prince_n that_o it_o have_v please_v they_o to_o call_v this_o conference_n and_o to_o honour_v it_o with_o their_o presence_n but_o at_o that_o time_n he_o be_v not_o ready_a to_o speak_v of_o the_o matter_n propound_v nor_o will_v speak_v of_o it_o until_o first_o he_o be_v advise_v with_o his_o colleague_n the_o cardinal_n archbishop_n and_o other_o prelate_n and_o see_v the_o chancellor_n have_v at_o royal_a command_n deliver_v such_o word_n he_o crave_v a_o copy_n in_o writ_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v consider_v of_o they_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n crave_v the_o same_o the_o french_a commentar_n lib._n 3._o then_o the_o minister_n be_v bid_v to_o speak_v theodore_n beza_n fall_v down_o on_o his_o kny_n and_o pray_v public_o then_o after_o the_o preface_n for_o attention_n he_o speak_v general_o of_o religion_n and_o name_v some_o particulares_fw-la wherein_o both_o party_n agree_v then_o the_o difference_n 1._o in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n which_o we_o say_v he_o in_o name_n of_o the_o minister_n ascribe_v whole_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n 2._o we_o differ_v not_o in_o the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n but_o in_o the_o original_n from_o whence_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v they_o and_o what_o be_v good_a work_n and_o to_o what_o use_n be_v they_o do_v 3._o of_o the_o authority_n and_o perfection_n of_o god_n word_n 4._o of_o the_o nature_n and_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o of_o transubstantiation_n and_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n in_o the_o end_n he_o fall_v on_o his_o knee_n again_o before_o the_o king_n and_o present_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o french_a church_n have_v pen_v an._n 1555_o and_o have_v present_v unto_o king_n francis_n in_o this_o oration_n when_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n he_o say_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o distance_n of_o place_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o heaven_n be_v above_o the_o earth_n at_o these_o word_n the_o prelate_n be_v so_o commove_v that_o they_o begin_v a-disturbance_n and_o be_v silence_v until_o he_o have_v come_v to_o a_o end_n then_o turnon_n with_o indignation_n say_v for_o reverence_v unto_o the_o king_n command_v they_o have_v consent_v that_o those_o new-evangelist_n shall_v speak_v but_o not_o without_o sting_n of_o conscience_n for_o it_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o they_o will_v vent_v thing_n unworthy_a of_o the_o king_n most_o christian_a ear_n and_o scandalous_a unto_o many_o therefore_o the_o prelate_n beseech_v the_o king_n that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o that_o fellow_n and_o suspend_v his_o judgement_n until_o the_o prelate_n shall_v give_v a_o clear_a demonstration_n of_o the_o truth_n if_o he_o will_v appoint_v the_o time_n and_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v for_o reverence_n unto_o his_o majesty_n they_o will_v not_o have_v hear_v that_o man_n blasphemy_n but_o have_v go_v away_o and_o they_o beseech_v the_o king_n to_o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o forefather_n the_o which_o he_o pray_v the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n to_o grant_v lib._n cit_fw-la the_o queen_n be_v desirous_a to_o appease_v the_o prelate_n say_v no_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o king_n and_o his_o councillor_n and_o parliament_n of_o paris_n neither_o do_v they_o intend_v a_o change_n of_o religion_n but_o to_o abolish_v dissension_n in_o the_o next_o session_n september_n 17._o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n speak_v in_o name_n of_o the_o prelate_n he_o make_v choice_n of_o two_o article_n of_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o mass_n of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v the_o church_n consist_v not_o of_o the_o elect_a only_o because_o in_o the_o lord_n barn_n chaff_n be_v mix_v with_o the_o wheat_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v but_o if_o some_o part_n do_v err_v the_o body_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o a_o corrupt_a member_n if_o any_o evil_a shall_v creepin_a we_o shall_v have_v recourse_n unto_o antiquity_n and_o the_o mother_n church_n among_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n always_o have_v have_v the_o first_o place_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v amiss_o in_o any_o particular_a church_n against_o the_o ignorance_n of_o
tumultuous_a talk_n of_o their_o vocation_n and_o of_o the_o supper_n after_o that_o day_n they_o change_v again_o the_o form_n of_o conference_n five_o man_n be_v choose_v on_o either_o side_n to_o dispute_v all_o the_o matter_n peaceable_o on_o the_o one_o side_n be_v the_o five_o minister_n name_v before_o and_o on_o the_o other_o be_v janus_n bishop_n of_o valencia_n vallius_n bishop_n of_o see_v botiller_n a_o abbot_n the_o bishop_n of_o salignac_n and_o espensaeus_n the_o sorbonist_n they_o agree_v on_o the_o order_n of_o disputation_n the_o time_n place_n and_o notary_n they_o begin_v with_o the_o question_n of_o the_o supper_n aforme_v of_o agreement_n be_v draw_v up_o when_o it_o be_v show_v unto_o the_o prelate_n they_o will_v not_o consent_v they_o frame_v another_o the_o next_o day_n and_o show_v it_o unto_o the_o minister_n who_o will_v not_o admit_v that_o on_o the_o three_o day_n all_o the_o ten_o consent_v unto_o this_o form_n we_o confess_v that_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o supper_n offer_v give_v and_o true_o exhibit_v unto_o we_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o we_o eat_v spiritual_o the_o same_o body_n which_o die_v for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v bone_n of_o his_o bone_n and_o flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n to_o the_o end_n also_o that_o we_o may_v be_v quicken_v by_o he_o and_o may_v understand_v all_o thing_n appertain_v to_o our_o salvation_n and_o because_o faith_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n make_v thing_n that_o be_v promise_v and_o understand_v by_o we_o to_o be_v present_a by_o this_o faith_n we_o true_o and_o effectual_o receive_v the_o true_a and_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n jesus_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n we_o confess_v the_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o supper_n the_o other_o prelate_n be_v content_a with_o this_o form_n but_o the_o sorbonist_n will_v not_o and_o they_o blame_v their_o choose_a man_n that_o they_o have_v make_v a_o compact_n with_o the_o minister_n neither_o will_v they_o consent_v unto_o any_o more_o treat_v thus_o be_v that_o conference_n end_v without_o any_o effect_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o germany_n after_o three_o month_n do_v return_v ibid._n thus_o we_o have_v see_v by_o what_o mean_v god_n do_v revive_v the_o gospel_n in_o france_n to_o wit_n by_o man_n of_o low_a condition_n at_o the_o first_o who_o suffer_v slander_n proscription_n stripe_n burn_v and_o every_o kind_n of_o vexation_n and_o when_o it_o please_v he_o he_o join_v unto_o the_o church_n the_o prince_n and_o peer_n and_o he_o open_v a_o wide_a door_n unto_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o worde_n when_o the_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n have_v the_o supreme_a power_n of_o government_n and_o yet_o seem_v to_o be_v bring_v on_o their_o kny_n the_o university_n of_o paris_n in_o proceed_n age_n have_v stand_v for_o the_o truth_n and_o resist_v error_n creeping-in_a but_o at_o that_o time_n become_v most_o gross_a enemy_n and_o then_o antony_n king_n of_o navarre_n not_o only_o resign_v his_o part_n of_o the_o government_n unto_o the_o queen_n and_o so_o unto_o the_o guise_n but_o be_v also_o allure_v by_o fair_a promise_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v all_o his_o kingdom_n of_o navarre_n restore_v unto_o he_o and_o shall_v have_v divorcement_n from_o his_o present_a wife_n and_o shall_v have_v the_o queen_n of_o scotland_n in_o marriage_n by_o who_o he_o may_v be_v king_n of_o scotland_n and_o england_n by_o such_o persuasion_n he_o leave_v the_o reformation_n and_o become_v a_o bitter_a enemy_n and_o seem_v most_o of_o any_o to_o bring_v ruin_n unto_o the_o church_n the_o guise_n then_o and_o the_o prelate_n lift_v up_o their_o head_n again_o and_o use_v cruel_a butchery_n against_o the_o reform_a for_o in_o the_o year_n 1562._o in_o the_o town_n vassi_n the_o reform_a be_v assemble_v in_o a_o large_a barn_n to_o hear_v the_o word_n the_o duke_n of_o guise_n come_v upon_o they_o unaware_o and_o instant_o kill_v 24._o of_o they_o 45._o be_v wound_v so_o that_o within_o few_o day_n they_o die_v and_o the_o minister_n with_o many_o other_o be_v carry_v into_o prison_n at_o the_o same_o time_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o the_o marshal_n of_o santandrae_n many_o of_o the_o common_a people_n in_o the_o town_n of_o seene_n and_o some_o of_o the_o king_n counsellor_n be_v cruel_o murder_v it_o be_v do_v in_o like_a manner_n in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o france_n osiander_n ex_fw-la beuther_n xlvii_o about_o the_o year_n 1540_o sundry_a youngman_n in_o hungaria_n hear_v hungary_n the_o gospel_n in_o hungary_n of_o luther_n and_o melanthon_n go_v unto_o witteberg_n to_o wit_n steven_n galssetsi_n mathias_n devai_n andrew_n batizi_n steven_n kiss_v better_a know_v by_o the_o name_n szegedin_n from_o his_o native_a town_n benedict_n abadi_n emerik_n ozorai_n and_o some_o other_o these_o be_v inform_v in_o the_o truth_n return_v into_o their_o country_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n with_o happy_a success_n but_o not_o without_o persecution_n for_o the_o monk_n stir_v up_o the_o civil_a power_n against_o they_o namely_o devai_n be_v imprison_v at_o cassow_n where_o a_o smith_n be_v also_o in_o the_o same_o prison_n for_o laim_v the_o king_n horse_n in_o the_o shoe_v there_o devai_n inform_v the_o smith_n in_o religion_n afterward_o the_o king_n horse_n amends_n and_o the_o king_n command_v to_o dismiss_v the_o smith_n and_o to_o burn_v devai_n as_o a_o heretic_n the_o smith_n answer_v i_o be_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o devai_n and_o i_o will_v live_v or_o die_v with_o he_o for_o i_o never_o know_v what_o religion_n or_o piety_n be_v until_o i_o have_v learn_v it_o now_o from_o he_o when_o this_o be_v report_v unto_o the_o king_n they_o be_v both_o set_v free_a the_o great_a enemy_n of_o those_o teacher_n be_v george_n the_o treasurer_n who_o have_v be_v a_o monk_n of_o s._n paul_n at_o buda_n and_o among_o they_o all_o the_o most_o useful_a in_o promote_a the_o truth_n be_v zegedin_fw-mi a_o learned_a man_n as_o his_o work_n do_v show_v he_o be_v persecute_v from_o city_n to_o city_n where_o he_o come_v he_o have_v many_o hearer_n not_o only_o in_o the_o school_n but_o pulpit_n also_o and_o the_o more_o he_o be_v persecute_v the_o more_o hearer_n flock_v unto_o he_o and_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o more_o spread_v among_o all_o those_o student_n who_o go_v to_o witteberg_n none_o maintain_v the_o opinion_n of_o brentius_n concern_v the_o ubiquity_n but_o only_o peter_n melius_n and_o in_o the_o end_n he_o be_v convince_v by_o szegedin_n and_o do_v subscribe_v unto_o the_o truth_n michael_n starin_n a_o baron_n become_v a_o preacher_n and_o bishop_n of_o his_o own_o barony_n near_o unto_o tolna_n mat._n scaric_n in_o vita_fw-la szegedini_fw-la at_o varadin_n a_o learned_a mahometan_a turk_n a_o disp●●e_n between_o a_o papist_n and_o a_o turk_n deruis_fw-la gsielebi_fw-la do_v provoke_v all_o the_o franciscan_n unto_o disputation_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n neither_o their_o prelate_n george_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o convent_n dare_v answer_v he_o wherefore_o the_o man_n like_o another_o goliath_n do_v brag_v against_o all_o christian_n until_o bar._n georgieviz_n who_o have_v be_v a_o pilgrim_n and_o know_v the_o turkish_a language_n undertake_v the_o dispute_n the_o 29_o day_n of_o may_n be_v the_o pentecost_n in_o the_o year_n 1●47_n be_v appoint_v and_o many_o both_o papist_n and_o turck_v assemble_v in_o the_o monastery_n the_o turk_n first_o ask_v where_o be_v god_n before_o the_o make_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o other_o thing_n this_o question_n seem_v unto_o the_o pilgrim_n to_o be_v impertinent_a as_o to_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n but_o lest_o the_o other_o may_v impute_v it_o unto_o his_o ignorance_n if_o he_o have_v decline_v it_o he_o say_v before_o the_o creation_n god_n be_v in_o his_o own_o nature_n the_o turk_n repli_v this_o answer_n be_v dark_a and_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v georgieviz_n say_v god_n be_v where_o he_o be_v now_o deruis_fw-la that_o can_v not_o be_v but_o he_o be_v in_o a_o cloud_n georgieviz_fw-fr he_o can_v not_o be_v in_o a_o cloud_n for_o so_o a_o cloud_n have_v be_v before_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n but_o this_o be_v contrary_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o genesis_n the_o turk_n read_v the_o book_n of_o moses_n after_o more_o word_n on_o both_o side_n dervis_n bid_v the_o other_o propound_v then_o georgieviz_n write_v out_o of_o the_o alcoran_n these_o word_n in_o the_o arabic_a language_n bisem_fw-la allahe_fw-la el_fw-es rahmanne_n el_n ruoahim_n that_o be_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o of_o mercy_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o he_o
caspar_n contaren_n reynold_n poole_n peter_n bembus_n and_o frederik_n fregosius_n who_o all_o be_v sensible_a that_o the_o church_n need_v some_o reformation_n then_o martyr_n be_v restore_v to_o his_o liberty_n of_o preach_v but_o can_v not_o enjoy_v it_o long_a time_n for_o he_o become_v dangerous_o sick_a and_o by_o the_o advice_n of_o physician_n the_o superior_n of_o his_o order_n see_v that_o the_o air_n of_o that_o city_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o he_o make_v he_o general_a visitor_n of_o the_o order_n in_o that_o office_n he_o so_o demean_v himself_o that_o good_a man_n much_o commend_v his_o integrity_n constancy_n and_o gravity_n and_o other_o fear_v he_o yet_o dare_v not_o discover_v their_o malice_n not_o long_o after_o in_o a_o public_a convention_n of_o that_o order_n he_o be_v make_v prior_n of_o a_o monastery_n in_o luca_n some_o consent_v unto_o this_o promotion_n out_o of_o love_n other_o think_v it_o will_v be_v his_o ruin_n because_o of_o a_o enmity_n between_o florence_n and_o luca._n but_o he_o engage_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n there_o that_o he_o be_v no_o less_o belove_v than_o if_o he_o have_v be_v bear_v among_o they_o in_o that_o college_n be_v many_o learned_a man_n and_o hopeful_a youth_n and_o he_o take_v care_n that_o the_o young_a sort_n be_v instruct_v in_o the_o three_o language_n for_o which_o end_n he_o have_v paul_n lacisius_fw-la of_o verona_n to_o read_v latin_a celsus_n martinengus_n to_o read_v greek_a and_o immanuel_n tremellius_n the_o hebrew_n and_o for_o divinity_n he_o himself_o daily_o expound_v the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n and_o every_o night_n before_o supper_n he_o expound_v a_o part_n of_o the_o psalm_n very_o many_o of_o the_o city_n of_o the_o senator_n and_o nobility_n resort_v unto_o his_o lectur_n and_o he_o preach_v public_o every_o lord_n day_n the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n can_v not_o endure_v he_o and_o lay_v snare_n for_o he_o nor_o can_v conceil_v their_o malice_n when_o he_o be_v admonish_v by_o his_o friend_n he_o choose_v to_o leave_v they_o and_o go_v to_o strawsburgh_n what_o fruit_n his_o teach_n bring_v forth_o may_v be_v know_v by_o this_o that_o in_o one_o year_n space_n after_o his_o departure_n eighteen_o fellow_n of_o that_o college_n leave_v it_o and_o go_v into_o the_o reform_a place_n among_o who_o be_v celsus_n martinengus_n afterward_o minister_n of_o the_o italian_a church_n in_o geneva_n hieron_n zanchius_n im._n tremellius_n etc._n etc._n many_o citizen_n also_o go_v into_o exile_n voluntary_o that_o they_o may_v enjoy_v the_o truth_n in_o safety_n exit_fw-la vita_fw-la ●e_n martyris_fw-la another_o instance_n be_v in_o bonnonia_n in_o the_o year_n 1554._o the_o pope_n governor_n attempt_v to_o make_v innovation_n there_o which_o the_o people_n will_v not_o receive_v contrary_a to_o their_o former_a law_n the_o innovator_n say_v they_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o former_a law_n but_o have_v authority_n from_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v king_n of_o the_o country_n and_o may_v change_v statute_n and_o ordinance_n without_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n against_o this_o tyranny_n both_o the_o learned_a man_n and_o the_o people_n oppose_v themselves_o and_o in_o the_o monastery_n of_o the_o black_a friar_n be_v a_o general_a convention_n where_o thomas_n de_fw-fr finola_n rector_n of_o the_o university_n set_v forth_o this_o position_n all_o ruler_n whether_o supreme_a or_o inferior_a may_v and_o shall_v be_v reform_v or_o bridle_v to_o speak_v moderate_o by_o they_o by_o who_o they_o be_v choose_v confirm_v or_o admit_v to_o their_o office_n so_o oft_o as_o they_o break_v that_o promise_n make_v by_o oath_n unto_o their_o subject_n because_o the_o prince_n be_v no_o less_o bind_v by_o oath_n unto_o their_o subject_n then_o be_v the_o subject_n unto_o their_o prince_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v keep_v and_o reform_v equal_o according_a to_o law_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o oath_n that_o be_v make_v by_o either_o party_n vicen●ius_n de_fw-fr placentia_n sustain_v this_o position_n and_o when_o all_o reason_n that_o the_o pope_n governor_n can_v allege_v be_v hear_v the_o pope_n be_v fain_o to_o take_v up_o the_o matter_n and_o do_v promise_v not_o only_o to_o keep_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o people_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v neither_o abrogate_v any_o ancient_a statute_n nor_o make_v any_o new_a one_o without_o their_o consent_n the_o histor_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o scotland_n pag_n 399_o edit_v edinburgh_n 1644._o which_o be_v write_v by_o jo._n knox_n albeit_o somesentence_n have_v be_v add_v by_o another_o after_o he_o at_o that_o time_n john_n craig_n a_o scotish_n man_n who_o afterward_o be_v minister_n of_o edinburgh_n of_o who_o mention_n be_v make_v hereafter_o be_v a_o monk_n and_o consider_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o work_n do_v not_o approve_v it_o and_o show_v unto_o a_o old_a monk_n his_o argument_n in_o the_o contrary_n the_o old_a man_n say_v it_o be_v true_a as_o you_o say_v but_o be_v silent_a lest_o you_o fall_v into_o danger_n for_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a but_o such_o be_v the_o man_n zeal_n unto_o truth_n that_o he_o can_v not_o contain_v himself_o and_o for_o this_o and_o other_o thing_n that_o he_o teach_v he_o be_v carry_v to_o rome_n and_o cast_v into_o prison_n with_o many_o hundred_o more_o in_o the_o time_n of_o paul_n 3_o but_o they_o all_o escape_v that_o night_n of_o the_o pope_n death_n when_o the_o citizen_n break_v up_o the_o prison_n xlix_o john_n a_o lasco_n a_o noble_a man_n of_o poland_n intend_v to_o see_v other_o nation_n go_v to_o zurik_v there_o he_o be_v easy_o persuade_v by_o zuinglius_fw-la to_o betake_v himself_o poland_n reformation_n in_o poland_n to_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n and_o where_o as_o he_o may_v have_v be_v advance_v unto_o honour_n in_o his_o native_a country_n yet_o such_o be_v his_o love_n to_o christ_n and_o hatred_n to_o popery_n that_o he_o choose_v to_o embrace_v that_o religion_n which_o have_v its_o soundation_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o year_n 1542._o he_o be_v call_v to_o be_v pastor_n at_o embden_n the_o next_o year_n anna_n the_o widow_n countess_n of_o oldenburgh_n invite_v he_o to_o reform_v the_o church_n there_o which_o he_o endeavour_v with_o great_a diligence_n afterward_o edward_n king_n of_o england_n send_v by_o information_n of_o cranmer_n for_o he_o to_o be_v preacher_n unto_o a_o dutch_a church_n at_o london_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o queen_n mary_n he_o obtain_v leave_v to_o return_v beyond_o sea_n a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o congregation_n go_v with_o he_o and_o martin_n micron_n another_o preacher_n to_o copenhagen_n but_o the_o king_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o stay_v within_o his_o kingdom_n unless_o they_o will_v embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n concern_v the_o local_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o use_v the_o ceremony_n ordain_v by_o he_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n they_o be_v refuse_v by_o the_o hans-town_n and_o church_n of_o saxony_n at_o last_o that_o vex_a congregation_n be_v receive_v at_o embden_n then_o he_o will_v visit_v his_o own_o country_n after_o twenty_o year_n absence_n there_o he_o find_v many_o affect_v a_o reformation_n but_o few_o preacher_n the_o popish_a clergy_n seek_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o destroy_v he_o or_o to_o have_v he_o banish_v and_o they_o accuse_v he_o unto_o the_o king_n for_o a_o heretic_n the_o king_n say_v though_o they_o call_v he_o a_o heretic_n yet_o the_o state_n have_v not_o decern_v so_o and_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o clear_v himself_o from_o such_o imputation_n in_o the_o year_n 1557._o a_o parliament_n be_v assemble_v at_o warsaw_n there_o be_v great_a contention_n for_o religion_n the_o prince_n who_o they_o call_v vaivode_n crave_v that_o the_o augustan_n confession_n shall_v be_v establish_v the_o bishop_n strive_v against_o it_o so_o that_o the_o prince_n can_v not_o obtain_v any_o liberty_n nevertheless_o after_o the_o parliament_n they_o cause_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v preach_v in_o their_o own_o province_n without_o the_o king_n permission_n john_n á_z las●o_o impugn_a the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o local_a presence_n and_o cause_v the_o truth_n which_o the_o adversary_n call_v calvinisme_n to_o be_v receive_v by_o many_o and_o unto_o this_o day_n that_o church_n be_v miserable_o rend_v the_o king_n and_o most_o part_n be_v popish_a many_o be_v anabaptist_n few_o be_v ubiquitary_n yet_o a_o great_a many_o hold_n constant_o the_o sound_a truth_n l._n when_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n have_v subdue_v the_o sarracen_n who_o have_v continue_v netherlands_o the_o reformation_n in_o the_o netherlands_o there_o some_o hundred_o year_n and_o expel_v they_o out_o of_o the_o realm_n many_o of_o they_o not_o willing_a to_o leave_v the_o country_n feign_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n and_o afterward_o they_o be_v convince_v to_o despise_v
and_o so_o to_o drive_v unto_o christ_n in_o who_o god_n have_v promise_v his_o favour_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n unto_o all_o that_o repent_v and_o consent_n to_o the_o law_n that_o it_o be_v good_a if_o thou_o believe_v the_o promise_n then_o do_v god_n truth_n justify_v thou_o that_o be_v forgive_v thou_o and_o receive_v thou_o to_o favour_n for_o christ_n sake_n in_o assurance_n where_o of_o and_o to_o certify_v thy_o heart_n he_o seal_v thou_o with_o the_o spirit_n eph._n 1._o &_o fol._n 54._o peter_n in_o act._n 2._o practise_v his_o key_n and_o by_o preach_v the_o law_n bring_v the_o people_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o themselves_o and_o bind_v their_o conscience_n so_o that_o they_o be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o say_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v then_o bring_v he_o forth_o the_o key_n of_o the_o sweet_a promise_n say_v repent_v and_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n ......_o as_o christ_n compare_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n unto_o key_n so_o compare_v he_o it_o to_o a_o net_n and_o unto_o leaven_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n for_o certain_a property_n i_o marvel_v therefore_o that_o they_o boast_v not_o of_o their_o net_n &_o leaven_n aswell_o as_o of_o their_o key_n but_o as_o christ_n bid_v we_o bewar_n of_o the_o leven_a of_o the_o pharisee_n so_o beware_v of_o their_o counterfit_v key_n fol._n 56._o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n will_v prove_v by_o moses_n &_o aaron_n that_o satan_n and_o antichrist_n our_o most_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n and_o head_n of_o christ_n church_n moses_n say_v he_o signify_v christ_n and_o aaron_n the_o pope_n and_o yet_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o hebr._n prove_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o old_a law_n signify_v christ_n and_o his_o offering_n and_o his_o go_v once_o in_o the_o year_n into_o the_o inner_a temple_n signify_v the_o offering_n wherewith_o christ_n offer_v himself_o and_o christ_n going-in_a to_o the_o father_n to_o be_v a_o everlasting_a mediator_n or_o intercessor_n for_o we_o ......_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v signify_v by_o aaron_n and_o christ_n by_o moses_n why_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n as_o well_o content_a with_o christ_n law_n &_o doctrine_n as_o aaron_n be_v with_o moses_n why_o do_v our_o bb_n preach_v the_o pope_n and_o no●_n christ_n see_v the_o apostle_n preach_v not_o peter_n but_o christ_n paul_n speak_v of_o himself_o and_o of_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n say_v we_o preach_v not_o ourselves_o but_o christ_n jesus_n the_o lord_n and_z we_o preach_v ourselves_o your_o servant_n for_o christ_n sake_n etc._n etc._n for_o such_o doctrine_n tindall_n be_v persecute_v and_o when_o he_o escape_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n into_o germany_n they_o burn_v the_o new_a testament_n that_o he_o have_v translate_v into_o english_a and_o they_o cause_v the_o master_n of_o lovan_n to_o burn_v his_o body_n an._n 1535._o ii_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o speak_v more_o of_o the_o gross_a ignorance_n and_o wickedness_n martyr_n pa._n hamilton_n a_o scotish_n martyr_n of_o the_o clergy_n &_o people_n at_o that_o time_n unless_o i●_n fall_v in_o by_o the_o by_o but_o behold_v how_o god_n bring_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n into_o this_o island_n i_o may_v say_v wonderful_o first_o patrick_n hamilton_n a_o young_a gentleman_n be_v make_v abbot_n of_o ferne_n and_o then_o he_o will_v go_v and_o see_v other_o country_n and_o in_o his_o travel_n he_o visit_n witemberg_n and_o there_o he_o hear_v luther_n melanthon_n &_o other_o he_o have_v little_a or_o no_o understanding_n before_o and_o hearken_v unto_o they_o and_o take_v it_o to_o heart_n he_o return_v ●ome_o in_o the_o 23._o year_n of_o his_o age_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o year_n 1526._o in_o what_o company_n he_o come_v he_o spare_v not_o to_o speak_v against_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o declare_v the_o truth_n as_o he_o have_v learn_v it_o the_o clergy_n can_v not_o endure_v this_o and_o under_o colour_n of_o conference_n they_o entice_v he_o unto_o santan_n drew_v they_o have_v persuade_v the_o young_a king_n james_n 5._o to_o go_v in_o pilgrimage_n to_o s._n duthess_n in_o rosse_n lest_o he_o shall_v hinder_v their_o proceed_n in_o the_o night_n time_n patrick_n hamilton_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o chamber_n where_o he_o be_v lodge_v and_o carry_v into_o the_o castle_n the_o next_o day_n he_o be_v present_v before_o the_o arch_a bishop_n james_n be●on_n and_o accuse_v upon_o these_o article_n the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n remain_v in_o child_n after_o baptism_n 2._o no_o charge_n the_o article_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n man_n by_o the_o power_n of_o free_a will_n can_v do_v any_o good_a 3._o no_o man_n be_v without_o sin_n so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v 4._o every_o true_a christian_a may_v know_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o estate_n of_o grace_n 5._o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n but_o by_o faith_n only_o 6._o good_a work_n make_v not_o a_o good_a man_n but_o a_o good_a man_n do_v good_a work_n and_o a_o ill_a man_n do_v ill_a work_n yet_o the_o same_o ill_a if_o true_o repent_v make_v not_o a_o ill_a man_n 7._o i'faith_o hope_n &_o charity_n be_v so_o link_v together_o that_o he_o who_o have_v one_o of_o they_o have_v all_o and_o who_o lack_v one_o of_o they_o lack_v all_o 8._o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o he_o withdraw_v his_o grace_n from_o man_n and_o grace_n be_v withdraw_v he_o can_v not_o but_o sin_n 9_o it_o be_v a_o devilish_a doctrine_n to_o teach_v that_o by_o any_o actual_a penance_n remission_n of_o sin_n be_v purchase_v 10_o auricular_a confession_n it_o not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 11._o there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n 12._o the_o holy_a patriarch_n be_v in_o heaven_n before_o christ●_n passion_n 13._o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o every_o priest_n have_v as_o much_o power_n as_o the_o pope_n he_o be_v demand_v what_o he_o think_v of_o these_o article_n he_o answer_v ●_o hold_v the_o first_o seven_o to_o be_v undoubted_o true_a and_o the_o other_o be_v disputable_a point_n nor_o can_v i_o condemn_v they_o unless_o i_o see_v better_a reason_n than_o as_o yet_o i_o have_v hear_v after_o some_o conference_n with_o he_o these_o article_n be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o rectour_n of_o the_o university_n who_o with_o other_o twelve_o as_o they_o be_v call_v divine_n &_o lawyer_n have_v censure_v and_o condemn_v they_o as_o heretical_a redeliver_v they_o within_o two_o day_n in_o a_o solemn_a meeting_n march_n 2._o year_n 1527._o of_o the_o two_o archbb_n three_o bb_n six_o abbot_n and_o priour_o and_o eight_o divine_n these_o all_o set_v their_o hand_n unto_o the_o sentence_n and_o the_o ●ame_n day_n pa._n hamilton_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o secular_a judge_n and_o burn_v in_o the_o afternoon_n when_o this_o execution_n be_v report_v many_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v inquire_v why_o be_v such_o a_o man_n burn_v and_o when_o they_o hear_v of_o the_o article_n they_o talk_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o and_o many_o do_v apprehend_v otherwise_o then_o be_v judge_v church_n the_o blood_n of_o a_o martyr_n 〈…〉_o seed_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o university_n these_o article_n take_v a_o deep_a impression_n yea_o and_o many_o friar_n beg●n_n in_o their_o sermon_n to_o comdemn_v the_o error_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o clergy_n thus_o god_n make_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o one_o man_n to_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o spread_v the_o truth_n unto_o many_o in_o time_n of_o that_o lent_n alex._n seton_n a_o dominican_n preach_v oft_o in_o santandrewes_n the_o substance_n of_o his_o sermon_n be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o righteousness_n if_o god_n law_n be_v not_o violate_v no_o sin_n be_v commit_v it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n power_n to_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v no_o way_n purchase_v but_o by_o unfeigned_a repentance_n and_o true_a faith_n apprehend_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o purgatory_n pilgrimage_n prayer_n to_o saint_n merit_n nor_o miracle_n as_o the_o friar_n be_v wont_a therefore_o he_o be_v suspect_v of_o heresy_n before_o the_o lent_n be_v finish_v he_o go_v to_o dundy_n and_o there_o he_o be_v advertise_v that_o another_o dominican_n have_v public_o contradict_v his_o former_a doctrine_n without_o delay_n he_o return_v and_o in_o a_o sermon_n confirm_v what_o he_o have_v teach_v before_o and_o moreover_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o virtue_n that_o be_v require_v of_o a_o faithful_a bishop_n and_o make_v this_o use_n of_o they_o within_o scotland_n be_v no_o true_a bishop_n if_o they_o be_v examine_v by_o those_o note_n which_o
with_o great_a audience_n than_o ever_o he_o have_v before_o there_o the_o earl_n marshal_n glencairn_n and_o other_o advise_v he_o to_o write_v unto_o the_o regent_n a_o exhortation_n unto_o the_o hear_n of_o god_n word_n he_o obe●et●_n they_o but_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a he_o be_v call_v by_o his_o flock_n at_o frankford_n to_o return_v he_o go_v against_o the_o mind_n of_o many_o but_o promise_v to_o return_v if_o they_o abide_v constant_a in_o the_o truth_n then_o the_o bishop_n summon_v he_o again_o for_o no-compearance_a they_o burn_v he_o in_o effigy_n at_o the_o cross_n of_o edinburgh_n in_o july_n an._n 1556._o he_o write_v his_o appeal_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v print_v and_o direct_v it_o unto_o the_o nobility_n and_o commons_o of_o scotland_n william_n harlaw_n preach_v public_o in_o edinburgh_n so_o do_v john_n douglas_n a_o carmelite_n and_o sometime_o in_o lie_v paul_n meffin_n preach_v ordinary_o in_o dundy_n and_o many_o leave_v the_o cloister_n preach_v in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o country_n and_o the_o number_n of_o professor_n of_o reformation_n be_v multiply_v when_o the_o priest_n see_v that_o they_o be_v much_o desert_v they_o complain_v unto_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o bishop_n judge_v it_o vain_a to_o summon_v these_o preacher_n for_o heresy_n therefore_o they_o complain_v unto_o the_o regent_n and_o accuse_v the_o preacher_n of_o mutiny_n and_o sedition_n the_o regent_n know_v that_o the_o multitude_n of_o all_o sort_n be_v earnest_a that_o way_n and_o say_v it_o be_v safe_a to_o delay_v for_o a_o time_n all_o contrary_a course_n let_v the_o heretic_n have_v some_o way_n and_o we_o shall_v wait_v our_o opportunity_n buchan_n hist_o lib._n 16._o v._o after_o the_o death_n of_o king_n henry_n follow_v a_o bless_a reformation_n in_o edward_n public_a reformation_n in_o england_n under_o king_n edward_n england_n for_o he_o have_v cause_v his_o young_a son_n edward_n to_o be_v well_o instruct_v by_o do._n cox_n and_o edward_n l._n herford_n who_o then_o be_v call_v protector_n of_o england_n and_o duke_n of_o somerset_n both_o love_v the_o reformation_n and_o do_v his_o endeavour_n that_o the_o true_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v shine_v everywhere_o he_o have_v a_o good_a helper_n tho._n cranmer_n archb_n of_o canterbury_n the_o king_n also_o be_v of_o singular_a gift_n above_o his_o age_n one_o of_o the_o rare_a prince_n that_o have_v be_v in_o many_o age_n yea_o it_o be_v doubt_v if_o ever_o he_o have_v a_o equal_a in_o prudence_n beside_o his_o knowledge_n of_o science_n and_o language_n greek_a latin_a and_o french_a so_o he_o as_o another_o josias_n purge_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o popish_a idolatry_n and_o false_a invocation_n and_o will_v have_v bring_v it_o to_o great_a perfection_n if_o time_n and_o life_n have_v answer_v unto_o his_o godly_a purpose_n it_o may_v be_v easy_o conceive_v how_o difficult_a it_o be_v to_o reform_v all_o thing_n at_o the_o first_o when_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o privy_a counsel_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o nobility_n be_v open_a or_o close_a papist_n but_o his_o purpose_n be_v not_o to_o leave_v one_o hoo●e_v of_o the_o romish_a beast_n and_o do_v forbid_v that_o the_o mass_n shall_v be_v permit_v unto_o his_o sister_n in_o ●_o be_v first_o year_n by_o authority_n of_o parliament_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v administer_v unto_o the_o people_n with_o both_o element_n and_o cranmer_n do_v translate_v and_o in_o some_o measure_n purge_v the_o missal_n and_o breviary_n in_o the_o second_o year_n that_o book_n under_o the_o name_n the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n be_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n to_o be_v use_v in_o all_o church_n and_o chapel_n and_o that_o none_o practice_v nor_o speak_v against_o it_o nor_o any_o part_n of_o it_o provide_v also_o that_o they_o who_o be_v acquaint_v with_o other_o language_n may_v use_v that_o which_o they_o understand_v best_a in_o chapel_n but_o not_o in_o parish-church_n in_o this_o three_o year_n a_o act_n be_v make_v against_o all_o book_n call_v antiphoner_n missal_n graile_n processional_n manual_n legend_n pie_n portuiss_n paimer_n and_o other_o book_n whatsoever_o use_v before_o for_o service_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o english_a or_o latin_a other_o than_o be_v then_o or_o after_o shall_v be_v set_v forth_o by_o the_o king_n item_n against_o all_o image_n of_o stone_n timber_n alabaster_n or_o earth_n grave_v carve_a or_o paint_v in_o any_o church_n or_o chapel_n except_o only_a image_n or_o picture_n upon_o any_o tomb_n for_o monument_n only_o of_o any_o person_n which_o have_v be_v of_o good_a reputation_n the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n be_v some_o what_o amend_v in_o the_o year_n 1552._o he_o put_v the_o popish_a bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o silence_n and_o remove_v they_o from_o their_o benefice_n bo●er_o bishop_n of_o london_n be_v remove_v and_o for_o contumacy_n be_v condemn_v to_o perpetual_a prison_n in_o the_o tower_n and_o do._n ridley_n become_v bishop_n of_o london_n gardener_z be_v depose_v from_o winchester_n etc._n etc._n but_o he_o kill_v none_o yea_o when_o the_o counsel_n will_v persuade_v he_o to_o burn_v a_o woman_n joan_n butcher_n he_o say_v what_o will_v you_o send_v she_o quick_a to_o the_o devil_n in_o her_o error_n when_o the_o reformation_n be_v first_o intend_v a_o general_a visitation_n of_o the_o bishopric_n be_v make_v by_o certain_a prudent_a and_o learned_a man_n which_o be_v appoint_v commissioner_n for_o several_a diocy_n and_o unto_o every_o company_n two_o or_o three_o preacher_n be_v adjoin_v to_o preach_v at_o every_o session_n and_o dehort_v the_o people_n from_o their_o wont_a superstition_n and_o inform_v they_o in_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o they_o may_v proceed_v the_o more_o orderly_o in_o their_o comm●ssions_n or_o visitation_n 32_o person_n as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n viii_o be_v appoint_v to_o prescribe_v certain_a instruction_n and_o order_n of_o visitation_n the_o trouble_n in_o germany_n at_o that_o time_n do_v contribute_v by_o the_o gracious_a providence_n of_o god_n to_o the_o furtherance_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o england_n tho._n cranmer_n by_o letter_n bring_v martin_n bucer_n paul_n fagius_n peter_n martyr_n and_o other_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o year_n 1548_o and_o 1549_o their_o come_n be_v most_o acceptable_a unto_o the_o king_n &_o country_n fagius_n a_o expert_a hebrician_n and_o bucer_n be_v send_v to_o be_v doctor_n in_o cambridge_n and_o martyr_n be_v design_v reader_n of_o divinity_n in_o oxford_n but_o as_o theod._n beza_n in_o ●esp_n ad_fw-la fr._n balduin_n vol._n 1._o tractat._n pag._n 322_o edit_fw-la an._n 1570._o have_v observe_v in_o epist_n buceri_fw-la da●ed_v cantabrig_n januar._n 12_o an._n 1550_o concern_v the_o purity_n of_o rite_n the_o advice_n of_o no_o foreigner_n be_v seek_v what_o they_o can_v do_v they_o do_v not_o fail_v both_o by_o word_n and_o write_v to_o advise_v the_o people_n to_o choose_v good_a pastor_n and_o to_o endeavour_v more_o purity_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o rite_n but_o some_o through_o man_n wisdom_n and_o vanish_v thought_n will_v glue_v god_n and_o belial_n with_o the_o leaven_n of_o antichrist_n and_o john_n à_fw-fr lasco_n a_o polonian_a be_v then_o a_o preacher_n of_o a_o dutch_a congregation_n in_o london_n he_o in_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ecclesiastico_fw-la ordine_fw-la say_v that_o most_o holy_a king_n be_v desirous_a to_o have_v the_o whole_a religion_n so_o reform_v throughout_o a●●_n the_o king_n ●om_n that_o he_o be_v careful_a of_o no_o other_o thing_n almost_o but_o because_o some_o law_n of_o the_o country_n be_v in_o the_o way_n that_o the_o public_a rite_n of_o divine_a worship_n especial_o which_o have_v be_v in_o use_n under_o popery_n can_v not_o be_v purge_v out_o as_o the_o king_n himself_o will_v and_o i_o be_v instant_a for_o the_o foreign_a church_n it_o please_v they_o at_o last_o that_o the_o public_a rite_n shall_v be_v purge_v out_o of_o the_o english_a church_n by_o degree_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o can_v by_o the_o law_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n foreigner_n which_o in_o this_o respect_n be_v not_o so_o tie_v unto_o these_o law_n of_o the_o country_n shall_v order_v their_o church_n free_o and_o without_o any_o respect_n unto_o the_o rite_n of_o t●e_v country_n if_o their_o doctrine_n be_v only_o apostolical_a for_o so_o it_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o english_a church_n also_o may_v be_v move_v by_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o estate_n to_o embrace_v the_o apostolical_a purity_n and_o some_o take_v t●_n be_v so_o ill_a that_o they_o do_v strive_v against_o the_o k●_n purpose_n so_o far_o he_o yea_o they_o do_v so_o strive_v and_o be_v so_o malicious_a that_o they_o do_v accuse_v the_o duke_n of_o
the_o french_a bishop_n have_v fight_v a_o long_a time_n the_o council'_v authority_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o may_v have_v help_v it_o easy_o if_o he_o have_v use_v the_o phrase_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n 2_o in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o counsel_n authority_n he_o have_v permit_v in_o all_o the_o decree_n a_o reservation_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v and_o the_o crave_n of_o confirmation_n of_o the_o decree_n and_o sundry_a other_o particulares_fw-la as_o also_o the_o centumviral_n court_n of_o paris_n object_v other_o particulares_fw-la but_o all_o concern_v those_o which_o be_v call_v the_o article_n of_o reformation_n his_o defence_n be_v what_o can_v he_o and_o six_o prelate_n do_v against_o 200._o and_o there_o be_v a_o special_a act_n that_o nothing_o be_v do_v in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o france_n vidus_fw-la faber_n reply_v that_o he_o and_o his_o colleague_n have_v diligent_o seek_v that_o act_n but_o can_v not_o find_v it_o and_o in_o humane_a affair_n not_o to_o appear_v be_v not_o to_o be_v but_o all_o those_o objection_n be_v nothing_o to_o what_o the_o bishop_n and_o divine_n and_o their_o servant_n tell_v scurrilous_o of_o the_o contention_n and_o faction_n of_o the_o father_n and_o their_o particular_a design_n and_o general_o this_o council_n be_v of_o more_o authority_n than_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n see_v these_o define_v nothing_o but_o what_o seem_v good_a unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o synod_n lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o their_o decree_n visum_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la in_o germany_n both_o papist_n and_o protestant_n object_v more_o against_o the_o canon_n of_o doctrine_n as_o they_o command_v the_o bishop_n to_o teach_v wholesome_a doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n without_o any_o declaration_n what_o that_o doctrine_n be_v the_o council_n be_v assemble_v especial_o for_o the_o grievance_n against_o indulgence_n and_o they_o have_v define_v nothing_o but_o wish_v moderation_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a and_o approve_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n albeit_o in_o the_o eastern_a church_n be_v never_o use_v of_o those_o indulgence_n nor_o in_o the_o western_a before_o vrban_n 2._o or_o the_o year_n 1095._o so_o far_o as_o any_o man_n can_v find_v and_o after_o that_o until_o the_o year_n 1300._o be_v little_o use_v of_o they_o or_o but_o for_o freedom_n of_o the_o confessar_n injunction_n likewise_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o bavier_n send_v letter_n several_o unto_o rome_n crave_v liberty_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o of_o marriage_n unto_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o clergy_n of_o germany_n send_v three_o remonstrance_n show_v a_o necessity_n of_o grant_v liberty_n of_o marriage_n by_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o of_o the_o eastern_a church_n unto_o this_o day_n as_o it_o be_v never_o more_o necessary_a then_o at_o this_o time_n when_o among_o fifty_o priest_n one_o scarce_o can_v be_v find_v who_o be_v not_o a_o notorious_a whoor-monger_n and_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o permit_v whorish_a priest_n and_o exclude_v the_o marry_a and_o to_o exclude_v they_o both_o be_v as_o if_o you_o will_v have_v none_o the_o pope_n refer_v these_o letter_n unto_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o they_o will_v not_o ●eeld_v march_n 12._o the_o pope_n promote_v 19_o cardinal_n in_o reward_n of_o their_o service_n in_o the_o council_n unto_o the_o apostolical_a see_v and_o he_o will_v not_o promote_v any_o who_o have_v speak_v for_o residence_n of_o bishop_n or_o that_o their_o institution_n be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la so_o far_o pe._n soave_fw-it in_fw-it hist._n conti._n trident._n likewise_o ge._n abbot_n write_v against_o hill_n in_o reas_n 9_o show_n out_o of_o declarat_fw-la du_fw-fr roy_fw-fr de_fw-fr navarr_n that_o charles_n ix_o send_v his_o ambassador_n and_o bishop_n unto_o trent_n with_o large_a instruction_n for_o reformation_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o when_o nothing_o can_v be_v obtain_v he_o cause_v his_o ambassador_n protest_v against_o the_o council_n and_o return_v home_o so_o they_o do_v and_o those_o bishop_n come_v also_o away_o and_o nevertheless_o among_o the_o subscriber_n be_v mention_v of_o 26_o french_a prelate_n as_o if_o they_o have_v subscribe_v there_o it_o be_v also_o that_o after_o the_o massacre_n in_o the_o year_n 1572._o some_o think_v that_o to_o be_v a_o opportunity_n of_o seek_v confirmation_n of_o the_o synod_n do_v propound_v it_o but_o it_o be_v refuse_v in_o all_o the_o chamber_n the_o like_a motion_n be_v make_v an._n 1585._o and_o with_o the_o same_o hap_n the_o reform_a write_v against_o the_o decree_n namely_o calvin_n write_v his_o antidotum_fw-la against_o the_o act_n under_o pope_n paul_n and_o chemnitius_n write_v against_o they_o all_o and_o call_v they_o a_o horrible_a chaos_n of_o monstrous_a error_n here_o by_o anticipation_n it_o may_v be_v add_v that_o the_o jesuit_n be_v employ_v as_o stout_a champion_n at_o rheims_n douai_n and_o lovan_n to_o maintain_v the_o decree_n who_o carry_v themselves_o so_o happy_o that_o for_o defence_n of_o these_o error_n they_o vent_v many_o other_o that_o be_v scarce_o hear_v before_o last_o card._n bellarmin_n as_o the_o chief_a champion_n and_o other_o of_o that_o college_n at_o rome_n be_v command_v by_o pope_n gregory_n xiii_o to_o bring_v all_o the_o controversy_n into_o one_o body_n or_o system_v that_o work_n bring_v forth_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n a_o threefold_a benefit_n unto_o posterity_n 1._o a_o more_o perfect_a body_n of_o popish_a error_n then_o ever_o be_v publish_v before_o 2._o a_o manifest_a proof_n of_o the_o jarring_n and_o division_n of_o the_o doctor_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o albeit_o they_o glory_v of_o unity_n among_o themselves_o yet_o in_o every_o controversy_n almost_o yea_o very_o few_o except_v the_o contrary_a judgement_n of_o their_o doctor_n be_v bring_v express_o 3._o albeit_o all_o the_o error_n of_o trent_n be_v maintain_v there_o exprofesso_fw-la and_o many_o error_n be_v false_o impute_v unto_o luther_n calvin_n and_o other_o yet_o there_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v fair_o clear_v from_o many_o error_n which_o other_o papist_n impute_v false_o unto_o we_o and_o more_o over_o sometime_o in_o sift_v and_o state_v a_o question_n he_o maintain_v what_o we_o hold_v and_o refute_v another_o and_o maintain_v what_o he_o deny_v in_o the_o proper_a place_n and_o by_o those_o two_o mean_n he_o give_v testimony_n unto_o the_o truth_n in_o all_o the_o chief_a controversy_n as_o jo._n ernest_n gerhard_n have_v collect_v in_o his_o book_n bellarminus_n orthodoxias_n testis_fw-la and_o about_o that_o time_n come_v forth_o another_o edition_n of_o the_o decree_n at_o trent_n with_o reference_n upon_o the_o margin_n of_o each_o canon_n unto_o other_o book_n of_o the_o schoolman_n where_o to_o find_v those_o point_n handle_v and_o those_o reference_n be_v publish_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o court_n may_v serve_v for_o a_o commentary_n without_o any_o change_n of_o the_o decree_n if_o it_o shall_v be_v challenge_v even_o though_o the_o reference_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n part_n iij_o chap._n j._n of_o pope_n j._n pius_fw-la 5._o be_v not_o inferior_a unto_o any_o pope_n in_o dissemble_v in_o some_o outward_a thing_n he_o make_v a_o show_n of_o godliness_n when_o he_o be_v crow_v he_o say_v unto_o the_o cardd_n that_o they_o shall_v ask_v nothing_o from_o he_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o equity_n or_o to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n he_o bring_v some_o of_o the_o court_n namely_o the_o penitentiaries_n and_o procurator_n of_o the_o chancelery_n but_o not_o the_o cardd_n into_o some_o moderation_n he_o most_o severe_o discharge_v all_o sell_v of_o benefice_n he_o restrain_v the_o wickedness_n of_o priest_n some_o what_o he_o will_v have_v all_o the_o jew_n dwell_v at_o rome_n or_o ancona_n he_o will_v have_v expel_v all_o the_o profess_a whore_n out_o of_o rome_n but_o when_o the_o roman_n show_v he_o what_o a_o part_n of_o his_o revenue_n he_o will_v want_v he_o suffer_v they_o in_o a_o corner_n by_o themselves_o and_o appoint_v unto_o they_o their_o own_o preacher_n and_o thereafter_o some_o bordeller_n be_v marry_v but_o in_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o idolatrous_a worship_n he_o make_v no_o reformation_n he_o give_v licence_n unto_o charles_n a_o archduke_n of_o austria_n to_o marry_v his_o sisters-daughter_n and_o when_o joachim-frederik_n son_n of_o the_o electour_n of_o brandeburg_n marry_v the_o daughter_n of_o his_o uncle_n the_o pope_n rage_v partly_o because_o he_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n judgement_n a_o heretic_n and_o partly_o because_o he_o be_v choose_v primate_n of_o germany_n and_o administrator_n of_o the_o episcopal_a college_n of_o magdeburg_n without_o licence_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o then_o have_v marry_v his_o
none_o so_o the_o reform_a religion_n only_o have_v place_n in_o the_o church_n the_o province_n of_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n hold_v their_o first_o synod_n at_o dort_n an._n 1574._o and_o all_o the_o seven_o have_v their_o first_o synod_n at_o middelburgh_n an._n 1578._o in_o which_o they_o do_v agree_v on_o the_o order_n in_o the_o church_n concern_v which_o two_o synod_n i_o shall_v subjoin_v the_o word_n of_o the_o provincial_a synod_n of_o south_n and_o north_n holland_n hold_v at_o harlem_n in_o the_o year_n 1582._o as_o a_o summary_n of_o they_o both_o and_o of_o other_o particulares_fw-la these_o be_v the_o almighty_a and_o merciful_a god_n have_v in_o the_o year_n 1566._o under_o the_o sad_a affliction_n which_o be_v then_o prepare_v for_o the_o netherlands_o gracious_o show_v a_o blink_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o gospel_n until_o this_o time_n here_o and_o there_o in_o private_a preach_n but_o the_o world_n unthankfulness_n and_o sin_n do_v they_o turn_v away_o that_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o many_o honest_a person_n when_o other_o flee_v the_o land_n do_v ready_o suffer_v the_o spanish_a tyranny_n over_o the_o land_n through_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n whereby_o not_o only_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o ●he_n true_a religion_n be_v no_o way_n permit_v but_o also_o it_o be_v most_o strict_o forbid_v in_o private_a and_o punish_v with_o intolerable_a edict_n and_o torment_n nevertheless_o our_o good_a god_n according_a to_o his_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n have_v contrary_a to_o all_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o his_o instrument_n in_o the_o time_n of_o that_o cruel_a persecution_n discover_v by_o many_o more_o and_o more_o the_o idolatry_n superstition_n and_o error_n of_o popery_n and_o do_v enlighthen_v they_o with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n with_o great_a hazart_n of_o their_o good_n body_n and_o life_n and_o they_o pray_v zealous_o unto_o god_n that_o he_o will_v look_v upon_o their_o affliction_n and_o deliver_v they_o as_o at_o last_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v without_o the_o counsel_n and_o wit_n of_o any_o man_n for_o when_o the_o persecution_n be_v come_v to_o the_o high_a those_o who_o have_v see_v with_o their_o eye_n the_o persecution_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n yea_o who_o in_o their_o ignorance_n as_o we_o many_o certain_o think_v at_o least_o of_o many_o have_v willing_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v abuse_v as_o instrument_n thereunto_o that_o those_o i_o say_v have_v resist_v the_o spanish_a government_n and_o refuse_v those_o unreasonable_a exaction_n have_v begin_v to_o consider_v of_o their_o privilege_n and_o former_a liberty_n see_v it_o be_v intend_v not_o only_o to_o root_v out_o the_o true_a religion_n but_o likewise_o to_o bring_v into_o perpetual_a slavery_n all_o the_o indweller_n of_o the_o netherlands_o both_o spiritual_a as_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o speak_v and_o politic_n of_o high_a and_o low_a degree_n citizen_n and_o merchant_n tradesman_n and_o other_o with_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o far_o bring_v after_o that_o our_o just_a supplication_n be_v not_o accept_v nor_o hear_v that_o some_o both_o without_o and_o within_o the_o land_n though_o with_o a_o small_a beginning_n do_v gainstand_v the_o tyranny_n by_o those_o have_v the_o lord_n god_n who_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o in_o this_o age_n of_o the_o world_n of_o his_o mercy_n gather_v unto_o himself_o a_o church_n within_o these_o land_n and_o wrought_v another_o work_n in_o set_v up_o by_o they_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o those_o trouble_v his_o gospel_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v preach_v again_o first_o in_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n which_o when_o many_o who_o hethertil_v know_v nothing_o of_o the_o gospel_n see_v with_o pleasure_n and_o until_o that_o time_n have_v be_v silent_a for_o they_o be_v slack_a in_o the_o just_a cause_n to_o fight_v for_o the_o privilege_n and_o freedom_n of_o the_o land_n and_o to_o defend_v they_o and_o do_v find_v themselves_o unable_a to_o resist_v they_o who_o love_v the_o gospel_n for_o this_o cause_n those_o people_n be_v willing_a to_o apply_v themselves_o with_o all_o faithfulness_n to_o defend_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o native_a land_n see_v that_o also_o they_o may_v serve_v god_n with_o a_o pure_a conscience_n when_o god_n have_v open_v a_o way_n thereunto_o what_o other_o motive_n be_v to_o join_v unto_o this_o cause_n be_v needless_a to_o repeat_v yea_o god_n have_v give_v the_o grace_n that_o by_o those_o foresay_a mean_n he_o have_v not_o only_o make_v a_o beginning_n of_o maintain_v our_o civil_a liberty_n against_o the_o spanish_a government_n over_o all_o the_o netherlands_o howbeit_o the_o matter_n be_v weak_a and_o miserable_a to_o the_o end_n the_o glory_n of_o our_o deliverance_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o god_n only_o but_o he_o have_v also_o more_o and_o more_o promote_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n by_o adjoin_v the_o lord_n the_o state_n of_o the_o land_n and_o his_o princely_a excellency_n to_o delight_v therein_o and_o as_o some_o have_v adjoin_v themselves_o unto_o the_o christian_a church_n so_o have_v they_o also_o see_v that_o the_o land_n may_v hereby_o by_o the_o better_o defend_v from_o the_o enemy_n receive_v and_o sufficient_o establish_v the_o public_a exercise_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n by_o public_a edict_n and_o other_o furtherance_n and_o so_o popery_n be_v set_v off_o here_o and_o there_o by_o degree_n and_o at_o last_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o be_v forbid_v therefore_o necessary_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v private_o use_v under_o the_o persecution_n must_v be_v make_v know_v unto_o other_o preacher_n who_o be_v accept_v out_o of_o popery_n or_o otherwise_o because_o the_o church_n be_v numerous_a to_o the_o end_n there_o may_v be_v a_o unity_n in_o pure_a doctrine_n and_o uniformity_n of_o service_n and_o the_o church_n and_o their_o leader_n may_v increase_v and_o be_v perfect_v in_o godliness_n of_o conversation_n for_o which_o end_n a_o synod_n or_o assembly_n of_o minister_n and_o elder_n out_o of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o province_n of_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o approbation_n of_o his_o princely_a excellency_n and_o of_o the_o high_a state_n of_o holland_n &_o zeeland_n be_v call_v to_o dort_n where_o after_o conference_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n and_o amend_v of_o some_o enormity_n that_o have_v fall_v out_o a_o form_n of_o administration_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v appoint_v so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v in_o time_n of_o the_o grievous_a war_n where_o with_o these_o land_n be_v then_o burden_v but_o after_o that_o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o some_o person_n be_v drive_v either_o through_o their_o weakness_n or_o through_o dregs_o of_o popery_n or_o of_o any_o other_o sect_n which_o have_v retard_v the_o gospel_n think_v it_o not_o good_a that_o in_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v such_o ordinance_n and_o a_o consistory_n that_o be_v a_o assembly_n of_o minister_n elder_n and_o deacons_n but_o will_v rather_o that_o minister_n shall_v only_o preach_v and_o administrat_fw-la the_o sacrament_n admit_v every_o man_n without_o difference_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v set_v off_o and_o on_o the_o minister_n and_o rule_v the_o church_n as_o they_o shall_v find_v useful_a &_o expedient_a and_o this_o be_v do_v under_o the_o show_n of_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n and_o it_o be_v also_o say_v that_o the_o minister_n be_v begin_v a_o new_a monkery_n whereby_o in_o progress_n of_o time_n they_o will_v become_v master_n over_o the_o magistrate_n as_o it_o be_v in_o popery_n by_o these_o word_n plausible_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o the_o world_n other_o thought_n be_v bring_v upon_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o advancement_n of_o it_o be_v hinder_v but_o these_o have_v not_o consider_v that_o the_o office_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o of_o the_o minister_n be_v distinct_a and_o as_o unto_o the_o magistracy_n which_o be_v a_o service_n of_o god_n belong_v the_o government_n of_o life_n and_o the_o protection_n of_o both_o the_o table_n of_o god_n law_n under_o which_o be_v comprehend_v that_o they_o shall_v advance_v god_n truth_n by_o their_o defence_n and_o maintenance_n so_o unto_o the_o minister_n who_o in_o other_o cause_n be_v subject_a with_o body_n and_o good_n unto_o the_o magistrate_n belong_v their_o proper_a office_n which_o they_o have_v from_o god_n to_o inform_v teach_v stir_v up_o exhort_v and_o move_v the_o conscience_n of_o man_n unto_o holiness_n not_o according_a to_o the_o mind_n or_o will_n of_o any_o man_n but_o after_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o do_v their_o best_a endeavour_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o
the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o other_o thing_n belong_v thereunto_o do_v acknowledge_v neither_o pope_n nor_o any_o humane_a magistracy_n nor_o the_o preacher_n themselves_o for_o head_n and_o lord_n but_o only_o jesus_n christ_n after_o who_o law_n will_n and_o commandment_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v rule_v and_o unto_o who_o both_o preacher_n and_o elder_n and_o deacons_n and_o also_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n of_o whatever_o rank_n shall_v be_v obedient_a but_o it_o be_v longsom_n now_o to_o declare_v this_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o hint_n it_o in_o a_o word_n if_o the_o liberty_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v absolute_o depend_v upon_o the_o magistrate_n and_o their_o command_n a_o great_a confusion_n will_v follow_v the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n may_v soon_o decay_v all_o enormity_n abound_v and_o piety_n will_v fail_v as_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o magistrate_n do_v well_o understand_v and_o may_v know_v yet_o better_o when_o they_o shall_v due_o hear_v the_o answer_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o unjust_a complaint_n of_o some_o who_o seem_v to_o stand_v for_o libertinism_n more_o than_o for_o christian_a liberty_n for_o when_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o their_o complaint_n and_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v find_v true_a they_o with_o their_o write_a and_o print_v remonstrance_n will_v not_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o high_a state_n themselves_o so_o the_o church_n must_v apologise_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n howbeit_o we_o do_v it_o not_o unwilling_o and_o will_v rather_o plead_v it_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o to_o return_v unto_o the_o purpose_n it_o have_v so_o far_o come_v that_o it_o have_v be_v propound_v unto_o his_o princely_a excellency_n and_o the_o high_a state_n as_o reasonable_a that_o in_o no_o town_n or_o willage_n shall_v be_v any_o convention_n or_o consistory_n but_o with_o advice_n of_o the_o magistrate_n of_o the_o town_n or_o of_o the_o state_n by_o which_o the_o meeting_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v bring_v into_o great_a danger_n but_o his_o excellency_n and_o the_o state_n understand_v the_o cause_n better_o have_v establish_v the_o former_a ordinance_n and_o administration_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v see_v that_o the_o church_n have_v increase_v and_o multiply_v afterward_o by_o the_o pacification_n of_o ghent_n and_o by_o the_o death_n of_o those_o great_a commander_n than_o governor_n of_o the_o other_o netherlands_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o not_o only_o in_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n be_v popery_n forsake_v and_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n accept_v but_o also_o the_o good_a subject_n in_o brabant_n flanders_n gelderland_n friesland_n the_o bishoprik_v of_o utrecht_n the_o land_n of_o overisel_n etc._n etc._n have_v begin_v to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n whereby_o in_o some_o place_n public_o in_o other_o place_n howbeit_o privy_o in_o house_n yet_o in_o great_a assembly_n of_o people_n and_o also_o with_o the_o knowledge_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o magistrate_n god_n word_n be_v preach_v etc._n etc._n so_o far_o there_o before_o that_o time_n gaspar_n colhaes_n a_o minister_n at_o leiden_fw-mi who_o have_v be_v a_o priest_n in_o time_n of_o popery_n and_o yet_o have_v profess_v the_o reform_a religion_n in_o time_n of_o the_o persecution_n have_v make_v no_o small_a stir_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o have_v also_o retain_v other_o dregs_o of_o popery_n and_o other_o preacher_n likewise_o so_o that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o netherlands_o be_v seldom_o free_a of_o one_o stichler_n or_o other_o yet_o alwise_o maintain_v and_o keep_v pure_a by_o the_o vigilancy_n of_o synod_n and_o by_o protection_n of_o magistrate_n from_o the_o corruption_n of_o such_o subdolous_a minister_n in_o time_n of_o the_o troubl_v move_v by_o colhaes_n the_o state_n of_o holland_n call_v for_o one_o minister_n out_o of_o each_o classis_fw-la and_o send_v two_o commissioner_n gerhard_n van_fw-mi wingaerd_n and_o leonard_n caesenbrood_n unto_o they_o require_v they_o to_o show_v the_o form_n of_o the_o church-government_n and_o to_o show_v the_o distinction_n between_o the_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n those_o answer_v the_o church-discipline_n be_v consider_v and_o pen_v by_o the_o synod_n at_o dort_n in_o the_o year_n 1578._o which_o be_v authorize_v by_o the_o high_a ministry_n the_o distinction_n of_o magistracy_n &_o ministry_n state_n and_o they_o have_v be_v traduce_v unjust_o that_o they_o will_v have_v usurp_v dominion_n over_o the_o magistrate_n for_o they_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o magistrate_n as_o any_o other_o subject_n be_v both_o for_o body_n and_o good_n except_o only_o that_o according_a to_o god_n word_n they_o may_v exercise_v the_o office_n commit_v by_o god_n unto_o they_o conform_v unto_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o office_n they_o give_v it_o in_o write_v whereof_o the_o authentic_a copy_n triglandius_n lib._n cit_fw-la say_v he_o have_v not_o see_v but_o he_o give_v the_o summa_fw-la of_o it_o from_o another_o to_o wit_n both_o office_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n both_o be_v preserver_n of_o godly_a righteousness_n both_o shall_v be_v reverence_v for_o conscience_n sake_n the_o magistrate_n shall_v not_o only_o preserve_v godly_a righteousness_n but_o provide_v for_o the_o commonweel-fare_a in_o which_o respect_n churchman_n as_o well_o as_o other_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o in_o body_n &_o good_n the_o magistrat_n office_n be_v to_o establish_v and_o promote_v by_o their_o authority_n and_o example_n so_o far_o as_o concern_v the_o outward_a man_n that_o god_n worde_n be_v obey_v but_o the_o office_n of_o minister_n be_v to_o set_v that_o worde_n before_o the_o people_n with_o faithful_a teach_n and_o godly_a conversation_n the_o office_n of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v to_o compel_v the_o despiser_n and_o falsefier_n of_o god_n word_n that_o they_o hinder_v not_o the_o outward_a peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o any_o do_v disturb_v it_o to_o punish_v they_o with_o imprisonment_n or_o other_o punishment_n in_o hody_n or_o good_n and_o the_o minister_n shall_v exhort_v the_o people_n in_o christ_n name_n to_o serve_v god_n peaceable_o and_o to_o show_v forth_o their_o dutiful_a regard_n of_o god_n word_n and_o shall_v call_v unto_o repentance_n the_o inward_a man_n that_o be_v the_o spirit_n or_o soul_n with_o spiritual_a weapen_v that_o be_v by_o preach_v eternal_a life_n and_o threaten_v everlasting_a death_n the_o magistrate_n office_n be_v to_o ordain_v punishment_n in_o body_n and_o good_n and_o according_a to_o circumstance_n of_o oceasion_n to_o mitigate_v or_o straiten_v they_o and_o the_o minister_n shall_v prudent_o exercise_v the_o exhortation_n and_o menace_n that_o be_v prescribe_v in_o god_n word_n and_o the_o excommunication_n the_o magistrate_n shall_v provide_v that_o the_o external_a peace_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o civil_a peace_n be_n keep_v safe_a and_o as_o occasion_n require_v to_o punish_v the_o transgression_n of_o the_o disturber_n and_o minister_n shall_v endeavour_v out_o of_o love_n that_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o discipline_n in_o god_n worde_n the_o soul_n of_o offender_n may_v be_v bring_v unto_o salvation_n the_o magistrate_n shall_v preside_v when_o punishment_n of_o life_n or_o good_n be_v handle_v and_o minister_n govern_v in_o the_o church-counsell_n when_o matter_n of_o conscience_n be_v judge_v the_o minister_n and_o church-counsel_n shall_v appoint_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n worde_n and_o the_o magistrate_n have_v power_n by_o himself_o whether_o present_a or_o absent_a to_o examine_v it_o and_o if_o he_o dissallow_v any_o thing_n therein_o he_o may_v command_v the_o churchman_n to_o reform_v it_o according_a to_o god_n worde_n the_o magistrate_n as_o also_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o seek_v and_o to_o use_v their_o authority_n if_o need_n shall_v be_v that_o minister_n of_o the_o worde_n be_v call_v and_o the_o church_n be_v provide_v with_o they_o and_o also_o to_o punish_v the_o fault_n even_o in_o the_o pulpit_n that_o deserve_v civil_a punishment_n and_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o minister_n and_o elder_n to_o choose_v person_n sufficient_a for_o the_o office_n and_o then_o to_o present_v those_o before_o the_o magistrate_n that_o he_o may_v approve_v they_o if_o there_o no_o be_v lawful_a impediment_n which_o then_o shall_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o minister_n when_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v trouble_v with_o any_o division_n it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o magistrate_n to_o call_v together_o a_o church-assemble_o and_o to_o rule_v it_o as_o concern_v the_o external_a action_n but_o when_o the_o church_n be_v in_o peace_n it_o belong_v unto_o the_o minister_n to_o call_v the_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n and_o to_o preside_v in_o
two_o desire_n to_o be_v marry_v because_o they_o have_v attestation_n of_o two_o insuspect_v witness_n which_o testify_v that_o they_o hear_v the_o first_o man_n captain_n declare_v that_o he_o be_v slay_v in_o denmark_n on_o such_o a_o day_n of_o aprile_a last_o whither_o may_v these_o party_n be_v marry_v in_o respect_n they_o be_v guilty_a of_o adultery_n and_o so_o have_v sin_v before_o they_o know_v of_o the_o man_n death_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v marry_v ii_o a._n man_n be_v forewarn_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o marry_v his_o uncl_n wife_n be_v marry_v in_o the_o chapell-royall_a what_o order_n shall_v now_o be_v take_v with_o they_o their_o name_n shall_v be_v delate_a unto_o the_o migistrate_n that_o they_o may_v be_v punish_v as_o incestuous_a iii_o several_a person_n be_v divorce_v for_o adultery_n and_o the_o offend_a party_n seek_v marriage_n ans_fw-fr all_o minister_n shall_v be_v admonish_v that_o they_o marry_v none_o such_o under_o pain_n of_o deprivation_n 5._o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o every_o superintendent_n shall_v cause_n summon_v all_o bishop_n abbot_n or_o whatsoever_o benefi●●d_a person_n be_v of_o the_o church_n who_o receive_v tithe_n and_o feed_v not_o a_o flock_n as_o their_o charge_n and_o where_o no_o superintendent_n be_v that_o the_o near_a superintendent_n shall_v send_v his_o letter_n to_o the_o minister_n next_o adjacent_a to_o summon_v such_o person_n to_o compear_v at_o the_o next_o general_a assembly_n to_o hear_v and_o know_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o case_n by_o the_o first_o particular_a of_o this_o assembly_n and_o the_o supplication_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o queen_n will_v yield_v somewhat_o to_o protestant_n and_o papist_n for_o her_o own_o end_n and_o the_o history_n of_o reformat_fw-la show_v that_o the_o arch_n b._n go_v to_o edinburg_n in_o january_n follow_v have_v the_o company_n of_o 100_o horseman_n or_o more_o intend_v to_o take_v possession_n according_a to_o his_o late_a gift_n but_o when_o three_o or_o four_o of_o the_o counsel_n go_v to_o he_o and_o tell_v he_o if_o he_o attempt_v to_o do_v it_o trouble_n may_v arise_v he_o be_v persuade_v to_o desist_v next_o from_o that_o letter_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n it_o appear_v what_o stir_n be_v there_o at_o that_o time_n as_o also_o the_o same_o year_n 5._o call_v jul._n beza_n write_v his_o eight_o epistle_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n rite_n against_o the_o reinduce_n of_o popish_a &_o abolish_v rite_n it_o be_v long_o but_o i_o shall_v only_o touch_v some_o passage_n of_o it_o i_o think_v say_v he_o that_o man_n shall_v not_o desert_v their_o church_n for_o such_o vesture_n but_o first_o i_o do_v judge_n that_o many_o thing_n in_o themselves_o indifferent_a be_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o superstition_n or_o certain_o among_o these_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o superstition_n because_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o worship_n which_o can_v not_o be_v eschew_v next_o it_o be_v to_o observe_v that_o some_o thing_n may_v be_v suffer_v for_o the_o infirm_a off_o not_o a_o these_o rite_n have_v be_v leave_v off_o which_o when_o they_o be_v once_o remove_v shall_v not_o be_v restore_v at_o all_o because_o thus_o be_v not_o to_o trke_v away_o weakness_n but_o rather_o to_o increase_v it_o when_o it_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n take_v away_o and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o recall_v it_o when_o it_o be_v away_o and_o therefore_o i_o marvel_v not_o that_o some_o be_v more_o nice_a to_o restore_v thing_n than_o they_o be_v before_o these_o be_v remove_v and_o further_o it_o be_v a_o vainthing_n to_o pretend_v infirmity_n in_o that_o kingdom_n where_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v preach_v and_o receive_v so_o many_o year_n and_o confirm_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o so_o many_o excellent_a martyr_n for_o if_o the_o apostle_n do_v just_o rebuke_v the_o galatian_n that_o when_o they_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n they_o will_v return_v to_o the_o flesh_n how_o much_o tather_n may_v that_o be_v say_v of_o you_o english_v if_o when_o you_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n you_o will_v fall_v back_o not_o as_o they_o unto_o flesh_n that_o be_v the_o rite_n of_o moses_n whereof_o god_n be_v the_o author_n but_o unto_o nugas_fw-la &_o quisquilias_fw-la the_o trifle_n of_o humane_a tradition_n which_o god_n forbid_v and_o this_o i_o will_v not_o say_v that_o if_o these_o do_v sin_n which_o choose_v to_o leave_v their_o church_n rather_o than_o suffer_v such_o thing_n to_o be_v thrust_v upon_o they_o against_o their_o conscience_n these_o be_v far_o more_o guilty_a before_o god_n and_o his_o angel_n who_o will_v have_v flock_n deprive_v of_o their_o pastor_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o horrible_a dissipation_n lay_v in_o the_o church_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o pastor_n rather_o than_o see_v minister_n otherwise_o blameless_a clothe_v in_o this_o habit_n rather_o than_o that_o and_o hungry_a sheep_n shall_v have_v no_o food_n if_o they_o will_v not_o take_v it_o with_o geniculation_n or_o bow_v of_o knee_n beza_n speak_v there_o as_o also_o in_o his_o twelth_n epistle_n more_o large_o and_o of_o other_o particulares_fw-la but_o all_o such_o writing_n be_v in_o vain_a for_o some_o bishop_n continue_v in_o their_o wilfulness_n as_o appear_v by_o a_o epistle_n of_o zanchius_n write_v from_o heidlberg_n septemb_n 10_o 1571._o at_o the_o order_n of_o that_o religious_a prince_n palatine_n as_o he_o write_v unto_o queen_n elisabeth_n where_o he_o say_v to_o bring_v back_o these_o rot_a rag_n and_o other_o rubbish_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n at_o this_o time_n into_o the_o church_n what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o to_o give_v a_o fair_a occasion_n unto_o the_o papist_n to_o harden_v themselves_o and_o their_o follower_n in_o their_o superstition_n and_o true_o as_o it_o be_v to_o push_v they_o thereunto_o let_v we_o then_o hearken_v what_o the_o prophet_n say_v unto_o josaphat_n aid_v a_o chab_n there_fw-mi thou_o help_v the_o wicked_a and_o love_v they_o which_o hate_v the_o lord_n therefore_o wrath_n from_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v upon_o thou_o and_o what_o other_o be_v this_o but_o to_o call_v back_o the_o weak_a from_o the_o study_n of_o pure_a religion_n and_o privy_o bid_v they_o return_v into_o egypt_n for_o infirm_a person_n be_v easy_o bring_v back_o into_o impiety_n see_v natural_o we_o be_v incline_v unto_o superstition_n etc._n etc._n v._o before_o i_o go_v before_o ward_n let_v we_o mark_v the_o special_a providence_n of_o god_n in_o scotland_n the_o admirable_a providence_n of_o god_n see_v in_o the_o reformation_n of_o scotland_n reform_v the_o church_n of_o scotland_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v and_o that_o in_o two_o particulares_fw-la i._o the_o minister_n be_v wrestle_v in_o zeal_n of_o the_o reformation_n both_o of_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n wrestle_v i_o say_v with_o poverty_n and_o against_o worldly_a power_n yet_o not_o by_o violence_n but_o by_o clea●ing_v fast_o to_o god_n word_n by_o supplication_n both_o unto_o god_n and_o to_o the_o adverse_a power_n for_o except_v john_n erskin_n who_o be_v a_o ancient_a baron_n all_o or_o most_o part_n of_o these_o minister_n be_v of_o no_o patrimony_n john_n knox_n have_v wait_v on_o george_n wishart_o the_o martyr_n john_n row_n be_v a_o friar_n at_o rome_n and_o be_v send_v an._n 1559._o as_o nuntio_n into_o scotland_n and_o when_o he_o see_v the_o difference_n in_o the_o country_n in_o steed_n of_o agent_v the_o pope_n business_n he_o turn_v preacher_n john_n craig_n be_v a_o dominican_n at_o bononia_n where_o find_v the_o institution_n of_o john_n caluin_n he_o embrace_v the_o truth_n in_o they_o and_o one_o day_n confer_v with_o a_o old_a man_n in_o the_o monastery_n he_o be_v confirm_v by_o he_o in_o the_o same_o truth_n but_o withal_o be_v warn_v that_o he_o make_v not_o his_o mind_n know_v because_o the_o time_n be_v perilous_a nevertheless_o he_o will_v not_o dissemble_v and_o be_v as_o a_o heretic_n send_v to_o rome_n and_o after_o examination_n be_v imprison_v and_o lay_v there_o in_o great_a misery_n the_o space_n of_o nine_o month_n then_o give_v a_o clear_a confession_n of_o his_o faith_n before_o the_o inquisitor_n he_o be_v condemn_v to_o be_v burn_v august_n 19_o the_o same_o night_n pope_n paul_n iv_o die_v and_o in_o a_o tumult_n of_o the_o people_n all_o the_o prison_n be_v break_v up_o and_o the_o prisoner_n set_v free_a among_o other_o this_o man_n escape_v and_o at_o last_o come_v home_o john_n willock_n and_o christopher_n goodman_n have_v be_v preacher_n in_o england_n and_o in_o queen_n mary_n persecution_n flee_v into_o scotland_n john_n dury_n have_v be_v a_o monk_n in_o dumfernlin_n and_o so_o many_o other_o be_v monk_n in_o several_a part_n of_o the_o nation_n so_o they_o have_v no_o earthly_a riches_n nor_o authority_n and_o yet_o it_o please_v god_n by_o such_o
where_o they_o be_v and_o at_o the_o king_n command_v he_o will_v cause_n deliver_v they_o it_o be_v also_o testify_v by_o jo._n dury_n that_o he_o hear_v pa._n adamson_n grant_v that_o he_o have_v they_o after_o these_o testification_n the_o assembly_n conclude_v that_o pa._n adamson_n shall_v be_v charge_v to_o deliver_v the_o book_n yet_o for_o the_o better_a advice_n david_n lindsay_n be_v direct_v unto_o the_o lord_n secretary_n and_o return_v with_o his_o answer_n think_v meet_v a_o supplication_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o ll._n of_o counsel_n to_o grant_v a_o charge_n against_o pa._n adamson_n for_o restitution_n of_o the_o book_n and_o that_o the_o assembly_n also_o shall_v use_v their_o power_n so_o a_o supplication_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v pen_v and_o be_v present_v the_o next_o day_n and_o a_o citation_n be_v send_v to_o charge_v he_o to_o deliver_v the_o book_n within_o three_o day_n unto_o the_o clerk_n and_o also_o to_o compear_v personal_o within_o that_o space_n to_o answer_v for_o his_o absence_n from_o the_o assembly_n and_o to_o other_o accusation_n that_o shall_v be_v lay_v unto_o his_o charge_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n in_o sess_n 4._o it_o be_v think_v expedient_a that_o before_o the_o ordinance_n make_v yesterday_o be_v put_v to_o execution_n against_o pa._n adamson_n a_o humble_a supplication_n be_v make_v unto_o the_o king_n for_o that_o effect_n and_o two_o brethren_n be_v send_v with_o it_o in_o sess_n 6._o the_o king_n commissioner_n be_v present_a think_v meet_v because_o the_o business_n with_o pa._n adamson_n be_v civil_a wherein_o the_o king_n have_v interest_n that_o he_o be_v acquaint_v with_o it_o this_o the_o assembly_n be_v willing_a to_o do_v in_o sess_n 15._o a_o letter_n be_v direct_v by_o john_n duncanson_n bear_v the_o king_n command_n unto_o the_o bishop_n to_o redeliver_v the_o book_n at_o the_o least_o four_o of_o they_o and_o that_o george_n young_a be_v staid_a while_z the_o book_n be_v deliver_v the_o assembly_n direct_v ja._n nicolson_n and_o ale_n raweson_n unto_o the_o l._n secretary_n to_o cause_n deliver_v they_o and_o after_o their_o direction_n and_o reiter_v direction_n of_o two_o other_o brother_n george_n young_a bring_v into_o the_o assembly_n five_o volume_n of_o the_o register_n whereof_o a_o great_a part_n be_v tear_v and_o after_o sight_n thereof_o the_o assembly_n ordain_v a_o heavy_a regrate_a to_o be_v make_v unto_o his_o majesty_n lament_v the_o mutilation_n of_o the_o book_n and_o to_o crave_v that_o they_o may_v remain_v with_o the_o church_n as_o their_o own_o register_n the_o lord_n secretary_n answer_v that_o his_o majesty_n s_o will_v be_v that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o inspection_n of_o they_o when_o he_o shall_v have_v occasion_n and_o he_o shall_v present_o give_v they_o back_o again_o iii_o in_o sess_n 4._o because_o a_o offence_n conceive_v by_o the_o king_n against_o john_n cowper_n and_o james_n gibson_n have_v be_v show_v private_o unto_o the_o moderator_n it_o be_v think_v expedient_a by_o the_o assembly_n that_o the_o cause_n be_v first_o private_o consider_v by_o john_n erskin_n of_o dun_n and_o six_o other_o minister_n who_o the_o assembly_n name_v to_o confer_v thereupon_o with_o the_o party_n if_o they_o can_v give_v satisfaction_n by_o their_o advice_n and_o otherwise_o that_o the_o cause_n be_v propound_v public_o and_o these_o brethren_n be_v appoint_v to_o go_v present_o about_o that_o business_n and_o the_o party_n to_o wait_v upon_o they_o the_o result_n of_o their_o conference_n follow_v in_o the_o king_n article_n iv_o see_v the_o king_n be_v now_o of_o ripe_a age_n and_o a_o parliament_n be_v appoint_v in_o the_o next_o month_n it_o be_v think_v expedient_a that_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n make_v heretofore_o for_o liberty_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o religion_n present_o profess_v within_o the_o realm_n and_o for_o repress_v papistry_n and_o idolatry_n be_v collect_v and_o be_v crave_v to_o be_v confirm_v as_o also_o the_o execution_n of_o these_o act_n may_v be_v consider_v and_o what_o other_o execution_n or_o law_n be_v needful_a to_o be_v crave_v against_o papist_n and_o idolater_n as_o also_o the_o law_n and_o constitution_n that_o have_v be_v make_v to_o the_o derogation_n of_o the_o say_a liberty_n or_o to_o the_o prejudice_n and_o stay_v of_o the_o course_n of_o the_o evangell_n may_v be_v collect_v that_o the_o abrogation_n of_o they_o may_v be_v seek_v to_o this_o effect_n be_v appoint_v john_n erskin_n robett_n pont_n nic._n dalgliesh_n david_n lindsay_n and_o paul_n fraser_n v._o in_o sess_n 5._o the_o commission_n give_v by_o the_o last_o assembly_n to_o the_o presbytery_n of_o glasgow_n &_o sterlin_n concern_v the_o slander_n of_o david_n cuningham_n and_o other_o person_n be_v suspend_v sundry_a brethren_n complain_v against_o pa._n adamson_n at_o who_o instance_n he_o be_v register_v at_o the_o horn_n for_o not_o payment_n of_o the_o stipend_n assign_v unto_o they_o and_o for_o not_o furnish_v wine_n unto_o the_o communion_n this_o matter_n be_v regret_v unto_o the_o king_n commissioner_n the_o prior_n or_o lord_n blantyre_n undertake_v to_o communicate_v this_o purpose_n unto_o the_o other_o commissioner_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o to_o report_v their_o advice_n unto_o the_o assembly_n also_o regrait_n be_v make_v that_o great_a division_n be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o santan_n that_o some_o will_v not_o hear_v p._n adamson_n preach_v nor_o communicate_v when_o he_o administrate_n the_o sacrament_n partly_o because_o he_o lie_v in_o rebellion_n or_o at_o the_o hor●_n and_o partly_o because_o of_o his_o suspension_n and_o some_o do_v repair_v unto_o he_o and_o they_o crave_v that_o this_o division_n may_v be_v redress_v the_o assembly_n judge_v it_o expedient_a first_o to_o hear_v what_o answer_n shall_v be_v report_v in_o the_o former_a complaint_n vi_o unto_o that_o question_n whither_o it_o be_v a_o scandal_n that_o a_o christian_a absent_a himself_o from_o the_o sermon_n and_o other_o pious_a exercise_n use_v by_o they_o that_o lie_v at_o the_o king_n horn_n and_o be_v suspend_v from_o rhe_n ministry_n it_o be_v resolve_v it_o be_v no_o scandal_n but_o it_o be_v rather_o scandalous_a to_o resort_v unto_o the_o foresay_a exercise_n of_o one_o who_o lie_v at_o the_o horn_n and_o be_v suspend_v vii_o in_o sess_n 9_o no_o master_n of_o college_n or_o school_n shall_v receive_v any_o student_n or_o scholar_n be_v of_o maturity_n of_o age_n who_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v the_o religion_n present_o establish_v and_o profess_v in_o the_o realm_n by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n or_o refuse_v to_o participate_v of_o the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o before_o any_o student_n be_v promote_v to_o any_o degree_n in_o the_o university_n that_o they_o shall_v toties_fw-la quoties_fw-la as_o they_o shall_v be_v promote_v subscribe_v de_fw-fr novo_fw-la and_o that_o the_o presbytery_n shall_v be_v diligent_a to_o see_v the_o execution_n of_o this_o act_n as_o they_o will_v answer_v to_o god_n etc._n etc._n viii_o the_o presbytery_n with_o their_o commissioner_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o country_n every_o one_o for_o their_o own_o part_n shall_v prescribe_v to_o every_o young_a man_n intend_v for_o the_o ministry_n a_o part_n of_o scripture_n together_o with_o some_o part_n of_o the_o common_a place_n &_o controvert_v head_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v diligent_o read_v consider_v and_o study_v by_o he_o within_o such_o a_o space_n of_o time_n as_o the_o presbytery_n think_v good_a to_o appoint_v and_o that_o his_o profit_v may_v appear_v the_o better_a at_o certain_a time_n of_o the_o year_n every_o presbytery_n shall_v take_v account_n of_o his_o travel_n by_o require_v of_o he_o in_o that_o prescribe_a part_n of_o scripture_n 1._o the_o sum_n and_o deduction_n thereof_o 2._o the_o solid_a sense_n or_o meaning_n of_o the_o place_n which_o be_v more_o difficile_a to_o be_v understand_v 3._o a_o collation_n of_o sentence_n which_o by_o read_v he_o may_v be_v able_a to_o gather_v out_o of_o other_o part_n of_o scripture_n and_o which_o may_v serve_v as_o argument_n either_o to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n or_o refute_v heretical_a opinion_n as_o to_o the_o common_a place_n and_o head_n let_v he_o answer_v to_o question_n &_o reason_n thereupon_o and_o he_o be_v to_o be_v exercise_v in_o this_o manner_n not_o for_o one_o time_n only_o but_o from_o time_n to_o time_n until_o he_o come_v to_o certain_a maturity_n ix_o whereas_o a_o scandal_n be_v speak_v of_o by_o a_o presentation_n of_o the_o bishoprik_n of_o caitnes_n give_v unto_o robert_n pont_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o have_v given-in_a some_o complaint_n unto_o the_o exchequer_n fot_o some_o hurt_n do_v unto_o he_o in_o time_n of_o his_o trouble_n and_o in_o compensation_n that_o presentation_n without_o his_o procurement_n
patron_n shall_v stand_v until_o the_o next_o assembly_n with_o this_o addition_n that_o the_o person_n who_o shall_v admit_v shall_v incur_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n vi_o violator_n of_o the_o sabbath_n under_o which_o be_v comprehend_v parishioner_n absent_v themselves_o from_o the_o sermon_n of_o their_o own_o parish_n without_o a_o just_a cause_n and_o blaspheemer_n of_o god_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v try_v and_o censure_v by_o the_o particular_a session_n of_o the_o parish_n and_o who_o shall_v be_v convict_v of_o these_o offence_n shall_v be_v deny_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n with_o further_a censure_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n will_v allow_v vii_o the_o age_a and_o we_o will_v merit_v in_o the_o ministry_n shall_v be_v prefer_v to_o young_a man_n caeteris_fw-la paribus_fw-la be_v find_v qualify_v by_o the_o presbytery_n where_o church_n be_v vaik_v and_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o congregation_n viii_o the_o presbytery_n of_o edinb_n have_v receive_v commission_n from_o the_o former_a assembly_n to_o call_v pa._n adamson_n before_o they_o for_o solemnize_n the_o marriage_n of_o huntly_n now_o deliver_v their_o process_n show_v that_o for_o his_o contumacy_n in_o not_o compear_v after_o citation_n they_o have_v deprive_v he_o from_o all_o function_n in_o the_o church_n the_o assembly_n judge_v the_o process_n formal_a ratifi_v their_o sentence_n and_o ordain_v it_o with_o other_o sentence_n that_o be_v pronounce_v against_o he_o to_o be_v publish_v in_o all_o the_o church_n b._n spotswood_n say_v the_o bishop_n complain_v unto_o the_o king_n who_o show_v himself_o extreme_o displease_v with_o their_o do_n but_o espy_v no_o better_a way_n he_o resolve_v to_o dissemble_v his_o anger_n towards_o they_o and_o to_o take_v the_o imprison_a lord_n in_o favour_n lest_o he_o make_v himself_o too_o much_o business_n thereupon_o he_o return_v to_o the_o north_n give_v arroll_v a_o pardon_n put_v crawford_n to_o liberty_n and_o full_o remit_v he_o huntly_n and_o b_n well_o he_o free_v from_o imprisonment_n but_o to_o hold_v they_o in_o awe_n he_o defer_v the_o declaration_n of_o his_o will_n concern_v they_o the_o lord_n maxwell_n upon_o his_o bond_n not_o to_o practice_v against_o religion_n under_o pain_n of_o a_o hunger_n thousand_o pound_n be_v likewise_o dimit_v so_o far_o he_o in_o many_o other_o passage_n he_o say_v that_o what_o good_a the_o king_n have_v do_v for_o the_o church_n he_o do_v it_o against_o his_o own_o mind_n and_o dissemble_v for_o the_o time_n and_o here_o he_o forge_v that_o for_o envy_n against_o the_o church_n the_o king_n take_v the_o popish_a lord_n into_o favour_n what_o can_v a_o enemy_n of_o the_o religion_n write_v more_o perverse_o against_o the_o fame_n of_o the_o king_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v as_o he_o also_o express_v it_o but_o mix_v with_o these_o calumny_n the_o king_n at_o that_o time_n be_v every_o day_n expect_v the_o arrival_n of_o his_o queen_n and_o be_v desirous_a to_o have_v all_o thing_n quiet_a at_o her_o come_n and_o therefore_o he_o take_v that_o course_n with_o the_o popish_a lord_n as_o for_o pa._n adamson_n the_o king_n know_v what_o commission_n the_o assembly_n have_v give_v unto_o the_o presbytery_n of_o edinburg_n and_o he_o know_v their_o proceed_n and_o nevertheless_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o assembly_n as_o this_o bishop_n speak_v he_o speak_v of_o his_o good_a affection_n towards_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o assembly_n follow_v he_o declare_v his_o good_a affection_n more_o and_o more_o but_o as_o the_o historical_a narration_n show_v the_o king_n be_v so_o vex_v with_o complaint_n against_o pa._n adamson_n especial_o for_o debt_n for_o which_o he_o be_v lie_v register_v at_o the_o horn_n and_o he_o be_v so_o ashamed_a of_o he_o because_o he_o be_v so_o odious_a for_o other_o fault_n that_o he_o reject_v he_o and_o dispone_v his_o life-rent_a unto_o the_o duke_n of_o lennox_n whereby_o the_o man_n become_v miserable_a that_o endure_v his_o sickness_n he_o have_v not_o to_o maintain_v himself_o and_o be_v b●ought_v into_o such_o necessity_n to_o seek_v relieff_fw-mi of_o other_o who_o before_o he_o have_v account_v his_o enemy_n he_o send_v also_o to_o the_o presbytery_n of_o santandrews_n and_o crave_v to_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n some_o minister_n be_v send_v unro_fw-la he_o to_o try_v his_o sincerity_n before_o they_o he_o cry_v often_o and_o pitiful_o loose_v i_o for_o christ_n sake_n upon_o their_o report_n he_o be_v absolve_v his_o recantation_n in_o certain_a article_n be_v present_v in_o his_o name_n by_o a_o minister_n john_n caldcleugh_o unto_o the_o next_o synod_n of_o fife_n thence_o some_o be_v direct_v unto_o he_o again_o and_o he_o give_v they_o a_o more_o ample_a and_o clear_a recantation_n subscribe_v with_o his_o hand_n and_o as_o the_o writer_n of_o vindic._n philadelp_n pag._n 62._o show_n it_o be_v subscribe_v before_o many_o witness_n of_o who_o some_o be_v noble_a man_n some_o minister_n some_o lawyer_n some_o burgess_n all_o of_o good_a credit_n here_o also_o we_o see_v as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o that_o place_n last_o cite_v the_o force_n of_o excommunication_n howbeit_o before_o he_o have_v despise_v the_o sentence_n yet_o ere_o he_o die_v all_o his_o wretchedness_n do_v not_o so_o much_o grieve_v he_o as_o that_o do_v and_o he_o wish_v nothing_o on_o earth_n more_o than_o that_o he_o may_v die_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o another_o place_n the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n discipline_n say_v whether_o he_o know_v what_o be_v contain_v in_o these_o article_n it_o be_v uncertain_a if_o it_o be_v uncertain_a unto_o that_o writer_n why_o do_v he_o oppose_v it_o so_o deny_v the_o credit_n of_o so_o many_o famous_a witness_n but_o i_o goeon_a because_o the_o queen_n have_v once_o take_v the_o sea_n be_v put_v back_o by_o storm_n to_o norway_n the_o king_n will_v go_v unto_o she_o and_o without_o knowledge_n of_o the_o counsel_n take_v the_o sea_n october_n 22._o and_o some_o noble_a man_n with_o he_o on_o the_o four_o day_n he_o land_v in_o norway_n and_o stay_v there_o and_o in_o denmark_n until_o may._n all_o that_o time_n be_v no_o stir_n in_o the_o country_n which_o be_v matter_n of_o great_a joy_n unto_o he_o when_o it_o be_v report_v unto_o he_o xxvii_o when_o the_o king_n reture_v with_o the_o queen_n may_v 20._o 1590._o he_o go_v straight_o way_n to_o church_n and_o cause_v public_a thanks_n be_v give_v unto_o god_n for_o his_o save_o return_n then_o he_o give_v thanks_n unto_o the_o noble_a man_n and_o counsel_n for_o their_o care_n of_o the_o public_a quietness_n then_o be_v great_a joy_n in_o the_o country_n and_o a_o great_a concourse_n of_o people_n unto_o court_n the_o assembly_n conveen_n assembly_n the_o 52._o assembly_n at_o edinburgh_n august_n 4._o very_o frequent_o the_o king_n commissioner_n the_o lord_n chancellor_n and_o blantyre_n patrick_n galloway_n be_v choose_v moderator_n i._o commissioner_n be_v particular_o inquire_v what_o diligence_n they_o have_v use_v in_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o late_a act_n against_o papist_n excommunicate_a person_n profaner_n of_o the_o sabbath_n non-residents_a and_o other_o head_n that_o be_v commit_v unto_o the_o presbytery_n and_o commssioner_n ii_o in_o sess_n 3._o john_n inness_n commissioner_n of_o murray_n be_v accuse_v for_o admit_v robert_n dumbar_n to_o the_o ministry_n without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o presbytery_n of_o forress_n he_o answer_v he_o have_v do_v it_o by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o presbytery_n of_o elgin_n wherein_o he_o confess_v he_o have_v do_v rash_o the_o assembly_n ordain_v robert_n dumbar_n to_o be_v try_v de_fw-la novo_fw-la by_o so_o many_o as_o be_v present_a of_o the_o presbytery_n of_o edinb_n &_o forress_n in_o sess_n 12._o the_o admission_n of_o robert_n dumbar_n without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o presbytery_n of_o forress_n be_v declare_v null_n iii_o because_o the_o earl_n of_o montrose_n be_v say_v to_o entertain_v fentry_n a_o excommunicate_a papist_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o the_o presbytery_n where_o he_o dwell_v for_o the_o time_n shall_v charge_v he_o before_o they_o try_v the_o matter_n and_o according_o proceed_v against_o he_o according_a to_o former_a act_n iu._n a_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n pronounce_v against_o the_o earl_n of_o anguise_n be_v reduce_v because_o of_o informality_n but_o because_o in_o the_o sentence_n be_v sufficient_a cause_n of_o such_o censure_n if_o the_o process_n have_v be_v formal_o lead_v the_o church_n now_o crave_v that_o he_o will_v remove_v the_o cause_n especial_o that_o he_o will_v have_v care_n in_o time_n come_v that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v not_o profane_v within_o his_o bound_n by_o fair_n or_o market_n that_o no_o work_n nor_o carry_v of_o burden_n therein_o that_o vasall_n compel_v not_o their_o tenant_n to_o
justiciaries_n moreover_o that_o act_n of_o parliament_n be_v repeal_v by_o another_o act_n an._n 1592._o which_o derogate_v from_o the_o former_a in_o so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o office-bearer_n of_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n heresy_n excommunication_n collation_n of_o benefice_n deprivation_n of_o minister_n ecclesiastical_a censure_n etc._n etc._n as_o for_o the_o allege_a contempt_n &_o sedition_n that_o against_o the_o provision_n of_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n they_o have_v convene_v and_o proceed_v contrary_a to_o his_o majesty_n express_v command_v intimate_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o letter_n and_o the_o counsel_n missive_n and_o by_o laureston_n and_o against_o a_o public_a charge_n of_o horn_v proceed_v from_o the_o secret_a counsel_n and_o execut_a against_o they_o the_o day_n precede_v it_o be_v answer_v the_o act_n be_v no_o institute_v law_n of_o assembly_n but_o a_o simple_a approbation_n of_o they_o as_o they_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o church_n and_o in_o that_o approbation_n it_o be_v declare_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a to_o the_o church_n to_o hold_v general_a assembly_n once_o every_o year_n and_o often_o as_o occasion_n shall_v require_v and_o the_o provision_n in_o the_o act_n import_v not_o a_o nullity_n of_o the_o foresay_a liberty_n &_o approbation_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a because_o it_o no_o way_n concern_v the_o action_n of_o conveen_a or_o hold_v but_o only_o the_o nomination_n of_o time_n and_o place_n and_o that_o not_o simple_o but_o upon_o condition_n of_o his_o majesty_n or_o his_o commissioner_n presence_n where_o the_o assembly_n be_v hold_v nor_o be_v that_o simple_o or_o absolute_o but_o coniunct_o with_o the_o assembly_n and_o the_o same_o provision_n in_o the_o last_o part_n of_o it_o say_v express_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a unto_o the_o church_n in_o case_n of_o absence_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o commissioner_n by_o themselves_o to_o appoint_v time_n &_o place_n of_o the_o next_o assembly_n as_o they_o have_v be_v in_o use_n to_o do_v and_o consequent_o to_o assemble_v &_o proceed_v without_o the_o presence_n or_o express_v consent_n of_o his_o majesty_n or_o commissioner_n and_o unto_o the_o assumption_n these_o have_v his_o majesty_n consent_n in_o the_o assembly_n at_o halyroodhous_n an._n 1602._o where_o he_o consent_v that_o the_o next_o assembly_n shall_v be_v at_o aberdien_fw-mi the_o last_o tuysday_n of_o july_n in_o year_n 1604._o and_o that_o diet_n be_v prorogue_v at_o his_o majesty_n desire_n by_o a_o letter_n send_v to_o the_o presbytery_n and_o subscribe_v by_o his_o commissioner_n laureston_n and_o the_o late_a moderator_n until_o the_o first_o tuysday_n of_o july_n an._n 1605._o which_o day_n be_v keep_v by_o they_o at_o the_o direction_n of_o their_o presbytery_n as_o for_o the_o letter_n send_v by_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o general_a assembly_n unto_o the_o presbytery_n 1._o it_o bear_v no_o command_n but_o advice_n 2._o the_o imprison_a have_v a_o more_o authentik_a and_o evident_a signification_n of_o his_o majesty_n will_v declare_v in_o the_o assembly_n and_o that_o diet_n be_v prorogue_v by_o his_o majesty_n direction_n which_o be_v more_o authentik_a than_o a_o allege_a discharge_n send_v in_o a_o article_n unto_o the_o commissioner_n 3._o at_o that_o same_o assembly_n all_o power_n of_o prorogate_a o●_n alter_v time_n &_o place_n of_o the_o assembly_n be_v take_v from_o the_o commissioner_n with_o his_o majesty_n own_o consent_n for_o remedy_n of_o the_o grievance_n given-in_a to_o that_o assembly_n for_o the_o delay_n and_o alteration_n make_v by_o they_o without_o advice_n of_o presbytery_n &_o synod_n where_o also_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o the_o diet_n of_o the_o assembly_n be_v keep_v precise_o according_a to_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n an._n 1592._o which_o be_v of_o great_a force_n than_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o commissioner_n who_o have_v no_o power_n to_o discharge_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o assembly_n and_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o the_o continual_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n require_v a_o certain_a day_n and_o place_n but_o their_o letter_n appoint_v neither_o time_n nor_o place_n which_o import_v a_o plain_a desert_v rather_o then_o continuation_n consequent_o it_o be_v a_o loss_n of_o that_o liberty_n confirm_v by_o parliament_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o with_o save_v conscience_n be_v obey_v 5._o their_o advice_n be_v not_o to_o keep_v the_o five_o day_n but_o that_o assembly_n be_v begin_v and_o end_v on_o the_o second_o day_n their_o intention_n possible_o be_v to_o discharge_v it_o simpliciter_fw-la but_o neither_o do_v the_o letter_n speak_v so_o not_o be_v it_o the_o duty_n of_o minister_n to_o quit_v their_o liberty_n as_o for_o the_o counsel_n missive_n they_o do_v conveen_v with_o laureston_n advice_n and_o their_o convention_n be_v sanctify_v by_o invocate_a the_o name_n of_o god_n before_o the_o missive_n be_v present_v unto_o they_o he_o meet_v with_o they_o and_o present_v the_o missive_n unto_o they_o as_o lawful_o convene_v and_o require_v a_o answer_n of_o it_o it_o be_v read_v and_o consider_v and_o obey_v in_o all_o point_n excep_v the_o indiction_n of_o another_o day_n which_o for_o preservation_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v omit_v without_o perfidy_n what_o contempt_n be_v it_o to_o deny_v the_o request_n of_o the_o counsel_n when_o the_o request_n import_v so_o great_a a_o loss_n and_o be_v contrary_n unto_o the_o law_n as_o for_o his_o majesty_n commissioner_n disassenting_a 1._o he_o make_v no_o opposition_n to_o their_o sit_v down_o but_o consent_v 2._o he_o deliver_v the_o counsel_v letter_n and_o will_v they_o to_o read_v it_o to_o consider_v it_o and_o to_o answer_v it_o and_o remove_v himself_o for_o that_o effect_n 3._o he_o acquiesce_v and_o be_v satisfy_v with_o their_o obedience_n unto_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o for_o the_o design_v a_o new_a day_n he_o say_v he_o have_v no_o commission_n for_o that_o and_o therefore_o refuse_v either_o by_o himself_o or_o with_o they_o to_o appoint_v a_o new_a day_n neither_o do_v they_o appoint_v any_o till_o after_o argue_v he_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v reason_n to_o stick_v unto_o their_o point_n howbeit_o he_o can_v not_o consent_v for_o want_v of_o commission_n and_o till_o that_o he_o plain_o say_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v think_v you_o shall_v never_o have_v a_o gen_fw-la assembly_n again_o as_o for_o the_o charge_n of_o horn_v allege_v to_o be_v execute_v against_o they_o no_o intimation_n thereof_o be_v make_v unto_o they_o either_o by_o the_o commissioner_n nor_o by_o the_o puresefant_n nor_o any_o other_o nor_o know_v they_o any_o such_o as_o they_o be_v ready_a all_o to_o depone_v upon_o their_o oath_n 2._o laureston_n give_v they_o not_o occasion_n to_o conceive_v such_o a_o thing_n by_o his_o speech_n for_o he_o say_v albeit_o he_o may_v have_v use_v a_o charge_n yet_o he_o will_v rather_o use_v the_o counsel_n letter_n of_o request_n 3._o the_o pretend_a execution_n and_o indorsation_n bewray_v the_o forgery_n bear_v that_o it_o be_v a_o open_a proclamation_n warrant_v by_o two_o witness_n who_o be_v laureston_n domestic_a servant_n whereas_o sundry_a honest_a man_n at_o the_o allege_a time_n be_v in_o and_o about_o the_o marketplace_n and_o yet_o none_o other_o can_v be_v find_v who_o hear_v such_o a_o thing_n 4._o why_o cause_v laureston_n charge_v they_o upon_o the_o second_o day_n personal_o when_o they_o be_v dissolve_v without_o any_o mention_n of_o a_o charge_n the_o day_n precede_v 5._o though_o the_o execution_n be_v true_a yet_o it_o can_v not_o import_v the_o punishment_n contain_v in_o the_o libel_n see_v it_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n of_o james._n 6._o parl._n 11._o year_n 1587._o which_o bear_v that_o no_o letter_n import_v the_o tinsel_n of_o life_n or_o movable_a good_n shall_v be_v of_o force_n unless_o they_o be_v execute_v between_o eicht_n a_o clok_n in_o the_o morning_n and_o twelve_o noon_n at_o before_o famous_a witness_n but_o the_o indorsation_n of_o the_o pretend_a execution_n bear_v that_o these_o be_v execute_v between_o seven_o &_o eicht_v in_o the_o evening_n 6._o when_o they_o be_v charge_v personal_o upon_o the_o second_o day_n they_o obey_v present_o as_o the_o instrument_n take_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o two_o notary_n testify_v the_o truth_n be_v this_o charge_n can_v neither_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o guilt_n of_o contempt_n or_o call_v their_o proceed_n in_o question_n because_o they_o have_v do_v all_o that_o they_o do_v at_o that_o time_n therefore_o that_o other_o charge_n be_v forge_v as_o give_v at_o the_o cross_n of_o aberdien_n the_o day_n precede_v and_o as_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o counsel_n by_o laureston_n
be_v prepare_v for_o he_o then_o hildebrand_n assemble_v the_o cardinal_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o swear_v that_o they_o will_v choose_v no_o pope_n without_o common_a consent_n so_o he_o take_v journey_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o florence_n to_o bring_v and_o install_v he_o and_o the_o clergy_n swear_v that_o they_o will_v not_o proceed_v in_o election_n before_o his_o return_v nevertheless_o the_o count_n of_o tuscany_n by_o gift_n and_o threaten_n do_v cause_v the_o people_n to_o choose_v his_o brother_n 14._o benedict_n the_o x._o a_o man_n altogether_o ignorant_a of_o letter_n peter_n damian_n bishop_n of_o ostia_n protest_v against_o the_o election_n but_o they_o make_v no_o account_n of_o that_o when_o hildebrand_n return_v with_o gerard_n bishop_n of_o florence_n he_o cause_v the_o clergy_n according_a to_o their_o oath_n to_o proceed_v in_o a_o new_a election_n see_v that_o benedict_n be_v not_o canonical_o call_v the_o clergy_n see_v the_o friend_n of_o benedict_n to_o have_v power_n at_o rome_n go_v to_o sena_n and_o there_o do_v choose_v gerard_n or_o nicolaus_n the_o ii_o benedict_n consider_v that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v his_o adversary_n retire_v to_o velitra_n and_o live_v private_o 15._o nicolaus_n the_o ii_o hold_v a_o synod_n at_o sutrio_n by_o the_o aid_n of_o duke_n godefrid_n and_o italium_n bishop_n and_o annul_v the_o election_n of_o pope_n benedict_n then_o he_o go_v to_o rome_n and_o hold_v another_o synod_n at_o lateran_n where_o a_o decree_n be_v make_v that_o if_o any_o by_o money_n or_o favour_n of_o man_n whether_o of_o people_n or_o soldier_n without_o canonical_a election_n of_o cardinal_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o throne_n of_o saint_n peter_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v call_v apostolical_a but_o apostatical_a and_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o the_o cardinal_n clergy_n and_o people_n call_v upon_o god_n to_o accurse_v he_o as_o a_o robber_n and_o to_o thrust_v he_o from_o his_o seat_n by_o any_o help_n of_o man_n gratian._n do_v 32._o cap._n vnde_fw-la nicolaus_n here_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v limit_v and_o ascribe_v unto_o the_o cardinal_n but_o as_o pol._n vergil_n de_fw-mi invent_v rer_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 10._o have_v observe_v it_o be_v to_o be_v approve_v by_o other_o priest_n and_o by_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n and_o another_o may_v have_v be_v choose_v who_o be_v not_o of_o that_o college_n but_o within_o a_o short_a time_n both_o these_o be_v abolish_v for_o now_o say_v he_o the_o cardinal_n without_o consent_n of_o people_n or_o priest_n do_v choose_v only_o a_o cardinal_n to_o be_v pope_n although_o there_o be_v no_o law_n for_o that_o some_o write_v that_o nicolaus_n give_v the_o dukedom_n of_o pulia_n and_o calabria_n unto_o robert_n guiscard_v but_o platina_n say_v robert_n defraud_v his_o brother_n son_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v offend_v for_o godefrid_n sake_n yet_o suffer_v he_o to_o enjoy_v it_o because_o he_o give_v a_o part_n of_o the_o dukedom_n unto_o the_o pope_n and_o himself_o become_v tributary_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n after_o three_o year_n nicolaus_n be_v poison_v the_o lombard_n have_v be_v oppress_v by_o he_o and_o now_o be_v desirous_a to_o have_v a_o bishop_n of_o their_o country_n therefore_o they_o send_v unto_o the_o imperial_a court_n for_o favour_n in_o the_o election_n for_o the_o nomination_n of_o the_o pope_n say_v they_o appertain_v unto_o the_o emperor_n then_o agnes_n do_v send_v one_o who_o be_v think_v most_o fit_a and_o so_o in_o a_o synod_n at_o basil_n 16._o honorius_n the_o ii_o be_v elect_v hildebrand_n and_o the_o cardinal_n deprive_v two_o pope_n in_o arm_n and_o both_o be_v deprive_v at_o rome_n set_v up_o alexander_n the_o ii_o they_o gather_v army_n and_o fight_v a_o bloody_a battle_n near_o rome_n honorius_n be_v say_v to_o have_v the_o worse_o and_o recruit_n his_o force_n the_o emperor_n send_v a_o ambassador_n otho_n or_o as_o platina_n call_v he_o anno_fw-la bishop_n of_o colein_n who_o sharp_o expostulate_v with_o alexander_n in_o a_o synod_n at_o rome_n for_o take_v so_o much_o upon_o he_o without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o contrary_a to_o his_o royal_a privilege_n as_o it_o have_v be_v acknowledge_v for_o the_o most_o part_n by_o his_o predecessor_n hildebrand_n make_v the_o apology_n for_o alexander_n brief_o otho_n take_v more_o part_n with_o the_o roman_a clergy_n do_v procure_v the_o cause_n to_o be_v refer_v to_o another_o synod_n to_o be_v hold_v at_o mantua_n where_o alexander_n have_v friend_n he_o appear_v but_o honorius_n send_v word_n that_o the_o master_n shall_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o his_o disciple_n and_o will_v not_o come_v unless_o he_o may_v be_v moderator_n of_o the_o council_n by_o the_o way_n observe_v this_o contest_v who_o shall_v be_v moderator_n in_o a_o synod_n before_o this_o if_o the_o emperor_n have_v name_v a_o precedent_n there_o be_v no_o opposition_n or_o when_o the_o emperor_n wink_v or_o be_v contemn_v any_o patriarch_n may_v moderate_v within_o his_o own_o diocy_n otho_n answer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n he_o be_v but_o one_o shall_v submit_v synod_n the_o pope_n subject_n to_o a_o synod_n himself_o unto_o the_o holy_a oracle_n and_o sentence_n of_o so_o many_o father_n then_o alexander_n have_v no_o present_a competitour_n be_v hear_v and_o when_o he_o have_v swear_v that_o he_o have_v use_v no_o unlawful_a mean_n for_o obtain_v the_o papacy_n he_o be_v confirm_v car._n benno_n write_v of_o he_o thus_o when_o he_o understand_v the_o intention_n of_o hildebrand_n and_o other_o the_o emperor_n enemy_n that_o they_o have_v set_v he_o up_o for_o a_o private_a respect_n of_o their_o own_o he_o tell_v they_o public_o he_o will_v sit_v no_o long_o in_o that_o place_n he_o be_v at_o mass_n unless_o he_o have_v consent_n from_o the_o emperor_n wherefore_o hildebrand_n be_v in_o such_o rage_n that_o he_o can_v scarce_o hold_v his_o hand_n off_o he_o till_o the_o mass_n be_v end_v then_o by_o force_n of_o soldier_n he_o throw_v the_o pope_n into_o a_o chamber_n knock_v he_o with_o his_o fist_n and_o rail_v at_o he_o that_o he_o will_v seek_v favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n then_o be_v he_o thrust_v into_o prison_n and_o stint_v to_o five_o shilling_n a_o day_n of_o the_o money_n of_o luca_n where_o he_o have_v be_v bishop_n and_o hildebrand_n turn_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o saint_n peter_n revenue_n to_o his_o own_o use_n at_o this_o time_n sueno_n king_n of_o denmark_n make_v his_o land_n tributary_n unto_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o casimire_n king_n of_o rome_n denmark_n and_o poland_n tributary_n to_o rome_n pole_n in_o the_o day_n of_o benedict_n the_o ix_o and_o pay_v yearly_a peter-pence_n alexander_n die_v in_o prison_n after_o 12._o year_n 17._o gregory_z the_o vii_o alias_o hildebrand_n cause_v himself_o to_o be_v elect_v the_o same_o day_n that_o the_o other_o die_v contrary_a to_o a_o decree_n which_o ordain_v that_o the_o election_n shall_v not_o be_v before_o the_o three_o day_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o clergy_n and_o cardinal_n may_v be_v the_o more_o frequent_o assemble_v after_o ten_o week_n he_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o emperor_n say_v platina_n but_o not_o till_o the_o emperor_n send_v a_o count_n to_o challenge_v the_o roman_n and_o then_o gregory_n say_v he_o be_v choose_v indeed_o but_o he_o have_v delay_v his_o consecration_n until_o he_o know_v the_o king_n pleasure_n and_o car._n benno_n testify_v that_o many_o of_o the_o gardinal_n will_v not_o subscribe_v unto_o his_o election_n because_o he_o have_v be_v a_o disciple_n of_o gregory_n the_o vi_o in_o honour_n of_o his_o master_n he_o take_v his_o name_n pessimo_fw-la magistro_fw-la pejor_fw-la discipulus_fw-la say_v benno_n aventin_n annal._n lib._n 5._o report_n that_o a_o ancient_a and_o famous_a writer_n live_v at_o that_o time_n when_o he_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o hildebrand_n say_v we_o be_v come_v to_o faction_n fraud_n and_o wickedness_n it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o write_v true_o and_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o write_v false_o car._n benno_n relate_v his_o enchantment_n and_o jugglery_n at_o large_a and_o say_v general_o when_o satan_n can_v not_o persecute_v christ_n open_o by_o pagan_n he_o plot_v to_o turn_v religion_n topsie-torvy_a by_o a_o false_a monk_n under_o show_n of_o religion_n but_o although_o divine_a providence_n suffer_v such_o thing_n yet_o the_o time_n of_o retribution_n be_v at_o hand_n bellarm._n de_fw-fr pontif._n rom._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 13._o will_v purge_v he_o of_o these_o blot_n say_v we_o have_v no_o author_n of_o that_o time_n who_o accuse_v gregory_n the_o vii_o but_o one_o benno_n and_o he_o do_v not_o write_v so_o bitter_o against_o he_o in_o truth_n but_o only_o under_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n gregory_n he_o will_v
describe_v a_o wicked_a pope_n or_o benno_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o that_o book_n but_o some_o lutheran_n and_o he_o allege_v ten_o author_n of_o that_o time_n commend_v hildebrand_n the_o whole_a history_n confute_v the_o first_o excuse_n and_o the_o other_o be_v convince_v by_o the_o copy_n of_o benno_n more_o ancient_a than_o luther_n and_o by_o many_o author_n before_o luther_n who_o do_v cite_v benno_n namely_o orthwin_n gratius_n who_o be_v not_o a_o lutheran_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la lector_fw-la prefix_a to_o the_o same_o book_n say_v more_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v unto_o benno_n then_o unto_o platina_n or_o other_o who_o favour_n the_o pope_n too_o much_o and_o though_o his_o own_o faction_n commend_v he_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n and_o they_o testify_v of_o more_o than_o ten_o time_n ten_o other_o write_v against_o his_o impiety_n it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o truth_n that_o she_o want_v not_o witness_n and_o tyranny_n have_v contradiction_n at_o the_o rise_n yea_o and_o of_o the_o same_o ten_o although_o one_o excuse_n of_o one_o crime_n yet_o he_o accuse_v he_o of_o another_o be_v they_o all_o lutheran_n who_o onuphrius_n in_o annotat._n in_o platin._n ad_fw-la grego_n vii_o report_v to_o have_v call_v this_o gregory_n a_o necromancer_n a_o simoniack_a bloodthirsty_a &_o c._n he_o be_v the_o first_o kindler_n of_o those_o toilsome_a war_n bellum_fw-la pontificium_fw-la between_o the_o emperor_n and_o pope_n as_o follow_v before_o that_o time_n there_o be_v some_o order_n in_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n be_v subject_a unto_o emperor_n as_o miltiades_n and_o sylvester_n unto_o emperor_n pope_n be_v subject_a unto_o emperor_n constantine_n gregory_n unto_o maurice_n leo_n unto_o charles_n the_o great_a chrysostom_n on_o rom._n 13._o say_v the_o apostle_n she_o wing_v that_o these_o thing_n subjection_n etc._n etc._n be_v command_v unto_o all_o both_o priest_n and_o monk_n and_o not_o to_o secular_o only_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a unto_o superior_a power_n although_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n or_o evangelist_n or_o prophet_n or_o whoever_o he_o be_v for_o this_o subjection_n overthrow_v not_o piety_n and_o he_o say_v not_o simple_o be_v obedient_a but_o be_v subject_n cumin_fw-la ventura_n a_o late_a popish_a writer_n in_o thesaur_n politic._n print_v at_o frankford_n an._n 1610._o pag._n 386._o say_v the_o ancient_a emperor_n receive_v not_o their_o beginning_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o the_o next_o page_n the_o pope_n in_o time_n of_o the_o old_a empire_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o emperor_n until_o lewis_n the_o godly_a renounce_v his_o right_n which_o renounciation_n be_v revoke_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o renounce_v by_o a_o synod_n in_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n leo_n the_o viii_o and_o onuphrius_n in_o vita_fw-la gregor_n vii_o say_v although_o the_o bishop_n of_o old_a rome_n be_v reverence_v as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o successor_n of_o peter_n yet_o their_o authority_n reach_v not_o further_a than_o the_o teach_n and_o maintain_v of_o the_o faith_n they_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o be_v create_v by_o they_o and_o in_o all_o thing_n be_v at_o the_o beck_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o a_o pope_n dare_v not_o judge_v nor_o discern_v any_o thing_n belong_v unto_o they_o bellarm._n de_fw-fr laicis_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 8._o propound_v and_o prove_v that_o kingdom_n be_v give_v immediate_o by_o god_n unto_o wicked_a man_n as_o dan._n 2._o and_o that_o these_o infidel_n king_n shall_v be_v obey_v unless_o one_o will_v set_v himself_o against_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n in_o 1_o pet._n 2._o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o cite_v the_o testimony_n of_o augustin_n de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la lib._n 5._o cap._n 21._o &_o 15._o he_o say_v express_o all_o king_n and_o the_o state_n of_o venice_n and_o such_o other_o have_v none_o above_o they_o in_o temporalibus_fw-la otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o be_v call_v head_n of_o their_o commonwealth_n but_o member_n only_o but_o then_o gregory_n the_o vii_o the_o first_o of_o all_o romish_a bishop_n swell_v with_o pride_n and_o trust_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o norman_n and_o emperor_n the_o first_o pope_n excommunicate_v a_o emperor_n to_o the_o riches_n of_o mathildis_n and_o see_v dissension_n among_o the_o german_n dare_v not_o only_o excommunicate_a caesar_n but_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n also_o a_o thing_n not_o hear_v in_o former_a age_n say_v otho_n frise_v de_fw-fr gest_n frideri_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o so_o speak_v onuphrius_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la and_o add_v for_o i_o account_v not_o the_o fable_n concern_v arcadius_n anastasius_n and_o leo_n iconomachus_n and_o gotfrid_n viterb_fw-ge in_o chron._n par_fw-fr 17._o say_v we_o read_v not_o that_o any_o emperor_n before_o this_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o a_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o deprive_v of_o his_o empire_n unless_o that_o be_v call_v excommunication_n when_o philip_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n be_v for_o a_o short_a space_n set_v among_o the_o penitent_n or_o that_o theodosius_n etc._n etc._n aventin_n in_o annal._n lib._n 7._o write_v that_o everhard_n bishop_n of_o salsburg_n say_v hildebrand_n under_o pretext_n of_o religion_n 170._o year_n since_o have_v lay_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o antichrist_n and_o he_o first_o begin_v those_o wicked_a war_n which_o until_o this_o time_n have_v be_v continue_v by_o his_o successor_n so_o gregory_n the_o vii_o do_v glory_n of_o himself_o that_o he_o can_v bind_v and_o loose_v in_o heaven_n and_o he_o can_v give_v and_o take_v away_o kingdom_n empire_n and_o whatsoever_o man_n possess_v on_o earth_n he_o can_v abide_v no_o equal_a far_o less_o any_o superior_a derogate_a from_o other_o their_o due_a right_n and_o honour_n and_o arrogate_a all_o unto_o himself_o after_o he_o the_o emperor_n can_v have_v no_o interest_n in_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n say_v ventura_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la likewise_o he_o keep_v bishop_n and_o all_o prelate_n in_o awe_n suspend_v some_o and_o chap_a off_o the_o hand_n of_o other_o at_o his_o pleasure_n he_o release_v oath_n of_o allegiance_n yea_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v the_o pope_n must_v be_v fear_v as_o one_o who_o can_v do_v no_o wrong_n in_o a_o synod_n at_o rome_n he_o decree_v it_o to_o be_v simony_n to_o accept_v any_o bishopric_n abbocy_n or_o church-living_a from_o a_o layman_n be_v he_o king_n or_o caesar_n who_o give_v it_o and_o the_o receiver_n as_o well_o as_o the_o giver_n shall_v be_v excommunicate_v platin._n by_o this_o mean_n he_o sever_v churchman_n from_o prince_n and_o tie_v they_o unto_o the_o pope_n for_o ever_o and_o the_o former_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n be_v then_o condemn_v and_o the_o decree_n of_o pope_n leo_n the_o viii_o be_v condemn_v yea_o himself_n might_n by_o this_o decree_n be_v depose_v henceforth_o whatsoever_o ambition_n any_o pope_n once_o practise_v his_o successor_n will_v make_v it_o a_o rule_n but_o one_o thing_n be_v above_o all_o wonder_n say_v corn._n agrippa_n de_fw-fr vanit_fw-la scient_a cap._n 56._o they_o think_v that_o they_o may_v go_v up_o to_o heaven_n by_o this_o mean_n for_o which_o lucifer_n be_v cast_v down_o he_o do_v forbid_v the_o benedictine_n monk_n to_o eat_v any_o flesh_n at_o all_o and_o permit_v unto_o other_o as_o weak_a or_o more_o imperfect_a to_o eat_v flesh_n on_o some_o day_n in_o the_o year_n 1076._o he_o publish_v some_o aphorism_n with_o the_o title_n dictatus_fw-la papae_fw-la vii_o dictatus_fw-la pope_n greg._n the_o vii_o these_o be_v extract_v by_o spalaten_n de_fw-fr rep._n eccles_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 9_o and_o be_v the_o picture_n of_o his_o mind_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v found_v by_o the_o lord_n alone_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v the_o only_a universal_a bishop_n gregory_n the_o i._o behold_v thy_o antichrist_n he_o only_o can_v set_v up_o and_o depose_v other_o bishop_n he_o may_v depose_v and_o excommunicate_v absent_v this_o be_v a_o warrant_n for_o his_o practice_n against_o the_o emperor_n if_o any_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n none_o may_v abide_v in_o one_o house_n with_o that_o person_n he_o alone_o can_v make_v new_a law_n erect_v new_a congregation_n unite_v or_o divide_v benefice_n all_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n ought_v to_o kiss_v his_o foot_n his_o only_a name_n shall_v be_v hear_v in_o church_n no_o synod_n shall_v be_v without_o his_o commandment_n no_o book_n be_v canonical_a without_o his_o authority_n all_o weighty_a cause_n in_o whatsoever_o church_n shall_v be_v bring_v unto_o he_o he_o may_v absolve_v subject_n from_o their_o allegiance_n he_o may_v judge_v all_o man_n but_o can_v be_v judge_v by_o no_o man_n and_o all_o these_o because_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v err_v and_o the_o pope_n be_v canonical_o elect_v be_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o saint_n peter_n undoubted_o sanctify_v and_o
unto_o the_o assembly_n but_o only_o unto_o these_o few_o at_o the_o convention_n in_o lie_v and_o agree_v unto_o by_o their_o few_o deputy_n and_o hasten_v before_o the_o assembly_n do_v conveen_v again_o in_o the_o act_n of_o that_o convention_n it_o be_v also_o write_v this_o the_o church_n understanding_n that_o my_o l._n regent_n and_o counsel_n be_v desirous_a that_o robert_n pont_n shall_v accept_v the_o place_n of_o a_o senator_n in_o the_o college_n of_o justice_n which_o he_o no_o way_n will_v accept_v without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o all_o the_o brethren_n assemble_v give_v licence_n unto_o the_o say_v robert_n to_o accept_v &_o use_v that_o place_n of_o a_o senator_n in_o the_o say_a college_n of_o justice_n at_o what_o time_n he_o shall_v be_v require_v there_o unto_o provide_v that_o he_o leave_v not_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n but_o that_o he_o exercise_v the_o same_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v appoint_v by_o the_o church_n and_o this_o their_o licence_n unto_o the_o say_v robert_n be_v no_o preparative_n unto_o any_o other_o minister_n to_o procure_v the_o like_a promotion_n without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o licence_n have_v before_o and_o obtain_v there_o unto_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o provision_n will_v seem_v to_o be_v oppositum_fw-la in_o apposito_fw-la the_o general_n assembly_n conveene_n at_o santandrews_n march_n 6._o assembly_n the_o 22_o assembly_n where_o beside_o the_o ordinary_a member_n be_v mention_v of_o john_n douglas_n archbishop_n of_o santandrews_n robert_n hamilton_n minister_n at_o santandrews_n be_v choose_v moderator_n in_o the_o extract_n of_o the_o assembly_n be_v no_o more_o write_v of_o the_o first_o and_o second_o session_n but_o the_o historical_a narration_n say_v 1._o the_o assembly_n hold_v at_o santandrews_n in_o march_n next_o follow_v appoint_v twenty_o or_o any_o eight_o of_o they_o to_o conveen_n in_o master_n knox_n house_n to_o revise_v and_o consider_v the_o article_n &_o conclusion_n agried-upon_a at_o lie_v and_o to_o report_v unto_o the_o assembly_n but_o we_o find_v no_o report_n make_v or_o insert_v in_o the_o register_n but_o in_o the_o next_o be_v some_o mention_n in_o sess_n 3._o be_v a_o contest_v betwixt_o the_o superintendent_n of_o fife_n and_o the_o master_n of_o the_o old_a college_n concern_v the_o vicaradge_v of_o kilmeny_n and_o the_o superintendent_n be_v blame_v for_o give_v that_o vicaradge_v to_o one_o who_o be_v not_o a_o minister_n nor_o have_v any_o function_n in_o the_o church_n and_o so_o the_o minister_n of_o that_o church_n plant_v by_o himselle_n be_v frustrate_v thereof_o sess_n 4._o the_o assembly_n ordain_v the_o superintendent_n of_o fife_n to_o use_v his_o own_o jurisdiction_n as_o before_o in_o the_o province_n not_o yet_o subject_a unto_o the_o archbishop_n of_o santandrews_n and_o also_o request_v he_o to_o concur_v with_o the_o archbishop_n when_o he_o require_v in_o his_o visitation_n or_o otherwise_o within_o his_o bound_n until_o the_o next_o assembly_n and_o the_o say_v superintendent_n to_o have_v his_o stipend_n as_o before_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n shall_v the_o superintendent_o of_o auguise_n &_o lothan_n without_o prejudice_n of_o the_o say_v archb._n it_o follow_v in_o the_o hist_n narration_n when_o master_n knox_n hear_v that_o the_o assembly_n have_v continue_v the_o bishop_n notwithstanding_o a_o bill_n given-in_a by_o some_o of_o the_o university_n against_o he_o he_o regret_v that_o so_o many_o office_n be_v lay_v on_o a_o old_a man_n which_o twenty_o man_n of_o the_o best_a gift_n be_v scarce_o able_a to_o bear_v for_o he_o now_o be_v archbishop_n rector_n of_o the_o university_n and_o prove_v of_o the_o new_a college_n and_o as_o he_o be_v unable_a in_o body_n to_o make_v travel_n so_o he_o be_v unable_a to_o preach_v but_o little_a respect_n have_v the_o court_n to_o the_o ability_n of_o the_o person_n if_o the_o commodity_n can_v be_v reap_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o title_n this_o man_n have_v neither_o health_n nor_o wealth_n nor_o honour_n as_o before_o mortoun_n and_o his_o friend_n take_v up_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o rent_n in_o fues_z tack_n and_o pension_n at_o that_o time_n theodor_n beza_n write_v his_o 79._o epistle_n unto_o beza_n a_o letter_n of_o th._n beza_n john_n knox_n date_v at_o geneva_n aprile_a 12._o 1572._o wherein_o he_o say_v this_o be_v a_o great_a blessing_n of_o god_n that_o you_o bring_v into_o scotland_n both_o purity_n of_o religion_n and_o eutaxian_n or_o good_a discipline_n which_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o keep_v the_o doctrine_n i_o beseech_v and_o obtest_v you_o keep_v you_o still_o these_o two_o and_o remember_v that_o if_o the_o one_o be_v lose_a the_o other_o can_v not_o continue_v long_o this_o do_v very_a nature_n teach_v for_o who_o of_o sound_a judgement_n can_v hope_v that_o law_n can_v be_v observe_v unless_o keeper_n or_o mantainer_n and_o avenger_n be_v establish_v and_o the_o very_a teacher_n of_o fool_n experience_n by_o the_o exemple_n of_o these_o nation_n where_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o have_v chief_o err_v in_o this_o which_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v to_o be_v amend_v that_o the_o euangell_n be_v preach_v for_o judgement_n rather_o than_o for_o mercy_n i_o except_v a_o few_o the_o choose_a of_o god_n but_o likewise_o i_o will_v thou_o my_o knox_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o brethren_n remember_v which_o be_v now_o as_o before_o our_o eye_n that_o as_o the_o bishop_n bring_v papacy_n so_o these_o false_a bishop_n the_o relic_n of_o papacy_n will_v bring_v epicureism_n into_o the_o land_n let_v they_o be_v wary_a of_o this_o plague_n whosoever_o wish_v the_o savety_n of_o the_o church_n and_o see_v you_o have_v once_o banish_v it_o out_o of_o scotland_n receive_v it_o never_o again_o albeit_o it_o do_v flatter_v with_o the_o show_n of_o retain_v unity_n whereby_o many_o of_o the_o best_a ancient_n be_v deceive_v etc._n etc._n the_o general_n assembly_n assembly_n the_o 23._o assembly_n conveene_n at_o perth_n august_n 6._o john_n erskin_n be_v choose_v moderator_n sess_n 3._o forsomuch_o as_o in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o church_n hold_v in_o lie_v in_o january_n last_o certain_a commissioner_n be_v appoint_v to_o deal_v with_o the_o nobility_n and_o their_o commissioner_n to_o reason_n and_o conclude_v upon_o diverse_a article_n &_o head_n think_v good_a then_o to_o be_v confer_v upon_o according_a to_o which_o commission_n they_o have_v proceed_v in_o sundry_a convention_n and_o have_v conclude_v for_o that_o time_n upon_o the_o say_a head_n &_o article_n as_o the_o same_o produce_v in_o this_o assembly_n proport_n in_o which_o be_v and_o consider_v be_v find_v certain_a name_n as_o archbishop_n dean_n archdean_n chanceler_n and_o chapter_n which_o name_n be_v ever_o think_v scandalous_a &_o offensive_a to_o th●_n ear_n of_o the_o brethren_n and_o appear_v to_o sound_v towards_o papistry_n therefore_o the_o whole_a assembly_n in_o one_o voice_n alswell_o they_o that_o be_v then_o in_o commission_n at_o lie_v as_o other_o solemn_o protest_v that_o they_o intend_v not_o by_o use_v such_o name_n to_o ratify_v consent_n nor_o agree_v unto_o any_o kind_n of_o papistry_n or_o superstition_n and_o wish_v rather_o the_o say_a name_n to_o be_v change_v into_o other_o name_n that_o be_v not_o scandalous_a or_o offensive_a and_o likewise_o protest_v that_o the_o say_n head_n and_o article_n be_v only_o receive_v as_o a_o interim_n till_o far_a and_o more_o perfect_a order_n may_v be_v obtain_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o king_n majesty_n regent_n and_o nobility_n for_o the_o which_o they_o will_v endeavour_v as_o occasion_n will_v serve_v unto_o which_o protestation_n the_o whole_a assembly_n present_o convene_v in_o one_o voice_n adhere_v hence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o as_o these_o article_n be_v conclude_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o assembly_n so_o the_o whole_a assembly_n oppose_v they_o earnest_o but_o for_o a_o time_n do_v yield_v unto_o civil_a authority_n yet_o so_o that_o they_o will_v endeavour_v to_o be_v free_a of_o these_o article_n in_o august_n be_v cessation_n of_o war_n and_o then_o agreement_n of_o the_o dissent_v party_n the_o queen_n faction_n leave_v edinburgh_n and_o the_o regent_n die_v at_o sterlin_n in_o october_n john_n knox_n return_v to_o edinburgh_n but_o preach_v little_o more_o because_o of_o his_o sickness_n at_o no_o time_n be_v he_o hear_v speak_v with_o great_a fervency_n and_o more_o content_a of_o the_o hearer_n than_o in_o his_o last_o sermon_n at_o the_o admission_n of_o james_n lowson_n in_o the_o end_n of_o that_o sermon_n he_o take_v god_n to_o witness_v that_o he_o have_v walk_v in_o a_o good_a conscience_n among_o they_o not_o seek_v to_o please_v man_n nor_o serve_v his_o own_o or_o other_o man_n affection_n but_o in_o all_o sincerity_n &_o truth_n have_v preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o
christ_n and_o with_o most_o pithy_a word_n he_o exhort_v they_o to_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o faith_n they_o have_v receive_v in_o time_n of_o his_o sickness_n which_o be_v not_o long_o thereafter_o he_o death_n joh_n knox_n exhortion_n before_o his_o death_n be_v much_o visit_v by_o person_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o speak_v unto_o they_o confortable_o he_o say_v unto_o the_o earl_n morton_n in_o the_o audience_n of_o many_o other_o my_o lord_n god_n have_v give_v you_o many_o blessing_n he_o have_v givens_fw-la you_fw-mi wisdom_n riches_n many_o good_a &_o great_a friend_n and_o be_v now_o to_o prefer_v you_o to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o realm_n in_o his_o name_n i_o charge_v you_o that_o you_o use_v these_o blessing_n aright_o and_o better_a in_o time_n come_v than_o you_o have_v do_v in_o time_n past_a in_o all_o your_o ●_z seek_v first_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o furtherance_n of_o his_o gospel_n the_o mantenance_n of_o his_o church_n and_o ministry_n and_o next_o be_v careful_a of_o the_o king_n to_o procure_v his_o good_a and_o the_o well_o fare_v of_o the_o realm_n if_o you_o shall_v do_v this_o god_n will_v be_v with_o you_o and_o honour_v you_o if_o otherwise_o you_o do_v it_o not_o he_o will_v deprive_v you_o of_o all_o these_o benefit_n and_o your_o end_n shall_v be_v shame_n and_o ignominy_n john_n knox_n two_o day_n before_o his_o death_n send_v for_o da._n lindsay_n and_o james_n lowson_n and_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n and_o say_v to_o they_o the_o time_n approach_v for_o which_o i_o have_v long_o thirst_v when_o i_o shall_v be_v relieve_v of_o all_o care_n and_o be_v with_o my_o saviour_n christ_n for_o ever_o and_o now_o god_n be_v my_o witness_n who_o i_o have_v serve_v with_o my_o spirit_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o son_n that_o i_o have_v preach_v nothing_o but_o the_o true_a and_o solid_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o the_o end_n i_o propon_v in_o all_o my_o preach_n be_v to_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a to_o confirm_v the_o weak_a to_o comfort_n the_o conscience_n of_o these_o who_o be_v humble_v under_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o beat_v down_o with_o the_o threaten_n of_o god_n judgement_n such_o as_o be_v proud_a &_o rebellious_a i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o many_o have_v blame_v and_o yet_o do_v blame_v my_o too_o great_a rigour_n &_o severity_n but_o god_n know_v that_o in_o my_o heart_n i_o never_o hate_v the_o person_n of_o these_o against_o who_o i_o threaten_v god_n judgement_n i_o do_v only_o hate_v their_o sin_n and_o labour_v with_o all_o my_o power_n to_o gain_v they_o unto_o christ_n that_o i_o forbear_v none_o of_o whatsoever_o condition_n i_o do_v it_o out_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o my_o god_n who_o have_v place_v i_o in_o the_o function_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o i_o know_v will_v bring_v i_o to_o a_o account_n now_o brethren_n for_o yourselves_o i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v but_o to_o warn_v you_o rhat_fw-mi you_o take_v heed_n to_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o god_n have_v place_v you_o overseer_n and_o who_o he_o have_v redeem_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o only_o beget_v s●n_n and_o you_o master_n lowson_n fight_n do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o courage_n and_o with_o a_o willing_a mind_n and_o god_n from_o above_o bless_v you_o and_o the_o church_n weereof_o you_o have_v the_o charge_n etc._n etc._n then_o he_o dismiss_v the_o elder_n and_o call_v the_o two_o preacher_n say_v there_o be_v one_o thing_n that_o grieve_v i_o exceed_o you_o have_v sometime_o see_v the_o courage_n &_o forewardness_n of_o the_o laird_n of_o grange_n in_o god_n cause_n and_o now_o unhappy_a man_n he_o have_v cast_v himself_o away_o i_o pray_v you_o two_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o go_v unto_o he_o and_o say_v from_o i_o that_o unless_o he_o forsake_v that_o wicked_a course_n where_o in_o he_o have_v enter_v neither_o shall_v that_o rock_n in_o which_o he_o confide_v defend_v he_o nor_o the_o carnal_a wisdom_n of_o that_o man_n who_o he_o count_v half_o a_o god_n this_o be_v young_a lethingtoun_n make_v he_o help_v but_o shameful_o shall_v he_o be_v pull_v out_o of_o that_o nest_n and_o his_o carcase_n hang_v before_o the_o sun_n the_o soul_n of_o that_o man_n be_v dear_a unto_o i_o and_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a i_o will_v fain_o have_v he_o to_o be_v save_v the_o two_o go_v and_o confer_v with_o grainge_a but_o prevail_v not_o which_o be_v report_v to_o john_n knox_n he_o take_v it_o heavy_o the_o last_o night_n of_o his_o life_n on_o earth_n he_o sleep_v some_o hour_n together_o but_o with_o many_o sigh_n and_o groan_n when_o he_o awake_v they_o ask_v he_o how_o he_o do_v find_v himself_o and_o what_o have_v move_v he_o to_o mourn_v in_o his_o sleep_n he_o answer_v in_o my_o time_n i_o have_v oft_o be_v assault_v by_o satan_n and_o oft_o have_v he_o cast_v my_o sin_n in_o my_o tooth_n to_o bring_v i_o into_o despair_n but_o god_n give_v i_o grace_n to_o overcome_v all_o his_o tentation_n and_o now_o that_o subtle_a serpent_n who_o never_o cease_v to_o tempt_v have_v take_v another_o course_n he_o seek_v to_o persuade_v i_o that_o my_o labour_n in_o my_o ministry_n and_o the_o fidelity_n i_o have_v show_v in_o in_o that_o service_n have_v merit_v heaven_n and_o immortality_n but_o bless_v be_v god_n who_o bring_v to_o my_o mind_n these_o scripture_n what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v and_o not_o i_o but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o i_o with_o which_o he_o have_v go_v away_o ashamed_a and_o shall_v no_o more_o return_v and_o now_o i_o be_o sure_a my_o battle_n be_v at_o a_o end_n and_o that_o without_o pain_n of_o body_n or_o trouble_n of_o spirit_n i_o shall_v short_o change_v this_o mortal_a life_n with_o that_o happy_a &_o immortal_a life_n when_o the_o prajer_n be_v make_v one_o ask_v whither_o he_o have_v hear_v it_o he_o answer_v will_v god_n you_o have_v hear_v it_o with_o such_o a_o ear_n and_o heart_n as_o i_o have_v do_v then_o say_v he_o lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n after_o these_o word_n he_o speak_v no_o more_o but_o without_o any_o motion_n he_o end_v this_o life_n within_o three_o day_n the_o earl_n morton_n be_v choose_v regent_n by_o consent_n of_o the_o state_n the_o laird_n of_o grange_n be_v captain_n of_o the_o castle_n and_o when_o orher_n of_o that_o faction_n do_v yield_v unto_o the_o agreement_n he_o will_v not_o agree_v because_o the_o estate_n will_v not_o yield_v unto_o some_o high_a demand_n of_o his_o own_o he_o give_v a_o proclamation_n from_o the_o castlewall_n command_v all_o the_o queen_n subject_n to_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o town_n within_o 24._o hour_n after_o which_o time_n he_o thunder_v with_o cannon_n against_o the_o town_n to_o their_o great_a terror_n yet_o not_o great_a hurt_n in_o may_n follow_v a_o assault_n be_v make_v upon_o the_o castle_n the_o besiege_v render_v themselves_o lethinton_n be_v send_v to_o lie_v and_o die_v sudden_o through_o grief_n and_o grainge_v with_o his_o brother_n and_o two_o other_o be_v hang_v in_o the_o market-striet_a of_o edinburgh_n x._o a_o parliament_n be_v hold_v in_o january_n wherein_o many_o act_n be_v make_v 1573._o 1573._o partly_o for_o maintain_v the_o king_n authority_n and_o partly_o for_o maintain_v the_o true_a religion_n these_o two_o cause_n at_o that_o time_n be_v so_o link_v that_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o one_o be_v esteem_v enemy_n of_o the_o other_o therefore_o it_o be_v enact_v that_o none_o shall_v be_v repute_v loyal_a subject_n unto_o the_o king_n or_o his_o authority_n but_o be_v punish_v as_o rebel_n who_o make_v not_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o that_o all_o who_o make_v profession_n thereof_o and_o be_v not_o obedient_a to_o the_o king_n authority_n shall_v be_v admonish_v by_o their_o teacher_n to_o acknowledge_v their_o offence_n and_o return_v to_o his_o majesty_n obedience_n or_o else_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v as_o putrid_a member_n the_o nationall_n assembly_n conveene_n assembly_n the_o 24_o assembly_n at_o edinburgh_n march_v 6._o here_o be_v member_n according_a to_o the_o order_n and_z john_n archbishop_z of_o santandrews_n david_n ferguson_n minister_n at_o dumfernlin_n be_v choose_v moderator_n 1._o where_o as_o a_o complaint_n be_v make_v against_o john_n row_n for_o solemnize_n the_o marriage_n of_o the_o master_n of_o crawford_n with_o the_o lord_n drummond_n daughter_n without_o proclamation_n of_o ban_n and_o he_o do_v allege_v that_o he_o do_v it_o by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o session_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o the_o lord_n ruthuen_n be_v one_o and_o present_a at_o that_o time_n the_o assembly_n ordain_v that_o the_o act_n make_v against_o minister_n solemnize_n marriage_n of_o